Title:   The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

Subject:  

Author:   Ralph Connor

Keywords:  

Creator:  

PDF Version:   1.2



Contents:

Page No 1

Page No 2

Page No 3

Page No 4

Page No 5

Page No 6

Page No 7

Page No 8

Page No 9

Page No 10

Page No 11

Page No 12

Page No 13

Page No 14

Page No 15

Page No 16

Page No 17

Page No 18

Page No 19

Page No 20

Page No 21

Page No 22

Page No 23

Page No 24

Page No 25

Page No 26

Page No 27

Page No 28

Page No 29

Page No 30

Page No 31

Page No 32

Page No 33

Page No 34

Page No 35

Page No 36

Page No 37

Page No 38

Page No 39

Page No 40

Page No 41

Page No 42

Page No 43

Page No 44

Page No 45

Page No 46

Page No 47

Page No 48

Page No 49

Page No 50

Page No 51

Page No 52

Page No 53

Page No 54

Page No 55

Page No 56

Page No 57

Page No 58

Page No 59

Page No 60

Page No 61

Page No 62

Page No 63

Page No 64

Page No 65

Page No 66

Page No 67

Page No 68

Page No 69

Page No 70

Page No 71

Page No 72

Page No 73

Page No 74

Page No 75

Page No 76

Page No 77

Page No 78

Page No 79

Page No 80

Page No 81

Page No 82

Page No 83

Page No 84

Page No 85

Page No 86

Page No 87

Page No 88

Page No 89

Page No 90

Page No 91

Page No 92

Page No 93

Page No 94

Page No 95

Page No 96

Page No 97

Page No 98

Page No 99

Page No 100

Page No 101

Page No 102

Page No 103

Page No 104

Page No 105

Page No 106

Page No 107

Page No 108

Page No 109

Page No 110

Page No 111

Page No 112

Page No 113

Page No 114

Page No 115

Page No 116

Page No 117

Page No 118

Page No 119

Page No 120

Page No 121

Page No 122

Page No 123

Page No 124

Page No 125

Page No 126

Page No 127

Page No 128

Page No 129

Page No 130

Page No 131

Page No 132

Page No 133

Page No 134

Page No 135

Page No 136

Page No 137

Page No 138

Page No 139

Page No 140

Page No 141

Page No 142

Page No 143

Page No 144

Page No 145

Page No 146

Page No 147

Page No 148

Page No 149

Page No 150

Page No 151

Page No 152

Page No 153

Page No 154

Page No 155

Page No 156

Page No 157

Page No 158

Page No 159

Page No 160

Page No 161

Page No 162

Page No 163

Page No 164

Page No 165

Page No 166

Page No 167

Page No 168

Page No 169

Page No 170

Page No 171

Page No 172

Page No 173

Page No 174

Page No 175

Page No 176

Page No 177

Page No 178

Page No 179

Page No 180

Page No 181

Page No 182

Page No 183

Page No 184

Page No 185

Page No 186

Page No 187

Page No 188

Page No 189

Page No 190

Page No 191

Page No 192

Page No 193

Page No 194

Page No 195

Page No 196

Page No 197

Page No 198

Page No 199

Page No 200

Page No 201

Page No 202

Page No 203

Page No 204

Page No 205

Page No 206

Bookmarks





Page No 1


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

Ralph Connor



Top




Page No 2


Table of Contents

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land.......................................................................................................................1

Ralph Connor ...........................................................................................................................................1

CHAPTER I. ONLY A MISSIONARY..................................................................................................1

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL.........................................................................................13

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE..............................................................................19

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED..................................................................................................................29

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS ...........................................................................................38

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH .......................................................................................48

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS...........................................................................55

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE.......................................................................................67

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS ..............................................78

CHAPTER X. FRANCE ........................................................................................................................89

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE .................................................................................................99

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD ......................................................................................................111

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING........................................................................................122

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR...............................................................................................128

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS................................................................................................142

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG ...............................................................................155

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS ......................................................................167

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY....................................................................................178

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT ....................................................................................185

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON" ...........................................................................................................201


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

i



Top




Page No 3


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

Ralph Connor

CHAPTER I. ONLY A MISSIONARY 

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON"  

CHAPTER I. ONLY A MISSIONARY

High upon a rock, poised like a bird for flight, stark naked, his  satin skin shining like gold and silver in the

rising sun, stood a  youth, tall, slim of body, not fully developed but with muscles  promising, in their faultless,

gently swelling outline, strength  and  suppleness to an unusual degree.  Gazing down into the pool  formed by

an eddy of the river twenty feet below him, he stood as  if calculating  the distance, his profile turned toward

the man who  had just emerged  from the bushes and was standing on the sandy  strand of the river,  paddle in

hand, looking up at him with an  expression of wonder and  delight in his eyes. 

"Ye gods, what a picture!" said the man to himself. 

Noiselessly, as if fearing to send the youth off in flight, he laid  his paddle on the sand, hurriedly felt in his

pockets, and swore to  himself vigorously when he could find no sketch book there. 

"What a pose!  What an Apollo!" he muttered. 

The sunlight glistening on the beautiful white skin lay like pools  of gold in the curving hollows of the

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 1



Top




Page No 4


perfectly modelled body, and  ran like silver over the rounded swellings of the limbs.  Instinct  with life he

seemed, something in his pose suggesting that he had  either alighted from the golden, ambient air, or was

about to  commit  himself to it.  The man on the sand continued to gaze as if  he were  beholding a creature of

another world. 

"Oh, Lord!  What lines!" he breathed. 

Slowly the youth began to move his arms up to the horizontal, then  to the perpendicular, reaching to the

utmost of his height upon his  toe tips, breathing deep the while.  Smoothly, slowly, the muscles  in  legs and

thighs, in back, in abdomen, in chest, responding to  the  exercise moved under the lustrous skin as if

themselves were  living  things.  Over and over again the action was repeated, the  muscles and  body moving in

rhythmic harmony like some perfect  mechanism running in  a bath of oil. 

"Ye gods of Greece!" breathed the man.  "What is this thing I see?  Flesh or spirit?  Man or god?"  Again he

swore at himself for  neglecting to bring his sketch book and pencil. 

"Hello, father!  Where are you?"  A girl's voice rang out, high,  clear, and near at hand. 

"Good Lord!" said the man to himself, glancing up at the poised  figure.  "I must stop her." 

One startled glance the youth flung down upon him, another in the  direction of the voice, then, like a white,

gleaming arrow he shot  down, and disappeared in the dark pool below. 

With his eyes upon the water the man awaited his reappearing.  A  half minute, a full minute he waited, but in

vain.  Swiftly he ran  toward the edge of the pool.  There was no sign anywhere of the  youth. 

Ghastly pale and panting, the man ran, as far round the base of the  rock as the water would allow him,

seeking everywhere signs of the  swimmer. 

"Hello, father!  Oh, there you are!"  Breaking through the bushes,  a girl ran to him. 

"What is it, pater?  You are ill.  What is the matter?" 

"Good heavens! he was there!" gasped the man, pointing to the high  rock.  "He plunged in there."  He pointed

to the pool.  "He hasn't  come up.  He is drowned." 

"Who?  What are you saying?  Wake up, father.  Who was there?" 

"A boy!  A young man!  He disappeared down there." 

"A young man?  Was hewas hedressed?" inquired the girl. 

"Dressed?  No.  No." 

"Did hedid hehear mecalling?" 

"Of course he did.  That's what startled him, I imagine.  Poor boy!  I fear he is gone." 

"Did he fall in, or did he dive?" 

"He seemed to dive, but he has not come up.  I fear he is gone." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 2



Top




Page No 5


"Oh, nonsense, father," said the girl.  "I bet you he has swum  round the bend.  Just go over the rock and see." 

"God grant it!" said her father. 

He dropped his paddle, ran up over the rock and down into the  little dell on the other side that ran down to the

water's edge.  There he saw a tent, with all the accompaniments of a well ordered  camp, and a man cooking

breakfast on a small fire. 

"Well, I'll be combusticated!" he said to himself, weakly holding  to a little poplar tree. 

"I say!" he cried, "where is he?  Has he come in?  Is he all  right?" 

"Who?" said the man at the fire. 

"The boy on the rock." 

The man gazed at him astonished, then as if suddenly grasping his  meaning, replied, 

"Yes, he came in.  He's dressing in the tent." 

"Well, I'll be condumbusticated!" said the man.  "Say! what the  devil does he mean by scaring people out of

their senses in that  way!" 

The man at the fire stood gazing at him in an utterly bewildered  way. 

"If you will tell me exactly what you are after, I may be able to  help you." 

The other drew slowly near the fire.  He was still pale, and  breathing quickly. 

"Hello, dad, is breakfast ready?" came a cheery voice from the  tent. 

"Thank God, he is alive apparently," said the man, sinking down on  a log beside the fire.  "You must pardon

me, sir," he said.  "You  see, I saw him take a header into the pool from that high rock over  yonder, and he

never came up again.  I thought he was drowned." 

The man at the fire smiled. 

"The young villain gave you a fright, did he?  One of his usual  tricks.  Well, as his father, and more or less

responsible for him,  I  offer the most humble apology.  Have you had breakfast?" 

"Yes.  But why did he do such a thing?" 

"Ask him.  Here he comes." 

Out from the tent came the youth in shorts, the warm glow of his  body showing through the filmy material. 

"Hello!" he cried, backing toward the tent door.  "You are the man  with the paddle.  Is there by any chance a

lady with you, or did I  hear a lady's voice over there?  I assure you I got a deuce of a  fright." 

"You gave me the supreme fright of my life, young man, I can tell  you that." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 3



Top




Page No 6


"But I surely heard a lady's voice," said the youth. 

"You did.  It was my daughter's voice, and it was she who suggested  that you had swum around the bend.  And

she sent me over here to  investigate." 

"Oh, your daughter.  Excuse me," said the youth.  "I shall be out  in a few minutes."  He slid into the tent, and

did not reappear. 

The man remained chatting with the youth's father for a few  minutes, then rising said, 

"Well, I feel better.  I confess this thing gave me something of a  shock.  But come round and see us before we

go.  We shall be  leaving  in an hour." 

The man at the fire promised to make the visit, and the other took  his departure. 

A few minutes later the youth reappeared. 

"Is breakfast ready?" he cried.  "My, but I'm hungry!  But who is  he, dad?" 

"Sit down," said his father, "and get your breakfast while it is  hot." 

"But who is he, dad?" persisted the youth. 

"Who is he?" said his father, dishing up the bacon.  "An oil  explorer, an artist, a capitalist, an American from

Pittsburgh, the  father of one child, a girl.  Her mother is dead.  Nineteen years  old, athletic, modern type,

college bred, 'boss of the show'  (quotation).  These are a few of the facts volunteered within the  limited space

of his visit." 

"What's he like, dad?" 

"Like?  Like an American." 

"Now, dad, don't allow your old British prejudices to run away with  your judgment." 

"On the contrary, I am perfectly charmed.  He is one of those  Americans who capture you at once, educated,

frank, open, with that  peculiar charm that Britishers will not be able to develop for many  generations.  An

American, but not of the unspeakable type.  Not at  all.  You will like him." 

"I am sure I shall," replied the youth.  "I liked his voice and his  face.  I like the Americans.  I met such nice

chaps at college.  So  clever, and with such a vocabulary." 

"Vocabulary?  Well, I'm not too sure as to the vocabulary part of  it." 

"Yes, such bright, pat, expressive slang, so fresh and in such  variety.  So different from your heavy British

slang, in which  everything approaching the superlative must be one of three things,  'ripping,' with very

distinct articulation on the double p, or 'top  hole,' or 'awfully jolly.'  More recently, I believe, a fourth  variation

is allowed in 'priceless.' 

"Ah, my boy, you have unconsciously uttered a most searching  criticism on your American friends.  Don't you

know that a  vocabulary  rich in slang is poverty stricken in forceful and well  chosen English?  The wealth of

the one is the poverty of the  other." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 4



Top




Page No 7


"Where is he going?" enquired the boy. 

"Out by way of Edmonton, Calgary, Moose Jaw, Minneapolis, so on to  Pittsburgh.  Partner with him, young

lawyer, expert in mines,  unmarried.  He is coming back in a couple of months or so for a big  hunt.  Wants us to

join him.  Really extraordinary, when you come  to  think of it, how much information he was able to convey in

such  a  short space of time.  Marvellous gift of expression!" 

"What did you say, dad?" 

"Say?  Oh, as to his invitation!  Why, I believe I accepted, my  boy.  It seemed as if I could do nothing else.  It's

a way he has." 

"Isis the daughter to be along?" 

"Let me see.  What did he say?  Really, I don't know.  But I should  judge that it would be entirely as she

wished.  She is" 

"Boss of the show, eh?" 

"Exactly.  Most vivid phrase, eh?" 

"Very.  And no doubt aptly descriptive of the fact." 

In half an hour the breakfast was finished, and the elder man got  his pipe agoing. 

"Now, dad, you had better go along and make your call, while I get  things together here." 

"What!  You not going!  No, no, that won't do, my boy.  It was  about you they were concerned.  You were the

occasion of the  acquaintanceship.  Besides, meeting in the wilderness this way we  can't do that sort of thing,

you know." 

"Well, dad, frankly, I am quite terrified of the young lady.  Suppose she should start bossing us.  We should

both be quite  helpless." 

"Oh, nonsense, boy!  Come along.  Get your hat." 

"All right, I'll come.  On your head be the consequences, dad.  No.  I don't need a hat.  Fortunately I put on a

clean shirt.  Will I  do,  dad?  You know I'm 'scairt stiff,' as Harry Hobbs would say." 

His father looked him over, but there was nothing critical in his  glance.  Pride and love filled his eyes as they

ran over his son's  face and figure.  And small wonder!  The youth was good to look  upon.  A shade under six

feet he stood, straight and slim, strength  and  supple grace in every move of his body.  His face was beautiful

with  the beauty of features, clean cut and strong, but more with  the beauty  of a clear, candid soul.  He seemed

to radiate an  atmosphere of cheery  good nature and unspoiled simplicity.  He was  two years past his  majority,

yet he carried the air of a youth of  eighteen, in which  shyness and fearlessness looked out from his  deep blue

eyes.  It was  well that he wore no hat to hide the mass  of rich brown hair that  waved back from his forehead. 

"You'll do, boy," said his father, in a voice whose rigid evenness  of tone revealed the emotion it sought to

conceal.  "You'll take  all  the shine from me, you young beggar," he added in a tone of  gruff  banter, "but there

was a time" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 5



Top




Page No 8


"WAS a time, dad?  IS, and don't tell me you don't know it.  I  always feel like a school kid in any company

when you're about. 

'When the sun comes out  All the little stars run in,'" 

he sang from a late music hall effusion.  "Why, just come here and  look at yourself," and the boy's eyes dwelt

with affectionate pride  upon his father. 

It was easy to see where the boy got his perfect form.  Not so tall  as his son, he was more firmly knit, and with

a kind of dainty  neatness in his appearance which suggested the beau in earlier  days.  But there was nothing of

weakness about the erect, trim  figure.  A  second glance discovered a depth of chest, a thickness  of shoulder

and  of thigh, and a general development of muscle such  as a ring champion  might show; and, indeed, it was

his achievements  in the ring rather  than in the class lists that won for Dick Dunbar  in his college days  his

highest fame.  And though his fifty years  had slowed somewhat the  speed of foot and hand, the eye was as

sure  as ever, and but little of  the natural force was abated which once  had made him the glory of the

Cambridge sporting youth, and which  even yet could test his son's  mettle in a fast bout. 

On the sandy shore of the river below the eddy, they found the  American and his party gathered, with their

stuff ranged about them  ready for the canoes. 

"Ah, here you are, sir," said the American, advancing hat in hand.  "And this is your son, the young rascal

who came mighty near giving  me heart failure this morning.  By the way, I haven't the pleasure  of  knowing

your name." 

"My name is Richard Dunbar, and this is my son Barry." 

"My name is Osborne Howland, of Pittsburgh, and this is my daughter  Paula.  In bloomers, as you see, but

nevertheless my daughter.  Meet  also my friend and partner, Mr. Cornwall Brand." 

The party exchanged greetings, and spent some moments giving  utterance to those platitudes which are so

useful in such  circumstances, a sort of mental marking time preparatory to further  mutual acquaintance. 

The girl possessed that striking, dashing kind of brunette beauty  that goes with good health, good living, and

abundance of outdoor  exercise.  She carried herself with that air of assured self  confidence that comes as the

result of a somewhat wide experience  of  men, women and things.  She quite evidently scorned the

conventions,  as her garb, being quite masculine, her speech being  outspoken and  decorated with the newest

and most ingenious slang,  her whole manner  being frankly impulsive, loudly proclaimed. 

But Barry liked her at once, and made no pretence of concealing his  liking.  To her father, also, he was

immediately drawn.  As to  Cornwall Brand, between whom and the girl there seemed to exist a  sort of

understanding, he was not so sure. 

For half an hour or so they stood by the river exchanging their  experiences in these northern wilds, and their

views upon life in  the  wilderness and upon things in general.  By a little skilful  managing  the girl got the

young man away from the others, and then  proceeded to  dissect and classify him. 

Through the open woods along the river bank they wandered, pausing  here and there to admire the view, until

they came to an overhanging  bank at the entrance to a somewhat deep gorge, through which the  river foamed

to the boiling rapids below.  It was indeed a beautiful  scene.  The banks of the river were covered with every

variety of  shrub and tree, except where the black rocks broke through; between  the banks the dark river raged

and fretted itself into a foam  against  its rocky barriers; over them arched the sky, a perfect  blue. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 6



Top




Page No 9


"What a lovely view!" exclaimed the girl, seating herself upon the  edge of the bank.  "Now," she said, "tell me

about yourself.  You  gave my pater a fearful fright this morning.  He was quite  paralysed  when I came on

him." 

"I am very sorry," said the youth, "but I had no intention" 

"I know.  I told him not to worry," replied the girl.  "I knew you  would be all right." 

"And how, pray?" said the young man, blushing at the memory of his  startling appearance upon that rock. 

"I knew that any fellow who could take that dive wouldn't likely  let himself drown.  I guessed, too, that if you

heard me hoot" 

"I did," said the youth. 

"You sure would get slippy right away." 

"I did." 

"I guess you were pretty well startled yourself, weren't you?" said  the girl, pursuing the subject with cool

persistence. 

"Rather," said the young man, blushing more violently, and wishing  she would change the subject.  "You are

going out?" he enquired. 

"Yes." 

"Today?" 

"Nowright away." 

"Too bad," he said, his disappointment evident in his tone. 

"When are you going out?  But who are you, anyway?" asked the girl.  "You have to tell me that." 

"My life story, so to speak?" 

She nodded. 

"It's very short and simple, like the annals of the poor," he  replied.  "From England in infancy, on a ranch in

northern Alberta  for ten years, a puny little wretch I was, terribly bothered with  asthma, then"the boy

hesitated a moment"my mother died, father  moved to Edmonton, lived there for five years, thence to

Wapiti,  away  northwest of Edmonton, our present home, prepared for college  by my  father, university course

in Winnipeg, graduated in theology  a year  ago, now the missionary in charge of Wapiti and the  surrounding

district." 

"A preacher!" said the girl, her face and her tone showing her  disappointment only too plainly. 

"Not much of a preacher, I fear," said the young man with a smile.  "A missionary, rather.  That's my story." 

She noticed with some chagrin that he did not ask for hers. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 7



Top




Page No 10


"What are you doing here?" she enquired. 

He hesitated a moment or two. 

"Dad and I always take a trip into the wilds every summer."  Then  he added after a few moments' pause, "But

of course we have other  business on hand up here." 

"Business?  Up here?" 

"Yes.  Dad has some."  He made as if to continue, but changed his  mind and fell into silence, leaving her

piqued by his reserve and  by  his apparent indifference to the things concerning herself.  She  did  not know that

he was eagerly hoping that she would supply this  information. 

At length he ventured, "Must you go away today?" 

"I don't suppose there's any 'must' about it." 

"Why not stay?" 

"Why should I?" 

"Oh, it would be jolly," he cried.  "You see, we couldexplore  about hereand,"he ended rather

lamely,"it's a lovely country." 

"We've seen a lot of it.  It IS lovely," she said, her eyes upon  his face as if appraising him.  "I should like to

know you better,"  she added, with sudden and characteristic frankness, "so I think we  will stay.  But you will

have to be awfully good to me." 

"Why, of course," he cried.  "That's splendid!  Perfectly jolly!" 

"Then we had better find father and tell him.  Come along," she  ordered, and led the way back to the camp. 

The young man followed her, wondering at her, and giving slight  heed to the chatter she flung over her

shoulder at him as she  strode  along through the bushes. 

"What's the matter with you?" she cried, facing round upon him.  "You were thinking about me, I know.

Confess, now." 

"I was," he acknowledged, smiling at her. 

"What were you thinking?  Tell me," she insisted. 

"I was thinking"  He paused. 

"Go on!" she cried. 

"I was thinking of what your father said about you." 

"My father?  About me?  What did he say?  To you?" 

"No.  To dad." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 8



Top




Page No 11


"What was it?  Tell me.  I must know."  She was very imperious in  her manner.  The youth only smiled at her. 

"Go on!" she said impatiently. 

"I think possibly your father was right," he replied, "when he said  you 'boss the show.'" 

"Oh, that's what he said, eh?  Well, I guess he's about right." 

"But you don't really?" 

"Don't what?  'Boss the show'?  Well, I boss my own show, at any  rate.  Don't you?" 

"Don't I what, exactly?  Boss the show?  Well, I don't think we  have any 'show,' and I don't believe we have

any 'boss.'  Dad and I  just talk things over, you see." 

"But," she insisted, "some one in the last analysis must decide.  Your menage, no matter how simple, must

have a head.  It is a law  of  the universe itself, and it is the law of mankind.  You see, I  have  done some

political economy." 

"And yet," said the young man, "you say you run your own show?" 

"Exactly.  Every social organism must have a head, but every  individual in the organism must live its own free

life.  That is  true  democracy.  But of course you don't understand democracy, you  Canadians." 

"Aha!  There you are!  You Americans are the most insular of all  the great peoples of the world.  You know

nothing of other people.  You know only your own history and not even that correctly, your  own  geography,

and your own political science.  You know nothing of  Canada.  You don't know, for instance, that the purest

form of  democracy on this American continent lies outside the bounds of the  U. S. A." 

"In Canada?" she asked scornfully.  "By the way, how many Canadians  are there?" 

"Yes, I know.  We are a small people," he said quietly, "but no  more  real democracy exists anywhere in the

world than in this country  of  mine.  We are a small people, but," he said, with a sweep of his  hand toward the

west and the north, "the future is with us.  The  day  is coming when along this waterway great cities shall be,

with  factories and humming industries.  These plains, these flowing  hills  will be the home of millions of men,

and in my lifetime,  too." 

His eyes began to glow, his face to shine with a rare and  fascinating beauty. 

"Do you know the statistics of your country?  Do you know that  during the last twenty years the rate of

Canada's growth was three  times greater than ever in the history of the United States?  You  are  a great

commercial nation, but do you know that the per capita  rate of  Canada's trade today is many times that of

the United  States?  You  are a great agricultural people, but do you know that  threequarters  of the wheat land

on this continent is Canadian, and  that before many  years you will be coming to Canada for your wheat,  yes,

and for your  flour?  Do you see that river?  Do you know that  Canada is the richest  country in the world in

water power?  And  more than that, in the  things essential to national greatness,not  these things that you can

see, these material things," he said,  sweeping his hand contemptuously  toward the horizon, "but in such

things as educational standards, in  administration of justice, in  the customs of a liberty loving people,  in

religious privileges, in  everything that goes to make character and  morale, Canada has  already laid the

foundations of a great nation." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 9



Top




Page No 12


He stopped short, abashed, the glow fading from his face, the light  from his eyes. 

"Forgive me," he said, with a little laugh.  "I am a first class  ass.  I fear I was blowing like a fog horn.  But

when you touch  Canada you release something in me." 

While he was speaking her eyes never left his face.  "Go on!" she  said, in a voice of suppressed emotion, "go

on.  I love to hear  you." 

Her wonted poise was gone; she was obviously stirred with deep  emotion. 

"Go on!" she commanded, laying her hand upon his arm.  "Don't stop.  Tell me more aboutabout Canada,

about anything," she added  impatiently. 

A warm, eager light filled her eyes.  She was biting her lips to  still their tremor. 

"There's plenty to tell about Canada," he said, "but not now.  What  started me?  Oh, democracy.  Yes, it was

you that began it.  Democracy?  After all, it is worth while that the people who are  one  day to fill this wide

land should be truly democratic, truly  free, and  truly great." 

Once more the light began to burn in his eyes and in his face. 

"Ah, to have a hand in that!" 

"And you," she said in a low voice, "you with all that in you, are  only a preacher." 

"A missionary," he corrected. 

"Well, a missionary.  Only a missionary." 

Disappointment and scorn were all too evident in her voice. 

"ONLY a missionary.  Ah, if I could only be one.  A missionary!  With a mission and a message to my people!

If only I had the gift  of  tongues, of flaming, burning, illuminating speech, of heart  compelling speech!  To

tell my people how to make this country  truly  great and truly free, how to keep it free from the sordid  things,

the  cruel things, the unjust, the unclean, the loathsome  things that have  debased and degraded the older

nations, that are  debasing and  degrading even your young, great nation.  Ah, to be a  missionary with  a tongue

of fire, with a message of light!  A  missionary to my people  to help them to high and worthy living, to  help

them to God!  ONLY a  missionary!  What would you have me?  A  moneymaker?" 

He turned swiftly upon her, a magnetic, compelling personality.  From the furious scorn in his voice and in his

flaming face she  visibly shrank, almost as if he had struck her. 

"No!" she breathed.  "Nothing else.  Only a missionary." 

Silent she stood, as if still under the spell of his words, her  eyes devouring his face. 

"How your mother would have loved you, would have been proud of  you," she said in a low tone.  "Isis

there no one else toto  rejoice in you?" she asked shyly, but eagerly. 

He laughed aloud.  "There's dad, dear old dad." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 10



Top




Page No 13


"And no one else?"  Still with shy, eager eyes she held him. 

"Oh, heaps," he cried, still laughing. 

She smiled upon him, a slightly uncertain smile, and yet as if his  answer somehow satisfied her. 

"Goodbye," she said impulsively, offering her hand. 

"But you are not going!  You're staying a few days!" he gasped. 

"No, we're going.  We're going right away.  Goodbye," she said.  "I  don't want those others to see.  Goodbye.

Oh, it's been a  wonderful  morning!  And,anda friend is a wonderful discovery." 

Her hand held his in a strong, warm grasp, but her eyes searched  his face as if seeking something she greatly

desired. 

"Goodbye.  I am sorry you are going," he said, simply.  "I want to  know you better." 

"Do you?" she cried, with a sudden eagerness in her voice and  manner.  Then, "No.  You would be

disappointed.  I am not of your  world.  But you shall see me again," she added, as if taking a new  resolve.  "We

are coming back on a big hunt, and you and your  father  are to join us.  Won't you?" 

"Dad said we should," said the youth, smiling at the remembrance. 

"And you?" she said, with a touch of impatience. 

"If things can so arrange themselvesmy work, I mean, and dad's." 

"But, do you want to?  Do you really want to?" she asked.  "I wish  I knew.  I hate not to understand people.

You are hard to know.  I  don't know you.  But you will come?" 

"I think so," said the young man.  "Of course a fellow's work comes  first, you know." 

"Work?" she cried.  "Your work?  Oh, your missionary work.  Oh,  yes, yes.  I should like to see you at it.  Come,

let us go." 

Mr. Cornwall Brand they found in a fever of impatience.  He had the  trip scheduled to a time table, and he

hated to be forced to change  his plans.  His impatience showed itself in snappy commands and  inquiries to his

Indian guides, who, however, merely grunted  replies.  They knew their job and did it without command or

advice,  and with  complete indifference to anything the white man might have  to say.  To  Paula the only

change in his manner was an excess of  politeness. 

Her father, however, met her with remonstrances. 

"Why, Paula, my dear, you have kept us waiting." 

"What's the rush, pater?" she enquired, coolly. 

"Why, my dear, we are already behind our schedule, and you know  Cornwall hates that," he said in a low

voice. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 11



Top




Page No 14


"Cornwall!" said Paula, in a loud voice of unmistakable ill temper.  "Does Cornwall run this outfit?" 

"My dear Paula!" again remonstrated her father. 

She turned to him impatiently, with an angry word at her lips,  caught upon Barry's face a look of surprise,

paused midway in her  passion, then moved slowly toward him. 

"Well," she asked, in an even, cold voice, "what do you think about  it?  And anyway," she dropped her voice

so that none heard but  himself, "why should you halt me?  Who are you, to give me pause  this  way?" 

"Only a missionary," he answered, in an equally low tone, but with  a smile gentle, almost wistful on his face. 

As with a flash the wrathful cloud vanished. 

"A missionary," she replied softly.  "God knows I need one." 

"You do," he said emphatically, and still he smiled. 

"Come, Paula," called Cornwall Brand.  "We are all waiting." 

Her face hardened at his words. 

"Goodbye," she said to Barry.  "I am coming back again toto your  wonderful Canada." 

"Of course you are," said Barry, heartily.  "They all do." 

He went with her to the canoe, steadied her as she took her place,  and stood watching till the bend in the river

shut them from view. 

"Nice people," said his father.  "Very fine, jolly girl." 

"Yes, isn't she?" replied his son. 

"Handsome, too," said his father, glancing keenly at him. 

"Is she?  Yes, I think so.  Yes, indeed, very," he added, as if  pondering the matter.  "When do we move, dad?" 

A look of relief crossed the father's face. 

"This afternoon, I think.  We have only a few days now.  We shall  run up Buffalo Creek into the Foothills for

some trout.  It will be  a  little stiff, but you are fit enough now, aren't you, Barry?"  His  voice was tinged with

anxiety. 

"Fit for anything, dad, thanks to you." 

"Not to me, Barry.  To yourself largely." 

"No," said the boy, throwing his arm round his father's shoulder,  "thanks to you, dear old dad,and to God." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land 12



Top




Page No 15


CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL

On the Red Pine trail two men were driving in a buckboard drawn by  a pair of halfbroken pinto bronchos.

The outfit was a rather  ramshackle affair, and the driver was like his outfit.  Stewart  Duff  was a rancher, once

a "remittance man," but since his marriage  three  years ago he had learned selfreliance and was disciplining

himself in  selfrestraint.  A big, lean man he was, his thick  shoulders and  large, hairy muscular hands

suggesting great physical  strength, his  swarthy face, heavy features, coarse black hair,  keen dark eyes,

deepset under shaggy brows, suggesting force of  character with a  possibility of brutality in passion.  Yet when

he  smiled his heavy  face was not unkindly, indeed the smile gave it a  kind of rugged  attractiveness.  He was

past his first youth, and on  his face were the  marks of the stormy way by which he had come. 

He drove his jibing bronchos with steady hands.  No light touch was  his upon the reins, and the bronchos' wild

plunging met with a  check  from those muscular hands of such iron rigidity as to fling  them back  helpless and

amazed upon their hocks. 

His companion was his opposite in physical appearance, and in those  features and lines that so unmistakably

reveal the nature and  character within.  Short and stout, inclined indeed to fat, to his  great distress, his

thickset figure indicated strength without  agility, solidity without resilience.  He had a pleasant, open  face,

with a kindly, twinkling blue eye that goes with a merry  heart, with a  genial, sunny soul.  But there was in the

blue eye  and in the open  face, for all the twinkles and the smiles, a  certain alert shrewdness  that proclaimed

the keen man of business,  and in the clean cut lips  lay the suggestion of resolute strength.  A likable man he

was, with an  infinite capacity for humour, but  with a bedrock of unyielding  determination in him that always

surprised those who judged him  lightly. 

The men were friends, and had been comrades more or less during  those pioneer days that followed their

arrival in the country from  Scotland some dozen years ago.  Often they had fallen out with each  other, for

Duff was stormy of temper and had a habit of letting  himself swing out upon its gusts of passion, reckless of

consequences; but he was ever the one to offer amends and to seek  renewal of good relations.  He had few

friends, and so he clung the  more closely to those he had.  At such times the other would wait  in  cool,

goodtempered but determined aloofness for his friend's  return. 

"You can chew your cud till you're cool again," he would say when  the outbreak would arise.  But invariably

their differences were  composed and their friendship remained unbroken. 

The men sat in the buckboard, leaning forward with hunched  shoulders, swaying easily to the pitching of the

vehicle as it  rattled along the trail which, especially where it passed over the  round topped ridges, was thickly

strewn with stones.  Before them,  now on the trail and now ranging wide over the prairie, ran a  beautiful black

and white English setter. 

"Great dog that, Sandy," said Duff.  "I could have had a dozen  birds this afternoon.  A wonderful nose, and

steady as a rock." 

"A good dog, Stewart," assented Sandy, but with slight interest. 

"There ain't another like him in this western country," said the  owner of the dog with emphasis. 

"Oh, I don't know about that.  There are some very good dogs around  here, Stewart," replied Sandy lightly. 

"But I know.  And that's why I'm saying there ain't his like in  this western country, and that's as true as your

name is Sandy  Bayne." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 13



Top




Page No 16


"Well, my name is Sandy Bayne, all right, but how did he come out  at the Calgary trials?" 

"Aw, those damned gawks!  They don't know a good dog from a he  goat!  They don't know what a dog is for,

or how to use him." 

"Oh, now, Stewart," said Sandy, "I guess Willocks knows a dog when  he sees one." 

"Willocks!" said his friend with scorn.  "There's where you're  wrong.  Do you know why he cut Slipper out of

the Blue Ribbon?  Because he wouldn't range a mile away.  Darned old fool!  What's  the  good of a point a mile

away!  Keeps you running over the whole  creation, makes you lose time, tires yourself and tires your dog;  and

more than that, in nine cases out of ten you lose your bird.  Give me a  close ranger.  He cleans up as he goes,

keeps your game  right at your  hand, and gets you all the sport there is." 

"Who beat you, Stewart, in the trials?" 

"That bitch of Snider's." 

"Man! Stewart, that's a beautiful bitch!  I know her well.  She's a  beautiful bitch!"  Sandy began to show

enthusiasm. 

"Oh, there you go!  That's just what those fool judges said.  'Beautiful dog!  Beautiful dog!'  Suppose she is!

Looks ain't  everything.  They're something, but the question is, does she get  the  birds?  Now, Slipper there got

three birds to her one.  Got 'em  within  range, too." 

"Ah, but Stewart, yon's a good bitch," said Sandy. 

"Look here!" cried his friend, "I have bred more dogs in the old  country than those men ever saw in their

lives." 

"That may be, Stewart, but yon's a good bitch," persisted Sandy. 

For a mile more they discussed the merits of Slipper and of his  rivals, Sandy with his semihumorous chaff

extracting quiet  amusement  from his friend's wrath, and the latter, though  suspecting that he was  being

drawn, unable to restrain his  passionate championship of his  dog. 

At length Sandy, wearying of the discussion, caught sight of a  figure far before them on the trail. 

"Who is that walking along there?" he enquired. 

Together they ran over the names of all who in this horse country  were unfortunate enough to be doomed to a

pedestrian form of  locomotion. 

"Guess it's the preacher," said Duff finally, whose eyes were like  a hawk's. 

"He's been out at my place Sunday afternoon," said Sandy, "but I  haven't met him myself.  What sort is he?" 

"Don't ask me.  I sometimes go with the madame to church, but  generally I fall asleep.  He's no alarm clock." 

"Then you can't tell what sort of a preacher he is," said Sandy  with a twinkle in his eye.  "You can't hear much

when you are  asleep." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 14



Top




Page No 17


"I hear enough to know that he's no good as a preacher.  I hear  they're going to fire him." 

"I tell you what it is, Stewart," said Sandy, "I don't believe you  would know a good sermon if you heard one." 

"What's that you say?  I've heard the best preachers in the country  that breeds preachers, in the country where

preachers grow like the  berries on the bramble bushes.  I know preaching, and I like good  preaching, too." 

"Oh, come off, Stewart!  You may be a good judge of dogs, but I'm  blowed if I am going to take you as a

judge of preachers." 

"The same qualities in all of them, dogs, horses, preachers,"  insisted Duff. 

"How do you make that out?" 

"Well, take a horse.  He must be a goodlooker.  This preacher is a  goodlooker, all right, but looks ain't

everything.  Must be quick  at  the start, must have good action, good style, staying power, and  good  at the

finish.  Most preachers never know when to finish, and  that's  the way with this man." 

"Are you going to take him up?" inquired Sandy, for they were now  close upon the man walking before them. 

"Oh, I guess not," replied Duff.  "I haven't much use for him." 

"Say, what's the matter with him?  He looks rather puffed out,"  said Sandy.  "Better take him up." 

"All right," replied Duff, pulling up his bronchos.  "Good day.  Will you have a ride?  Mr. Barry Dunbar, my

friend Mr. Bayne." 

"Glad to meet you, Mr. Bayne," said Barry, who was pale and panting  hard.  "Thanks for the lift.  The

truthisI'm ratherdone up.  A  touch of asthmathe firstin five years.  An old trouble of  mine." 

"Get up here," said Sandy.  "There's room for three in the seat." 

"Nothank you,I shouldcrowd you,all right behind here.  Beastly businessthis asthma.  Worse

whenthe pollenfrom the  plantsis floatingaboutso they say.  I don't knownobody  doesI

fancy."  They drove on, bumping over the stones, Barry  gradually getting back his wind.  The talk of the men

in the front  seat had fallen again on dogs, Stewart maintaining with ever  increasing vehemence his expert

knowledge of dogs, of hunting dogs,  and very especially of setter hunting dogs; his friend, while  granting his

knowledge of dogs in general, questioning the  unprejudiced nature of his judgment as far as Slipper was

concerned. 

As Duff's declarations grew in violence they became more and more  elaborately decorated with profanity.  In

the full tide of their  conversation a quiet voice broke in: 

"Too many 'damns.'" 

"What!" exclaimed Duff. 

"I beg your pardon!" said Sandy. 

"Too many 'damns,'" said Barry, looking quietly at Duff. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 15



Top




Page No 18


"Dams?  Where?" said Duff, looking about. 

"Beaver dams, do you mean?" enquired Sandy.  "I don't see any." 

"Too many 'damns,'" reiterated Barry.  "You don't need them.  You  really don't need them, you know, and

besides, they are not right.  Profanity is quite useless, and it's wicked." 

"Well, I'll be damned!" said Stewart in a low voice to his friend.  "He means us." 

"And quite right, too," said Sandy solemnly.  "You know your  English is rotten bad.  Yes, sir," he continued,

turning round to  Barry, "I quite agree with you.  My friend is quite unnecessarily  free in his speech." 

"Yes, but you are just the same, you know," said Barry.  "Not quite  so many, but then you are not quite so

excited." 

"Got you there, old sport," grunted Duff, highly amused at Sandy's  discomfiture.  But to Barry he said, "I

guess it's our own business  how we express ourselves." 

"Yes, it is, but, pardon me, not entirely so.  There are others in  the world, you know, and you must consider

others.  The habit is a  bad habit, a rotten habit, and quite uselesssilly, indeed." 

Duff turned his back upon him.  Sandy, giving his friend a nudge,  burst into a loud laugh. 

"You are right, sir," he said, turning to Barry.  "You are quite  right." 

At this point Slipper created a diversion. 

"Hello!" said Duff.  "Say!  Look at him!"  He pointed to the dog.  "Ain't he a picture!" 

A hundred yards away stood Slipper, rigid, every muscle, every hair  taut, one foot arrested in air. 

"I'll just get those," said Duff, slipping out of the buckboard and  drawing the gun from beneath the seat.

"Steady, old boy, steady!  Hold the lines, Sandy." 

He moved quickly toward the dog who, quivering with that mysterious  instinct found in the hunting dog, still

held the point with taut  muscles, nose and tail in line. 

"Hello!" Barry called out.  "It isn't the season yet for chicken.  I say, Mr. Duff," he shouted, "it isn't the chicken

season, you  know." 

"Better leave him alone," said Sandy. 

"But it isn't the season yet!  It is against the law!" protested  Barry indignantly. 

Meantime Stewart Duff was closing up cautiously behind Slipper. 

"Forward, old boy!  Steeeady!  Forward!"  The dog refused to  move.  "Forward, Slipper!" 

Still the dog remained rigid, as if nailed to the ground. 

"On, Slipper!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 16



Top




Page No 19


Slowly the dog turned his head with infinite caution half round  toward his master, as if in protest. 

"Hello, there!" shouted Barry, "you know" 

Just as he called there was on all sides a great whirring of wings.  A dozen chicken flew up from under Duff's

feet.  Bang! Bang! went  his  gun. 

"Missed, as I'm a sinner!" exclaimed Sandy.  "I thought he was a  better shot than that." 

Back came Duff striding wide toward the buckboard.  Fifty yards  away he shouted: 

"Say! what the devil do you mean calling like that at a man when  he's on the point of shooting!"  His face was

black with anger.  He  looked ready to strike.  Barry looked at him steadily. 

"But, I was just reminding you that it was not the season for  chicken yet," he said in the tone of a man

prepared to reason the  matter. 

"What's that got to do with it!  And anyway, whose business is it  what I do but my own?" 

"But it's against the law!" 

"Oh, blank the law!  Besides" 

"Besides it isn'twell, you know, it isn't quite sporting to shoot  out of season."  Barry's manner was as if

dealing with a fractious  child. 

Duff, speechless with his passion, looked at him as if not quite  sure what form his vengeance should take. 

"He's quite right, Stewart," said his friend Sandy, who was hugely  enjoying himself.  "You know well enough

you are down on the farmer  chaps who go pot hunting before season.  It's rotten sport, you  know." 

"Oh, hell!  Will you shut up!  Can't I shoot over my dog when he  points?  I'm not out shooting.  If I want to give

my dog a little  experience an odd bird or two don't matter.  Besides, what the" 

"Oh, come on, Stewart!  Get in, and get a move on!  You know you  are in the wrong.  But I thought you were a

better shot than that,"  added Sandy. 

His remark diverted Duff's rage. 

"Better shot!" he stormed.  "Who could shoot with aaa" he was  feeling round helplessly for a properly

effective word,"with a  fellow yelling at you?" he concluded lamely.  "I'd have had a brace  of them if it

hadn't been for him." 

"In that case," said Barry coolly, "I saved you from the law." 

"Saved me from the law!  What the devil do you mean, anyway?" said  Stewart.  "If I want to pick up a bird

who's to hinder me?  And  what's the law got to do with it?" 

"Well, you know, I'm not sure but it might have been my duty to  report you.  I feel that all who break the

game laws should be  reported.  It is the only way to stop the lawless destruction of  the  game." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 17



Top




Page No 20


Barry spoke in a voice of quiet deliberation, as if pondering the  proper action in the premises. 

"Quite right, too," said Sandy gravely, but with a twinkle in his  blue eye.  "They ought to be reported.  I have

no use for those  poachers." 

Duff made no reply.  His rage and disgust, mingled with the sense  of his being in the wrong, held him silent.

No man in the whole  country was harder upon the game poachers than he, but to be held  up  in his action and

to be threatened with the law by this young  preacher, whom he rather despised anyway, seemed to paralyse

his  mental activities.  It did not help his selfcontrol that he was  aware that his friend was having his fun of

him. 

At this moment, fortunately for the harmony of the party, their  attention was arrested by the appearance of a

motor car driven at a  furious rate along the trail, and which almost before they were  aware  came honking

upon them.  With a wild lurch the bronchos  hurled  themselves from the trail, upsetting the buckboard and

spilling its  load. 

Duff, cumbered with his gun, which he had reloaded, allowed one of  the reins to drop from his hands and the

team went plunging about  in  a circle, but Barry, the first to get to his feet, rushed to the  rescue, snatched the

reins and held on till he had dragged the  plunging bronchos to a halt. 

The rage which had been boiling in Duff, and which with difficulty  had been held within bounds, suddenly

burst all bonds of control.  With a fierce oath he picked up the gun which he had thrown aside  in  his struggle

with the horses, and levelled it at the speeding  motor  car. 

"For God's sake, Stewart, stop!" shouted Bayne, springing toward  his friend. 

Barry was nearer and quicker.  The shot went off, but his hand had  knocked up the gun. 

"My God, Stewart!  Are you clean crazy!" said Bayne, gripping him  by the arm.  "Do you know what you are

doing?  You are not fit to  carry a gun!" 

"I'd have bust his blanked tires for him, anyway!" blustered Duff,  though his face and voice showed that he

had received a shock. 

"Yes, and you might have been a murderer by this time, and heading  for the pen, but for Dunbar here.  You

owe him more than you can  ever  pay, you blanked fool!" 

Duff made no reply, but busied himself with his horses.  Nor did he  speak again till everything was in

readiness for the road. 

"Get in," he then said gruffly, and that was his last word until  they drove into the village. 

At the store he drew up. 

"Thank you for the lift," said Barry.  "I should have had a tough  job to get back in time." 

Duff grunted at him, and passed on into the store. 

"I am very glad to have met you," said Bayne, shaking hands warmly  with him.  "You have done us both a

great service.  He is my  friend,  you know." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL 18



Top




Page No 21


"I am afraid I have offended him, all the same.  But you see I  couldn't help it, could I?" 

Bayne looked at his young, earnest face for a moment or two as if  studying him, then said with a curious

smile, "No, I don't believe  you could have helped it."  And with that he passed into the store. 

"What sort of a chap is that preacher of yours?" he asked of the  storekeeper. 

"I don't know; he ain't my church.  Ask Innes there.  He's a  pillar." 

Bayne turned to a long, lean, hardfaced man leaning against the  counter. 

"My name is Bayne, from Red Pine, Mr. Innes.  I am interested in  knowing what sort of a chap your preacher

is.  He comes out to our  section, but I never met him till today." 

"Oh, he's no that bad," said Innes cautiously. 

"Not worth a cent," said a little, red headed man standing near.  "He can't preach for sour apples." 

"I wadna just say that, Mr. Hayes," said Innes. 

"How do you know, Innes?" retorted Hayes.  "You know you fall  asleep before he gets rightly started." 

"I aye listen better with ma eyes shut." 

"Yes, and snore better, too, Mac," said Hayes.  "But I don't blame  you.  Most of them go to sleep anyway.

That's the kind of preacher  he is." 

"What sort of a chap is he?  I mean what sort of man?" 

"Well, for one thing, he's always buttin' in," volunteered a  squarebuilt military looking man standing near.

"If he'd stick to  his gospel it wouldn't be so bad, but he's always pokin' his nose  into everything." 

"But he's no that bad," said Innes again, "and as for buttin' in,  McFettridge, and preachin' the gospel, I doubt

the country is a  good  deal the better for the buttin' in that him and his likes have  done  this past year.  And

besides, the bairns all like him." 

"Well, that's not a bad sign, Mr. Innes," said Sandy Bayne, "and  I'm not sure that I don't like him myself.  But

I guess he butts  in,  all right." 

"Oh, ay! he butts in," agreed Innes, "but I'm no so sure that  that's no a part of his job, too." 

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE

The Dunbars lived in a cottage on a back street, which had the  distinction of being the only home on the

street which possessed  the  adornment of a garden.  A unique garden it was, too.  Indeed,  with the  single

exception of Judge Hepburn's garden, which was  quite an  elaborate affair, and which was said to have cost

the  Judge a "pile of  money," there was none to compare with it in the  village of Wapiti. 

Any garden on that bare, windswept prairie meant toil and infinite  pains, but a garden like that of the

Dunbars represented in  addition  something of genius.  In conception, in design, and in  execution the  Dunbars'


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 19



Top




Page No 22


garden was something apart.  Visitors were  taken 'round to  the back street to get a glimpse of the Dunbars'

cottage and garden. 

The garden was in two sections.  That at the back of the cottage,  sheltered by a high, close board fence

covered with Virginia  creeper,  was given over to vegetables, and it was quite marvellous  how, under  Richard

Dunbar's care, a quarter of an acre of ground  could grow such  enormous quantities of vegetables of all kinds.

Next to the vegetable  garden came the plot for small fruits  strawberries, raspberries,  currants, of rare

varieties. 

The front garden was devoted to flowers.  Here were to be found the  old fashioned flowers dear to our

grandmothers, and more particularly  the old fashioned flowers native to English and Scottish soil.  Between

the two gardens a thick row of tall, splendid sunflowers  made  a stately hedge.  Then came larkspur, peonies,

stocks, and  sweetwilliams, verbenas and mignonette, with borders of lobelia and  heliotrope.  Along the fence

were sweet peas, for which Alberta is  famous. 

But it was the part of the garden close about the front porch and  verandah where the particular genius of

Richard Dunbar showed  itself.  Here the flowers native to the prairie, the coulee, the  canyon, were  gathered;

the early wind flower, the crowfoot and the  buffalo bean,  wild snowdrops and violets.  Over trellises ran the

tiny  morningglory, with vetch and trailing arbutus.  A bed of wild  roses  grew to wonderful perfection.  Later

in the year would be  seen the  yellow and crimson lilies, daisies white and golden, and  when other  flowers had

faded, golden rod and asters in gorgeous  contrast.  The  approach to the door of the house was by a gravel  walk

bordered by  these prairie flowers. 

The house inside fulfilled the promise of the garden.  The living  room, simple in its plan, plain in its

furnishing, revealed  everywhere that touch in decorative adornment that spoke of the  cultivated mind and

refined taste.  A group of rare etchings had  their place over the mantel above a large, open fireplace.  On the

walls were to be seen really fine copies of the world's most famous  pictures, and on the panels which ran

'round the walls were bits of  pottery and china, relics of other days and of other homes. 

But what was most likely to strike the eye of a stranger on  entering the living room was the array of different

kinds of  musical  instruments.  At one end of the room stood a small upright  piano, a  'cello held one corner, a

guitar another; upon a table a  cornet was  deposited, and on the piano a violin case could be seen,  while a

banjo  hung from a nail on the wall. 

Near the fireplace a curiously carved piperack hung, with some  half dozen pipes of weird design, evidently

the collection of  years,  while just under it a small table held the utensils sacred  to the  smoker. 

When Barry entered he found the table set and everything in  readiness for tea. 

"Awfully sorry I'm too late to help you with tea, dad.  I have had  a long walk, and quite a deuce of a time

getting home." 

"All right, boy.  Glad you are here.  The toast is ready, tea  waiting to be infused.  But what happened?  No, don't

begin telling  me till you get yourself ready.  But hurry, your meeting hour will  be  on in no time." 

"Righto, dad!  Shame to make a slavey of you in this way.  I'll be  out in a jiffy." 

He threw off his coat and vest, shirt and collar, took a pail of  water to a big block in the little shed at the back,

soused his  head  and shoulders in it with loud snorting and puffing, and  emerged in a  few minutes looking

refreshed, clean and wholesome,  his handsome face  shining with vigorous health. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 20



Top




Page No 23


Together they stood at the table while the son said a few words of  reverent grace. 

"I'm ravenous, dad.  What!  Fried potatoes!  Oh, you are a brick." 

"Tired, boy?" 

"No.  That reminds me of my thrilling tale, which I shall begin  after my third slice of toast, and not before.

You can occupy the  precious minutes, dad, in telling me of your excitements in the  office this afternoon." 

"Don't sniff at me.  I had a few, though apparently you think it  impossible in my humdrum grey life." 

"Good!" said Barry, his mouth full of toast.  "Go on." 

"Young Neil Fraser is buying, or has just bought, the S.Q.R.  ranch.  Filed the transfer today." 

"Neil Fraser?  He's in my tale, too.  Bought the S.Q.R.?  Where did  he get the stuff?" 

"Stuff?" 

"Dough, the dirt, the wherewithal, in short the currency, dad." 

"Barry, you are ruining your English," said his father. 

"Yumyum.  Bully!  Did you notice that, dad?  I'm coming on, eh?  One thing I almost pray about, that I might

become expert in  slinging  the modern jaw hash.  I'm appallingly correct in my forms  of speech.  But go on,

dad.  I'm throwing too much vocalisation  myself.  You were  telling me about Neil Fraser.  Give us the chorus

now." 

"I don't like it, boy," said his father, shaking his head, "and  especially in a clergyman." 

"But that's where you are off, dad.  The trouble is, when I come  within range of any of my flock all my flip

vocabulary absolutely  vanishes, and I find myself talking like a professor of English or  a  maiden lady school

ma'am of very certain age." 

"I don't like it, boy.  Correct English is the only English for a  gentleman." 

"I wonder," said the lad.  "But I don't want to worry you, dad." 

"Oh, as for me, that matters nothing at all, but I am thinking of  you and of your profession, your standing." 

"I know that, dad.  I sometimes wish you would think a little more  about yourself.  But what of Neil Fraser?" 

"He has come into some money.  He has bought the ranch." 

Barry's tone expressed doubtful approval.  "Neil is a good sort,  dad, awfully reckless, but I like him," said

Barry.  "He is up and  up  with it all." 

"Now, what about your afternoon?" said his father. 

"Well, to begin with, I had a dose of my old friend, the enemy." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 21



Top




Page No 24


"Barry, you don't tell me!  Your asthma!"  His father sat back from  the table gazing at him in dismay.  "And I

thought that was all  done  with." 

"So did I, dad.  But it really didn't amount to much.  Probably  some stomach derangement, more likely some

of that pollen which is  floating around now.  I passed through a beaver meadow where they  were cutting hay,

and away I went in a gale of sneezing, forty  miles  an hour.  But I'm all right now, dad.  I'm telling you the

truth.  You  know I do." 

"Yes, yes, I know," said his father, concern and relief mingling in  his voice, "but you don't know how to take

care of yourself, Barry.  But go on with your tale." 

"Well, as I was panting along like a 'heavey horse,' as Harry Hobbs  would say,not really too bad,

dad,along comes that big rancher,  Stewart Duff, driving his team of pinto bronchos, and with him a  chap

named Bayne, from Red Pine Creek.  He turned out to be an  awfully  decent sort.  And Duff's dog, Slipper,

ranging on ahead, a  beautiful  setter." 

"Yes, I have seen him." 

They discussed for a few moments the beauties and points of Duff's  Slipper, for both were keen sportsmen,

and both were devoted to  dogs.  Then Barry went back to his tale and gave an account of what  had  happened

during the ride home. 

"You see Slipper ranging about got 'on point' and beautiful work it  was, too.  Out jumped Duff with his gun,

ready to shoot, though, of  course, he knew it was out of season and that he was breaking the  law.  Well, just as

Slipper flushed the birds, I shouted to Duff  that  he was shooting out of season.  He missed." 

"Oh, he was properly wrathful at my spoiling his shot," cried the  young man. 

"I don't know that I blame him, Barry," said his father  thoughtfully.  "It is an annoying thing to be shouted at

with your gun  on a bird,  you know, extremely annoying." 

"But he was breaking the law, dad!" cried Barry indignantly. 

"I know, I know.  But after all" 

"But, dad, you can't sit there and tell me that you don't condemn  him for shooting out of season.  You know

nothing makes you more  furious than hearing about chaps who pot chicken out of season." 

"I know, I know, my boy."  The father was apparently quite  distressed.  "You are quite right, but" 

"Now, dad, I won't have it!  You are not to tell me that I had no  business to stop him if I could.  Besides, the

law is the law, and  sport is sport." 

"I quite agree, Barry.  Believe me, I quite agree.  Yet all the  same, a chap does hate to have his shot spoiled,

and to shout at a  fellow with his gun on a bird,well, you'll excuse me, Barry, but  it  is hardly the sporting

thing." 

"Sporting!  Sporting!" said Barry.  "I know that I hated to do it,  but it was right.  Besides talk about

'sporting'what about  shooting  out of season?" 

"Yes, yes.  Well, we won't discuss it.  Go on, Barry." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 22



Top




Page No 25


"But I don't like it, dad.  I don't like to think that you don't  approve of what I do.  It was a beastly hard thing to

do, anyway.  I  had to make myself do it.  It was my duty."  The young man sat  looking  anxiously at his father. 

"Well, my boy," said his father, "I may be wrong, but do you think  you are always called upon to remonstrate

with every law breaker?  No,  listen to me," he continued hurriedly.  "What I mean is, must  you or  any of us

assume responsibility for every criminal in the  land?" 

Barry sat silent a moment, considering this proposition. 

"I wish I knew, dad.  You know, I have often said that to excuse  myself after I have funked a thing, and let

something go by without  speaking up against it." 

"Funked it!" 

"Yes.  Funked standing up for the right thing, you know." 

"Funked it!" said his father again.  "You wouldn't do that, Barry?" 

"Oh, wouldn't I, though?  I am afraid you don't know me very well,  dad.  However, I rather think I had started

him up before that, you  know.  You won't like this either.  But I may as well go through  with  it.  You know, he

was swearing and cursing most awfully, just  in his  ordinary talk you know, and that is a thing I can't stand,  so

I up and  told him he was using too many 'damns.'" 

"You did, eh?"  In spite of himself the father could not keep the  surprise out of his voice.  "Well, that took

some nerve, at any  rate." 

"There you are again, dad!  You think I had no right to speak.  But  somehow I can't help feeling I was right.

For don't you see, it  would have seemed a bit like lowering the flag to have kept  silent." 

"Then for God's sake speak out, lad!  I do not feel quite the same  way as you, but it is what you think yourself

that must guide you.  But go on, go on." 

"Well, I assure you he was in a proper rage, and if it hadn't been  for Bayne I believe he would have trimmed

me to a peak, administered  a fitting castigation, I mean." 

"He would, eh?" said the father with a grim smile.  "I should like  to see him try." 

"So should I, dad, if you were around.  I think I see youfeint  with the right, then left, right, left! bing! bang!

bung!  All over  but the shiver, eh, dad?  It would be sweet!  But," he added  regretfully, "that's the very thing a

fellow cannot do." 

"Cannot do?  And why not, pray?  It is what every fellow is in duty  bound to do to a bully of that sort." 

"Yes, but to be quite fair, dad, you could hardly call Duff a  bully.  At least, he wasn't bullying me.  As a matter

of fact, I  was  bullying him.  Oh, I think he had reason to be angry.  When a  chap  undertakes to pull another

chap up for law breaking, perhaps  he should  be prepared to take the consequences.  But to go on.  Bayne

stepped  inawfully decent of him, too,when just at that  moment, as  novelists say, with startling

suddenness occurred an  event that  averted the impending calamity.  Along came Neil Fraser,  no less, in  that

new car of his, in a whirlwind of noise and dust,  honking like a  flock of wild geese.  Well, you should have

seen  those bronchos.  One  lurch, and we were on the ground, a beautiful  upset, and the bronchos  in an

incipient runaway, fortunately  checked by your humble servant.  Duff, in a new and real rage this  time, up


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 23



Top




Page No 26


with his gun and banged  off both barrels after the motor  car, by this time honking down the  trail." 

"By Jove! he deserved it," said the father.  "Those motor fellows  make me long to do murder at times." 

"That's because you have no car, Dad, of course." 

"Did he hit him, do you think?" 

"No.  My arm happened to fly up, the gun banged toward the zenith.  Nothing doing!" 

"Well, Barry, you do seem to have run foul of Mr. Duff." 

"Three times, dad.  But each time prevented him from breaking the  law and doing himself and others injury.

Would you have let him  off  this last time, dad?" 

"No, no, boy.  Human life has the first claim upon our care.  You  did quite right, quite right.  Ungovernable

fool he must be!  Shouldn't be allowed to carry a gun." 

"So Bayne declared," said Barry. 

"Well, you have had quite an exciting afternoon.  But finish your  tea and get ready for the meeting.  I will

wash up." 

"Not if I know it, dad.  You take your sawhorse and do me a little  Handel or Schubert.  Do, please," entreated

his son.  "I want that  before meeting more than anything else.  I want a change of mood.  I  confess I am slightly

rattled.  My address is all prepared, but I  must  have atmosphere before I go into the meeting." 

His father took the 'cello, and after a few moments spent in  carefully tuning up, began with Handel's immortal

Largo, then he  wandered into the Adagio Movement in Haydn's third Sonata, from  thence to Schubert's

Impromptu in C Minor, after which he began the  Serenade, when he was checked by his son. 

"No, not that, dad, that's sickening.  I consider that the most  morally relaxing bit of music that I know.  It frays

the whole  moral  fibre.  Give us one of Chopin's Ballades, or better still a  bit of  that posthumous Fantasie

Impromptu, the largo movement.  Ah!  fine!  fine!" 

He flung his dishcloth aside, ran to the piano and began an  accompaniment to his father's playing. 

"Now, dad, the Largo once more before we close."  They did the  Largo once and again, then springing from

the piano Barry cried:  "That Largo is a means of grace to me.  There could be no better  preparation for a

religious meeting than that.  If you would only  come in and play for them, it would do them much more good

than all  my preaching." 

"If you would only take your music seriously, Barry," replied his  father, somewhat sadly, "you would become

a good player, perhaps  even  a great player." 

"And then what, dad?" 

His father waved him aside, putting up his 'cello. 

"No use going into that again, boy." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 24



Top




Page No 27


"Well, I couldn't have been a great player, at any rate, dad." 

"Perhaps not, boy, perhaps not," said his father.  "Great players  are very rare.  But it is time for your meeting." 

"So it is, dad.  Awfully sorry I didn't finish up those dishes.  Let them go till I return.  I wish you would, dad,

and come along  with me."  His voice had a wistful note in it. 

"Not tonight, boy, I think.  We will have some talk after.  You  will only be an hour, you know." 

"All right, dad," said Barry.  "Some time you may come."  He could  not hide the wistful regret of his tone. 

"Perhaps I shall, boy," replied his father. 

It was the one point upon which there was a lack of perfect harmony  between father and son.  When the boy

went to college it was with  the  intention of entering the profession of law, for which his  father had  been

reading in his young manhood when the lure of  Canada and her  broad, free acres caught him, and he had

abandoned  the law and with  his wife and baby boy had emigrated to become a  land owner in the  great

Canadian west. 

Alas! death, that rude spoiler of so many plans, broke in upon the  sanctity and perfect peace of that happy

ranch home and ravished it  of its treasure, leaving a broken hearted man and a little boy,  orphaned and sickly,

to be cared for.  The ranch was sold, the  rancher moved to the city of Edmonton, thence in a few years to a

little village some twentyfive miles nearer to the Foothills,  where  he became the Registrar and Homestead

Inspector for the  district. 

Here he had lived ever since, training the torn tendrils of his  heart about the lad, till peace came back again,

though never the  perfect joy of the earlier days.  Every May Day the two were wont  to  go upon an expedition

many miles into the Foothills, to a  little,  sunny spot, where a strong, palisaded enclosure held a  little grave.

So little it looked, and so lonely amid the great  hills.  There, not  in an abandonment of grief, but in loving and

grateful remembrance of  her whose dust the little grave now held,  of what she had been to  them, and had

done for them, they spent the  day, returning to take up  again with hearts solemn, tender and  chastened, the

daily routine of  life. 

That his son should grow to take up the profession of law had been  the father's dream, but during his

university course the boy had  come  under the compelling influence of a spiritual awakening that  swept him

into a world filled with new impressions and other  desires.  Obeying  what he felt to be an imperative call, the

boy  chose the church as his  profession, and after completing his  theological course in the city of  Winnipeg,

and spending a year in  study in Germany, while still a mere  youth he had been appointed as  missionary to the

district of which his  own village was the centre. 

But though widely separate from each other in the matter of  religion,  there were many points of contact

between them.  They were  both men  of the great outofdoors, and under his father's inspiration  and  direction

the boy had come to love athletic exercises of all  kinds.  They were both musicmad, the father having had in

early youth  a  thorough musical education, the boy possessing musical talent of a  high order.  Such training as

was his he had received from his  father, but it was confined to one single instrument, the violin.  To  this

instrument, upon which his father had received the tuition  of a  really excellent master, the son devoted long

hours of study  and  practice during his boyhood years, and his attainments were such  as to  give promise of

something more than an amateur's mastery of  his  instrument.  His college work, however, interfered with his

music, and  to his father's great disappointment and regret he was  forced to lay  aside his study of the violin.

On the piano, however,  the boy  developed an extraordinary power of improvisation and of  sight  reading, and

while his technique was faulty his insight, his  power of  interpretation were far in excess of many artists who


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 25



Top




Page No 28


were  his  superiors in musical knowledge and power of execution.  Many  were the  hours the father and son

spent together through the long  evenings of  the western winter, and among the many bonds that held  them in

close  comradeship, none was stronger than their common  devotion to music. 

Long after his son had departed to his meeting the father sat  dreaming over his 'cello, wandering among the

familiar bits from  the  old masters as fancy led him, nor was he aware of the lapse of  time  till his son returned. 

"Hello!  Ninethirty?" he exclaimed, looking at his watch.  "You  have given them an extra dose tonight." 

"Business meeting afterwards, which didn't come off after all,"  said his son.  "Postponed till next Sunday."

With this curt  announcement, and without further comment he sat down at his desk. 

But after a few moments he rose quickly, saying, "Let us do some  real work, dad." 

He took up his violin.  His father, who was used to his moods,  without question or remark proceeded to tune

up.  An hour's hard  practice followed, without word from either except as regarded the  work in hand. 

"I feel better now, dad," said the young man when they had  finished.  "And now for a round with you." 

"But what about your wind, boy?  I don't like that asthma of yours  this afternoon." 

"I am quite all right.  It's quite gone.  I feel sure it was the  pollen from the beaver meadow." 

They cleared back the table and chairs from the centre of the room,  stripped to their shirts, put on the gloves

and went at each other  with vim.  Their style was similar, for the father had taught the  son  all he knew, except

that the father's was the fighting and the  son's  the sparring style.  Tonight the roles appeared to be  reversed,

the  son pressing hard at the infighting, the father  trusting to his foot  work and countering with the light

touch of a  man making points. 

"You ARE boring in, aren't you?" said the father, stopping a fierce  rally. 

"You are not playing up, dad," said his son.  "I don't feel like  soft work tonight.  Come to me!" 

"As you say," replied the father, and for the next five minutes  Barry had no reason to complain of soft work,

for his father went  after him with all the fight that was in him, so that in spite of a  vigorous defence the son

was forced to take refuge in a runaway  game. 

"Now you're going!" shouted the son, making a fierce counter with  his right to a hard driven left, which he

sidestepped.  It was a  fatal exposure.  Like the dart of a snake the right hand hook got  him  below the jaw, and

he was hurled breathless on the couch at the  side  of the room. 

"Got you now!" said his father. 

"Not quite yet," cried Barry.  Like a cat he was on his feet,  breathing deep breaths, dodging about, fighting for

time. 

"Enough!" cried his father, putting down his hands. 

"Play up!" shouted Barry, who was rapidly recovering his wind.  "No  soft work.  Watch out!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 26



Top




Page No 29


Again the father was on guard, while Barry, who seemed to have  drawn upon some secret source of strength,

came at him with a  whirlwind attack, feinting, jabbing, swinging, hooking, till  finally  he landed a short half

arm on the jaw, which staggered his  father  against the wall. 

"Pax!" cried the young man.  "I have all I want." 

"Great!" said his father.  "I believe you could fight, boy, if you  were forced to." 

In the shed they sluiced each other with pails of water, had a rub  down and got into their dressing gowns. 

"I feel fine, now, dad, and ready for anything," said Barry,  glowing with his exercise and his tub.  "I was

feeling like a  quitter.  I guess that asthma got at my nerve.  But I believe I  will  see it through some way." 

"Yes?" said his father, and waited. 

"Yes.  They were talking blue ruin in there tonight.  Finances are  behind, congregation is running down,

therefore the preacher is a  failure." 

"Well, lad, remember this," said his father, "never let your liver  decide any course of action for you.  Some

good stiff work, a turn  with the gloves, for instance, is the best preparation I know for  any  important decision.

A man cannot decide wisely when he feels  grubby.  Your asthma this afternoon is a symptom of liver." 

"It is humiliating to a creature endowed with conscience and  intellect to discover how small a part these play

at times in his  decisions.  The ancients were not far wrong who made the liver the  seat of the emotions." 

"Well," said his father, "it is a good thing to remember that most  of our bad hours come from our livers.  So

the preacher is a  failure?  Who said so?" 

"Oh, a number of them, principally Hayes." 

"Thank God, and go to sleep," said his father.  "If Hayes were  pleased with my preaching I should greatly

suspect my call to the  ministry." 

"But seriously, I am certainly not a great preacher, and perhaps  not a preacher at all.  They say I have no 'pep,'

which with some  of  them appears to be the distinctive and altogether necessary  characteristic of a popular

preacher." 

"What said Innes?" enquired his father. 

"Did you ever hear Innes say much?  From his silence one would  judge that he must possess the accumulated

wisdom of the ages." 

"When he does talk, however, he generally says something.  What was  his contribution?" 

"'Ah, weel,' said the silent one, 'Ah doot he's no a Spurgeon, not  yet a Billy Sunday, but ye'll hardly be

expectin' thae fowk at  Wapiti  for nine hundred dollars a year.'  Then, bless his old  heart, he  added, 'But the

bairns tak to him like ducks to water, so  you'd better  bide a bit.'  So they decided to 'bide a bit' till  next

Sunday.  Dad,  at first I wanted to throw their job in their  faces, only I always  know that it is the old Adam in

me that feels  like that, so I decided  to 'bide a bit' too." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 27



Top




Page No 30


"It is a poor job, after all, my boy," said his father.  "It's no  gentleman's job the way it is carried on in this

country.  To think  of your being at the bidding of a creature like Hayes!" 

He could have said no better word.  The boy's face cleared like the  sudden shining of the sun after rain.  He

lifted his head and said, 

"Thank God, not at his bidding, dad.  'One is your Master,'" he  quoted.  "But after all, Hayes has something

good in him.  Do you  know, I rather like him.  He's" 

"Oh, come now, we'll drop it right there," said his father, in a  disgusted tone.  "When you come to finding

something to like in  that  rat, I surrender." 

"Who knows?" said the boy, as if to himself.  "Poor Hayes.  He may  be quite a wonderful man, considering all

things, his heredity and  his environment.  What would I have been, dad, but for you?" 

His father grunted, pulled hard at his pipe, coughed a bit, then  looked his son straight in the face, saying,

"God knows what any of  us owe to our past."  He fell into silence.  His mind was far away,  following his heart

to the palisaded plot of ground among the  Foothills and the little grave there in which he had covered from

his  sight her that had been the inspiration to his best and finest  things,  and his defence against the things low

and base that had  once hounded  his soul, howling hard upon his trail. 

The son, knowing his mood, sat in silence with him, then rising  suddenly he sat himself on the arm of his

father's chair, threw his  arm around his shoulder and said, "Dear old dad!  Good old boy you  are, too.  Good

stuff!  What would I have been but for you?  A  puny,  puling, wretched little crock, afraid of anything that

could  spit at  me.  Do you remember the old gander?  I was near my eternal  damnation  that day." 

"But you won out, my boy," said his father in a croaking voice,  putting his arm round his son. 

"Yes, because you made me stick it, just as you have often made me  stick it since.  May God forget me if I

ever forget what you have  done for me.  Shall we read now?" 

He took the big Bible from its place upon the table, and turning  the leaves read aloud from the teachings of

the world's greatest  Master.  It was the parable of the talents. 

"Rather hard on the failure," he said as he closed the book. 

"No, not the failure," said his father, "the slacker, the quitter.  It is nature's law.  There is no place in God's

universe for a  quitter." 

"You are right, dad," said Barry.  "Goodnight." 

He kissed his father, as he had ever done since his earliest  infancy.  Their prayers were said in private, the son,

clergyman  though he was, could never bring himself to offer to lead the  devotions of him at whose knee he

had kneeled every night of his  life, as a boy, for his evening prayer. 

"Goodnight, boy," said his father, holding him by the hand for a  moment or so.  "We do not know what is

before us, defeat, loss,  suffering.  That part is not in our hands altogether, but the shame  of the quitter never

need, and never shall be ours." 

The little man stepped into his bedroom with his shoulders squared  and his head erect. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE 28



Top




Page No 31


"By Jove!  He's no quitter," said his son to himself, as his eyes  followed him.  "When he quits he'll be dead.

God keep me from  shaming him!" 

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED

The hour for the church service had not quite arrived, but already  a number of wagons, buckboards and

buggies had driven up and  deposited their loads at the church door.  The women had passed  into  the church,

where the Sunday School was already in session;  the men  waited outside, driven by the heat of the July sun

and the  hotter July  wind into the shade of the church building. 

Through the church windows came the droning of voices, with now and  then a staccato rapping out of

commands heard above the droning. 

"That's Hayes," said a sturdy young chap, brown as an Indian,  lolling upon the grass.  "He likes to be bossing

something." 

"That's so, Ewen," replied a smaller man, with a fishlike face,  his mouth and nose running into a single

feature. 

"I guess he's doin' his best, Nathan Pilley," answered another man,  stout and stocky, with bushy side whiskers

flanking around a  rubicund  face, out of which stared two prominent blue eyes. 

"Oh, I reckon he is, Mr. Boggs.  I have no word agin Hayes,"  replied Nathan Pilley, a North Ontario man,

who, abandoning a rocky  farm in Muskoka, had strayed to this far west country in search of  better fortune.  "I

have no word agin Mr. Hayes, Mr. Boggs," he  reiterated.  "In fact, I think he ought to be highly commended

for  his beneficent work." 

"But he does like to hear himself giving out orders, all the same,"  persisted the young man addressed as

Ewen. 

"Yes, he seems to sorter enjoy that, too, Ewen," agreed Nathan, who  was never known to oppose any man's

opinion. 

"He's doin' his best," insisted Mr. Boggs, rather sullenly. 

"Yes, he is that, Mr. Boggs, he is that," said Nathan. 

"But he likes to be the big toad in the puddle," said Ewen. 

"Well, he certainly seems to, he does indeed, Ewen." 

Clear over the droning there arose at this point another sound, a  chorus of childish laughter. 

"That's the preacher's class," said Boggs.  "Quare sort o' Sunday  School where the kids carry on like that." 

"Seems rather peculiar," agreed Nathan, "peculiar in Sunday School,  it does." 

"What's the matter with young Pickles?" enquired Ewen. 

The eyes of the company, following the pointing finger, fell upon  young Pickles standing at the window of


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 29



Top




Page No 32


the little vestry to the  church, and looking in.  He was apparently convulsed with laughter,  with his hand hard

upon his mouth and nose as a kind of silencer. 

"Do you know what's the matter with him, Pat?" continued Ewen. 

Pat McCann, the faithful friend and shadow of young Pickles, after  studying the attitude and motions of his

friend, gave answer: 

"It's the preacher, I guess.  He's kiddin' the kids inside.  He's  some kidder, too," he said, moving to take his

place beside his  friend. 

"What's he doing anyway?" said Ewen.  "I'm going to see." 

Gradually a little company gathered behind young Pickles and Pat  McCann.  The window commanded a view

of the room, yet in such a way  that the group were unobserved by the speaker. 

"Say, you ought to seen him do the camel a minute ago," whispered  Pickles. 

In the little vestry room were packed some twenty children of all  ages and sizes, with a number of grownups

who had joined the class  in  charge of some of its younger members.  There was, for instance,  Mrs.  Innes, with

the two youngest of her numerous progeny pillowed  against  her yielding and billowy person; and Mrs.

Stewart Duff, an  infant of  only a few weeks upon her knee accounting sufficiently  for the  paleness of her

sweet face, and two or three other women  with their  small children filling the bench that ran along the  wall. 

"Say! look at Harry Hobbs," said Pat McCann to his friend. 

Upon the stove, which in summer was relegated to the corner of the  room, sat Harry Hobbs, a man of any age

from his appearance, thin  and  wiry, with keen, darting eyes, which now, however, were  fastened upon  the

preacher.  All other eyes were, too.  Even the  smallest of the  children seated on the front bench were gazing

with  mouths wide open,  as if fascinated, upon the preacher who, moving  up and down with  quick, lithe steps,

was telling them a story.  A  wonderful story, too,  it seemed, the wonder of it apparent in the  riveted eyes and

fixed  faces.  It was the immortal story, matchless  in the language, of  Joseph, the Hebrew shepherd boy, who,

sold into  slavery by his  brethren, became prime minister of the mighty empire  of Egypt.  The  voice tone of the

minister, now clear and high, now  low and soft,  vibrating like the deeper notes of the 'cello, was  made for

story  telling.  Changing with every changing emotion, it  formed an exquisite  medium to the hearts of the

listeners for the  exquisite music of the  tale. 

The story was approaching its climactic denouement; the rapturous  moment of the younger brother's

revealing was at hand; Judah, the  older brother, was now holding the centre of the stage and making  that

thrilling appeal, than which nothing more moving is to be  found  in our English speech.  The preacher's voice

was throbbing  with all  the pathos of the tale.  Motionless, the little group hung  hard upon  the storyteller,

when the door opened quickly, a red  head appeared, a  rasping voice broke in: 

"Your class report, Mr. Dunbar, please.  We're waiting for it." 

A sigh of disappointment and regret swept the room. 

"Oh, darn the little woodpecker!" said Ewen from the outside, in a  disgusted tone.  "That's the way with

Hayes.  He thinks he's the  whole works, and that he never can get in wrong." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 30



Top




Page No 33


The spell was broken, never to be renewed.  The story hurried to  its close, but the great climax failed of its

proper effect. 

"He's a hummer, ain't he?" exclaimed young Pickles to his friend,  Pat McCann. 

"Some hummer, and then some!" replied Pat. 

"I'm goin' in," said Pickles. 

"Aw, what for?  He ain't no good preachin' to them folks.  By gum!  I think he's scared of 'em." 

But Pickles persisted, and followed with the men and boys who  lounged lazily into the church, from which

the Sunday School had  now  been dismissed. 

It appeared that the judgment of Pat McCann upon the merits of the  preacher would be echoed by the

majority of the congregation  present.  While the service was conducted in proper form and in  reverent  spirit,

the sermon was marked by that most unpardonable  sin of which  sermons can be guilty; it was dull.  Solid

enough in  matter,  thoughtful beyond the average, it was delivered in a style  appallingly  wooden, with an utter

absence of that arresting,  dramatic power that  the preacher had shown in his children's class. 

The appearance of the congregation was, as ever, a reflection of  the sermon.  The heat of the day, the reaction

from the long week  in  the open air, the quiet monotony of the well modulated voice  rising  and falling in

regular cadence in what is supposed by so  many  preachers to be the tone suitable for any sacred office,

produced an  overwhelmingly somnolent effect.  Many of them slept,  some frankly and  openly, others under

cover of shading hands, bowed  heads, or other  subterfuges.  Others again spent the whole of the  period of the

sermon, except for some delicious moments of  surreptitious sleep, in a  painful but altogether commendable

struggle against the insidious  influence of the god of slumber. 

Among the latter was Mrs. Innes, whose loyalty to her minister,  which was as much a part of her as her

breathing, contended in a  vigorous fight against her much too solid flesh.  It was a certain  aid to wakefulness

that her two children, deep in audible slumber,  kept her in a state of active concern lest their inert and rotund

little masses of slippery flesh should elude her grasp, and wreck  the  proprieties of the hour by flopping on the

floor.  There was  also a  further sleep deterrent in the fact that immediately before  her sat  Mr. McFettridge,

whose usually erect form, yielding to the  soporific  influences of the environment, showed a tendency

gradually to sag into  an attitude, relaxed and formless, which  suggested sleep.  This, to  the lady behind him,

partook of the  nature of an affront to her  minister.  Consequently she considered  it her duty to arouse the

snoozing McFettridge with a vigorous poke  in the small of the back. 

The effect was instantaneously apparent.  As if her insistent  finger had touched a button and released an

electric current, Mr.  McFettridge's sagging form shot convulsively into rigidity, and  impinging violently upon

the peacefully slumbering Mr. Boggs on the  extreme end of the bench, toppled him over into the aisle. 

The astonished Boggs, finding himself thus deposited upon the  floor, and beholding the irate face of Mr.

McFettridge glooming  down  upon him, and fancying him to be the cause of his present  humiliating  position,

sprang to his feet, swung a violent blow upon  Mr.  Fettridge's ear, exclaiming sotto voce: 

"Take that, will you!  And mind your own business!  You were  sleeping yourself, anyway!" 

Before the astonished and enraged Mr. McFettridge could gather his  wits sufficiently for action, there rang

over the astonished  congregation a peal of boyish laughter.  It was from the minister.  A  few irrepressible

youngsters joined in the laugh; the rest of the  congregation, however, were held rigid in the grip of a shocked


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 31



Top




Page No 34


amazement. 

"Oh, I say! do forgive me, Mr. McFettridge!" cried the young man at  the desk.  "It was quite involuntary, I

assure you."  Then, quickly  recovering himself, he added, "And now we shall conclude the  service  by singing

the seventyninth hymn." 

Before the last verse was sung he reminded the audience of the  congregational meeting immediately

following, and without further  comment the service was brought to a close. 

A number of the congregation, among them Barry's father, departed. 

"Sit down, Neil," said Mrs. Innes to Neil Fraser.  "You'll be  wanted I doot."  And Neil, protesting that he knew

nothing about  church business, sat down. 

At the back of the church were gathered Harry Hobbs, young Pickles,  and others of the less important

attendants of the church, who had  been induced to remain by the rumour of a "scrap." 

By a fatal mischance, the pliant Nathan Pilley was elected  chairman.  This gentleman was obsessed by the

notion that he  possessed in a high degree the two qualities which he considered  essential to the harmonious

and expeditious conduct of a public  meeting, namely, an invincible determination to agree with every

speaker, and an equally invincible determination to get motions  passed. 

In a rambling and aimless speech, Mr. Pilley set forth in a  somewhat general way the steps leading up to this

meeting, and then  called upon Mr. Innes, the chairman of the Board of Management, to  state more

specifically the object for which it was called. 

Mr. Innes, who was incurably averse to voluble speech, whether  public or private, arose and said, in rolling

Doric: 

"Weel, Mr. Chairrman, there's no much to be done.  We're behind a  few hundred dollars, but if some one

will go about wi' a bit paper,  nae doot the arrearrs wad soon be made up, and everything wad be  arricht." 

"Exactly," said Mr. Pilley pleasantly.  "Now will some one offer a  motion?" 

Thereupon Mr. Hayes was instantly upon his feet, and in a voice  thin and rasping exclaimed: 

"Mr. Chairman, there's business to be done, and we are here to do  it, and we're not going to be rushed through

in this way." 

"Exactly, Mr. Hayes, exactly," said Mr. Pilley.  "We must give  these matters the fullest consideration." 

Then followed a silence. 

"Perhaps Mr. Hayes" continued the chairman, looking appealingly  at that gentleman. 

"Well, Mr. Chairman," said Mr. Hayes, with an appeased but slightly  injured air, "it is not my place to set

forth the cause of this  meeting being called.  If the chairman of the board would do his  duty"here he glared

at the unconscious Mr. Innes"he would set  before it the things that have made this meeting necessary, and

that  call for drastic action." 

"Hear!  Hear!" cried Mr. Boggs. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 32



Top




Page No 35


"Exactly so," acquiesced the chairman.  "Please continue, Mr.  Hayes." 

Mr. Hayes continued:  "The situation briefly is this:  We are  almost hopelessly in debt, and" 

"How much?" enquired Neil Fraser, briskly interrupting. 

"Seven hundred dollars," replied Mr. Hayes, "and further" 

"Five hundred dollars," said Mr. Innes. 

"I have examined the treasurer's books," said Mr. Hayes in the  calmly triumphant tone of one sure of his

position, "and I find the  amount to be seven hundred dollars, and therefore" 

"Five hundred dollars," repeated Mr. Innes, gazing into space. 

"Seven hundred dollars, I say," snapped Mr. Hayes. 

"Five hundred dollars," reiterated Mr. Innes, without further  comment. 

"I say I have examined the books.  The arrears are seven hundred  dollars." 

"Five hundred dollars," said Mr. Innes calmly. 

The youngsters at the back snickered. 

"Go to it!" said Harry Hobbs, under his breath. 

Even the minister, who was sitting immediately behind Harry, could  not restrain a smile. 

"Mr. Chairman," cried Mr. Hayes, indignantly, "I appeal against  this interruption.  I assert" 

"Where's the treasurer?" said Neil Fraser.  "What's the use of this  chewin' the rag?" 

"Ah!  Exactly so," said the chairman, greatly relieved.  "Mr.  Boggs  Perhaps Mr. Boggs will enlighten us." 

Mr. Boggs arose with ponderous deliberation. 

"Mr. Chairman," he said, "in one sense Mr. Hayes is right when he  states the arrears to be seven hundred

dollars" 

"Five hundred dollars A'm tellin' ye," said Mr. Innes with the  first sign of feeling he had shown. 

"And Mr. Innes is also right," continued Mr. Boggs, ignoring the  interruption, "when he makes the arrears

five hundred dollars, the  two hundred dollars difference being the quarterly revenue now  due." 

"Next week," said Mr. Innes, reverting to his wonted calm. 

"Exactly so," said the chairman, rubbing his hands amiably; "so  that the seven hundred dollars we now

owe" 

This was too much even for the imperturbable Mr. Innes. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 33



Top




Page No 36


He arose in his place, moved out into the aisle, advanced toward  the platform, and with arm outstretched,

exclaimed in wrathful  tones: 

"Mon, did ye no hear me tellin' ye?  I want nae mon to mak' me a  leear." 

At this point Mr. Stewart Duff, who had come to convey his wife  home, and had got tired waiting for her

outside, entered the  church. 

"Oh, get on with the business," said Neil Fraser, who, although  enjoying the scene, was becoming anxious for

his dinner.  "The  question what's to be done with the five hundred dollars' arrears.  I  say, let's make it up right

here.  I am willing to give" 

"No, Mr. Chairman," shouted Mr. Hayes, who was notoriously averse  to parting with his money, and was

especially fearful of a public  subscription. 

"There is something more than mere arrearsmuch more" 

"Ay, there is," emphatically declared Mr. McFettridge, rising  straight and stiff.  "I'm for plain speakin'.  The

finances is not  the worst about this congregation.  The congregation has fallen  off.  Other churches in this

village has good congregations.  Why  shouldn't  we?  The truth is, Mr. Chairman,"Mr. McFettridge's  voice

rolled deep  and sonorous over the audience"we want a  popular preachera  preacher that drawsa

preacher with some pep." 

"Hear! hear!" cried Mr. Boggs.  "Pep's what we want.  That's it  pep." 

"Pep," echoed the chairman.  "Exactly so, pep." 

"More than that," continued Mr. McFettridge, "we want a minister  that's a good mixerone that stands in

with the boys." 

"Hear!  Hear!" cried Mr. Boggs again. 

"A mixer!  Exactly!" agreed the chairman.  "A mixer!" nodding  pleasantly at Mr. Boggs. 

"And another thing I will say," continued Mr. McFettridge, "now  that I am on my feet.  We want a preacher

that will stick to his  jobthat will preach the gospel and not go meddlin' with other  matterswith politics

and such like." 

"Or prohibition," shouted Harry Hobbs from the rear, to the  undiluted joy of the youngsters in his vicinity. 

The minister shook his head at him. 

"Yes, prohibition," answered Mr. McFettridge, facing toward the  rear of the church defiantly.  "Let him stick

to his preaching the  gospel; I believe the time has come for a change and I'm prepared  to  make a motion that

we ask our minister to resign, and that  motion I  now make." 

"Second the motion," cried Mr. Boggs promptly. 

"You have heard the motion," said the chairman, with businesslike  promptitude.  "Are you ready for the

question?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 34



Top




Page No 37


"Question," said Mr. Hayes, after a few moments' silence, broken by  the shuffling of some members in their

seats, and by the audible  whispering of Mrs. Innes, evidently exhorting her husband to  action. 

"Then all those in favour of the motion will please" 

Then from behind the organ a little voice piped up, "Does this  mean, Mr. Chairman, that we lose our

minister?" 

It was Miss Quigg, a lady whose years no gallantry could set below  forty, for her appearance indicated that

she was long past the  bloom  of her youth.  She was thin, almost to the point of  frailness, with  sharp, delicately

cut features; but the little chin  was firm, and a  flash of the brown eyes revealed a fiery soul  within.  Miss

Quigg was  the milliner and dressmaker of the village,  and was herself a walking  model of her own exquisite

taste in  clothes and hats.  It was only her  failing health that had driven  her to abandon a much larger sphere

than her present position  offered, but even here her fame was such as  to draw to her little  shop customers

from the villages round about for  many miles. 

"Does this mean, sir, that Mr. Dunbar will leave us?" she repeated. 

"Well,yes, madamthat is, Miss, I suppose, in a waypractically  it would amount to that." 

"Will you tell me yes or no, please," Miss Quigg's neat little  figure was all aquiver to the tips of her hat

plumes. 

"Well," said the chairman, squirming under the unpleasant  experience of being forced to a definite answer, "I

suppose,yes." 

Miss Quigg turned from the squirming and smiling Mr. Pilley in  contempt. 

"Then," she said, "I say no.  And I believe there are many here  who would say noand men, too."  The wealth

of indignation and  contemptuous scorn infused into the word by which the difference  in  sex of the human

species was indicated, made those unhappy  individuals  glance shamefacedly at each other"only they are

too  timid, the  creatures! or too indifferent." 

Again there was an exchange of furtive glances and smiles and an  uneasy shifting of position on the part of

"the creatures." 

"But if you give them time, Mr. Chairman, I believe they will  perhaps get up courage enough to speak." 

Miss Quigg sat down in her place behind the organ, disappearing  quite from view except for the tips of her

plumes, whose rapid and  rhythmic vibrations were eloquent of the beating of her gallant  little heart. 

"Exactly so," said the chairman, in confused but hearty  acquiescence.  "Perhaps some one will say

something." 

Then Mr. Innes, forced to a change of position by the physical  discomfort caused by his wife's prodding, rose

and said, 

"I dinna see the need o' any change.  Mr. Dunbar is no a great  preacher, but Ah doot he does his best.  And the

bairns all like  him." 

Then the congregation had a thrill.  In the back seat rose Harry  Hobbs. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 35



Top




Page No 38


"I'm near forty years old," he cried, in a high nasal tone that  indicated a state of extreme nervous tension,

"and I never spoke in  meetin' before.  I ain't had no use for churches and preachers, and  I  guess they hadn't no

use for me.  You folks all know me.  I've  been in  this burg for near eight years, and I was a drinkin',  swearin',

fightin' cuss.  This preacher came into the barn one day  when I was  freezin' to death after a big spree.  He tuk

me home  with him and kep'  me there for two weeks, settin' up nights with  me, too.  Let me be,"  he said

impatiently to Barry, who was trying  to pull him down to his  seat.  "I'm agoin' to speak this time if it  kills me.

Many a time I  done him dirt sence then, but he stuck to  me, and never quit till he  got me turned 'round.  I was

goin'  straight to hell; he says I'm goin'  to heaven now."  Here he  laughed with a touch of scorn.  "I dunno.  But,

by gum! if you fire  him and do him dirt, I don't know what'll  become of me, but I guess  I'll go straight to hell

again." 

"No, Harry, no you won't.  You'll keep right on, Harry, straight to  heaven."  It was the preacher's voice, full of

cheery confidence. 

Mrs. Innes was audibly sniffling; Mrs. Stewart Duff wiping her  eyes.  It was doubtless this sight that brought

her husband to his  feet. 

"I don't quite know what the trouble is here," he said.  "I  understand there are arrears.  I heard some criticism

of the  minister's preaching.  I can't say I care much for it myself, but I  want to say right here that there are

other things wanted in a  minister, and this young fellow has got some of them.  If he stays,  he gets my money;

if he doesn't, no one else does.  I'll make you  gentlemen who are kicking about finances a sporting

proposition.  I'm  willing to double my subscription, if any other ten men will  cover my  ante." 

"I'll call you," said Neil Fraser, "and I'll raise you one." 

"I'm willing to meet Mr. Duff and Mr. Fraser," said Miss Quigg,  rising from behind her organ with a

triumphant smile on her face. 

"I ain't got much money," said Harry Hobbs, "but I'll go you just  half what I earn if you'll meet me on that

proposition." 

"Ah may say," said Mr. Innes, yielding to his wife's vigorous vocal  and physical incitations, "A'm

prepairred to mak' a substantial  increase in my subscreeptionthat is, if necessary," he added  cautiously. 

Then Barry came forward from the back of the church and stood  before the platform.  After looking them over

for a few moments in  silence, he said, in a voice clear, quiet, but with a ring in it  that  made it echo in every

heart: 

"Had it not been for these last speeches, it would have been  unnecessary to allow the motion to go before

you.  I could not have  remained where I am not wanted.  But now I am puzzled, I confess, I  am really puzzled

to know what to do.  I am not a great preacher, I  know, but then there are worse.  I don't, at least I think I don't,

talk nonsense.  And I am not what Mr. McFettridge calls a 'good  mixer.'  On the other hand, I think Mr. Innes

is right when he says  the bairns like me; at least, it would break"he paused, his lip  quivering, then he went

on quietly"it would be very hard to think  they didn't." 

"They do that, then," said Mrs. Innes, emphatically. 

"So you see, it is really very difficult to know what to do.  I  would hate to go away, but it might be right to go

away.  I suggest  you let me have a week to think it over.  Can you wait that long?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 36



Top




Page No 39


His handsome, boyish face, alight with a fine glow of earnestness  and sincerity, made irresistible appeal to all

but those who for  personal reasons were opposed to him. 

"You see," he continued, in a tone of voice deliberative and quite  detached, "there are a number of things to

think about.  Those  arrears, for instance, are hardly my faultat least, not altogether.  I was looking over the

treasurer's books the other day, and I was  surprised to find how many had apparently quite forgotten to pay

their church subscription.  It is no doubt just an oversight.  For  instance," he added, in the confidential tone of

one imparting  interesting and valuable information, "you will be surprised to  learn, Mr. Duff, that you are

twentyfive dollars behind in your  payments." 

At this Neil Fraser threw back his head with a loud laugh.  "Touche!" he said, in a joyous undertone. 

The minister looked at him in surprise, and went on, "And while Mr.  Innes and Miss Quigg are both paid up

in full, Mr. Hayes has  apparently neglected to pay his last quarter." 

"Hit him again," murmured Harry Hobbs, while Mr. Hayes rose in  virtuous indignation. 

"I protest, Mr. Chairman!" he cried, "against these personalities." 

"Oh, you quite mistake me, Mr. Hayes," said the preacher, "these  are not personalities.  I am simply showing

how easy it is for  arrears to arise, and that it may not be my fault at all.  Of  course,  it may be right for me to

resign.  I don't know about that  yet, but I  want to be very sure.  It would be easier to resign, but  I don't want  to

be a quitter." 

"I move we adjourn," said Neil Fraser. 

"I second the motion," said Stewart Duff.  The motion was carried,  and the meeting adjourned. 

At the door the minister stood shaking hands with all as they  passed out, making no distinction in the

heartiness with which he  greeted all his parishioners.  To Miss Quigg, however, he said,  "Thank you.  You

were splendidly plucky." 

"Nonsense!" cried the little lady, the colour flaming in her faded  cheeks.  "But," she added hastily, "you did

that beautifully, and  he  deserved it, the little beast!" 

"Solar plexus!" said Neil Fraser, who was immediately behind Miss  Quigg. 

The minister glanced from one to the other in perplexity, as they  passed out of the door. 

"But, you know, I was only" 

"Oh, yes, we know," cried Miss Quigg.  "But if those men would only  take hold!  Oh, those men!"  She turned

upon Neil Fraser and shook  her head at him violently. 

"I know, Miss Quigg.  We are a hopeless and helpless lot.  But  we're going to reform." 

"You need to, badly," she said.  "But you need some one to reform  you.  Look at Mr. Duff there, how vastly

improved he is," and she  waved her hand to that gentleman, who was driving away with his  wife  in their

buckboard. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IV. REJECTED 37



Top




Page No 40


"He is a perfect dear," sighed Mrs. Duff, as she bowed to the  minister.  "And you, too, Stewart," she added,

giving his arm a  little squeeze, "you said just the right thing when those horrid  people were going to turn him

out." 

"Say!  Your preacher isn't so bad after all," said her husband.  "Wasn't that a neat one for old Hayes?" 

"He rather got you, though, Stewart." 

"Yes, he did, by Jove!  Not the first time, either, he's done it.  But I must look after that.  Say, he's the limit for

freshness  though.  Or is it freshness?  I'm not quite sure." 

"Will he stay with us?" said his wife.  "I really do hope he will." 

"Guess he'll stay all right.  He won't give up his job," said her  husband. 

But next week proved Mr. Duff a poor prophet, for the minister  after the service informed his people that he

had come to the  conclusion that another man might get better results as minister of  the congregation; he had

therefore handed in his resignation to the  Presbytery. 

It was a shock to them all, but he adhered to his resolution in  spite of tearful lamentations from the women,

wideeyed amazement  and  dismay from the bairns of the congregation, and indignation,  loudly  expressed,

from Neil Fraser and Stewart Duff, and others of  their  kind. 

"Well," said Miss Quigg, struggling with indignant tears, as she  was passing out of the church, "you won't see

Harry Hobbs in this  church again, nor me, either." 

"Oh, yes, Miss Quigg, Harry has promised me that he will stick by  the church, and that he will be there every

Sunday.  And so will  you,  dear Miss Quigg.  I know you.  You will do what is right." 

But that little lady, with her head very erect and a red spot  burning in each faded cheek, passed out of the

church saying  nothing,  the plumes on her jaunty little hat quivering defiance and  wrath  against "those men,

who had so little spunk as to allow a  little beast  like Hayes to run them." 

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS

"Well, dad," said Barry next evening as they were sitting in the  garden after tea, "I feel something like

Mohammed's coffin,  detached  from earth but not yet ascended into heaven.  It's  unpleasant to be  out of a job.  I

confess I shall always cherish a  more intelligent  sympathy henceforth for the great unemployed.  But  cheer

up, dad!  You  are taking this thing much too seriously.  The  world is wide, and  there is something waiting me

that I can do  better than any one else." 

But the father had little to say.  He felt bitterly the humiliation  to which his son had been subjected. 

Barry refused to see the humiliation. 

"Why should I not resign if I decide it is my duty so to do?  And  why, on the other hand, should not they have

the right to terminate  my engagement with them when they so desire?  That's democratic  government." 

"But good Lord, Barry!" burst out his father, with quite an unusual  display of feeling; "to think that a

gentleman should hold his  position at the whim of such whippersnappers as Hayes, Boggs et hoc  genus


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 38



Top




Page No 41


omne.  And more than that, that I should have to accept as my  minister a man who would be the choice of

cattle like that." 

"After all, dad, we are ruled by majorities in this age and in this  country.  That is at once the glory and the

danger of democratic  government.  There is no better way discovered as yet.  And  besides,  I couldn't go on

here, dad, preaching Sunday after Sunday  to people  who I felt were all the time saying, 'He's no good'; to

people, in  short, who could not profit by my preaching." 

"Because it had no pep, eh?" said his father with bitter scorn. 

"Do you know, dad, I believe that's what is wrong with my  preaching: it hasn't got pep.  What pep is, only the

initiated  know.  But the long and the short of this thing is, it is the  people that  must be satisfied.  It is they who

have to stand your  preaching, they  who pay the piper.  But cheer up, dad, I have no  fear for the future." 

"Nor have I, my boy, not the slightest.  I hope you did not think  for a moment, my son," he added with some

dignity, "that I was in  doubt about your future." 

"No, no, dad.  We both feel a little sore naturally, but the future  is all right." 

"True, my dear boy, true.  I was forgetting myself.  As you say,  the world is wide and your place is waiting." 

"Hello! here comes my friend, Mr. Duff," said Barry in a low voice.  "He was ready to throw Mr. McFettridge

out of the meeting  yesterday,  body and bones.  Awfully funny, if it hadn't been in  church.  Wonder  what he

wants!  Seems in a bit of a hurry." 

But hurry or not, it was a full hour before Mr. Duff introduced his  business.  As he entered the garden he

stood gazing about him in  amazed wonder and delight, and that hour was spent in company with  Mr. Dunbar,

exploring the garden, Barry following behind lost in  amazement at the new phase of character displayed by

their visitor. 

"I have not had such a delightful evening, Mr. Dunbar, for years,"  said Duff, when they had finished making

the round of the garden.  "I  have heard about your garden, but I had no idea that it held  such a  wealth and

variety of treasures.  I had something of a  garden myself  in the old country, but here there is no time

apparently for anything  but cattle and horses and money.  But if  you would allow me I should  greatly like to

have the pleasure of  bringing Mrs. Duff to see your  beautiful garden." 

Mr. Duff was assured that the Dunbars would have the greatest  pleasure in receiving Mrs. Duff. 

"Do bring her," said Barry, "and we can have a little music, too.  She is musical, I know.  I hear her sing in

church." 

"Music!  Why, she loves it.  But she dropped her music when she  came here; there seemed to be no time, no

time, no time.  I wonder  sometimes  Well, I must get at my business.  It is this letter  that  brings me.  It is

from an American whom you know, at least, he  knows  you, a Mr. Osborne Howland of Pittsburgh." 

Mr. Dunbar nodded. 

"He is planning a big trip up the Peace River country prospecting  for oil and mines, and later hunting.  He

says you and your son  engaged to accompany him, and he asks me to complete arrangements  with you.  I am

getting Jim Knight to look after the outfit.  You  know Jim, perhaps.  He runs the Lone Pine ranch.  Fine chap

he is.  Knows all about the hunting business.  Takes a party into the  mountains every year.  He'll take Tom


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 39



Top




Page No 42


Fielding with him.  I don't  know Fielding, but Knight does.  Mr. Howland says there will be  three  of their

party.  Far too many, but that's his business.  I  myself am  rather anxious to look after some oil deposits, and

this  will be a  good chance.  What do you say?" 

Father and son looked at each other. 

"It would be fine, if we could manage it," said Mr. Dunbar, "but my  work is so pressing just now.  A great

many are coming in, and I am  alone in the office at present.  When does he propose to start?" 

"In six weeks' time.  I hope you can come, Mr. Dunbar.  I couldn't  have said so yesterday, but I can now.  Any

man with a garden like  this, the product of his own planning and working, is worth  knowing.  So I do hope

you can both come.  By the way, Knight wants  a camp  hand, a kind of roustabout, who can cooka handy

man, you  know." 

"I have him," said Barry.  "Harry Hobbs." 

"Hobbs?  Boozes a bit, doesn't he?" 

"Not now.  Hasn't for six months.  He's a new man.  I can guarantee  him." 

"You can, eh?  Well, my experience is once a boozer always a  boozer." 

"Oh," said Barry, "Hobbs is different.  He is a member of our  church, you know." 

"No, I didn't know.  But I don't know that that makes much  difference anyway," said Duff with a laugh.  "I

don't mean to be  offensive," he added. 

"It does to Hobbs, he's a Christian man now.  I mean a real  Christian, Mr. Duff." 

"Well, I suppose there is such a thing.  In fact, I've known one or  two, butwell, if you guarantee him I'll

take him." 

"I will guarantee him," said Barry. 

"Let me have your answer tomorrow," said Duff as he bade them  goodnight. 

The Dunbars discussed the matter far into the night.  It was  clearly impossible for Mr. Dunbar to leave his

work, and the only  question was whether or not Barry should make one of the party.  Barry  greatly disliked

the idea of leaving his father during the  hot summer  months, as he said, "to slave away at his desk, and to

slop away in  his bachelor diggings."  He raised many objections,  but one  consideration seemed to settle things

for the Dunbars.  To  them a  promise was a promise. 

"If I remember aright, Barry, we promised that we should join their  party on this expedition." 

"Yes," added Barry quickly, "if our work permitted it." 

"Exactly," said his father.  "My work prevents me, your work does  not." 

Hence it came that by the end of August Barry found himself in the  far northern wilds of the Peace River

country, a hundred miles or  so  from Edmonton, attached to a prospectinghunting party of which  Mr.

Osborne Howland was the nominal head, but of which the "boss"  was  undoubtedly his handsome, athletic


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 40



Top




Page No 43


and impetuous daughter  Paula.  The  party had not been on the trail for more than a week  before every  member

was moving at her command, and apparently glad  to do so. 

The party were camped by a rushing river at the foot of a falls.  Below the falls the river made a wide eddy,

then swept down in a  turbulent rapid for some miles.  The landing was a smooth and  shelving rock that

pitched somewhat steeply into the river. 

The unfortunate Harry, who after the day's march had exchanged his  heavy marching boots with their

clinging hobnails for shoes more  comfortable but with less clinging qualities, in making preparation  for the

evening meal made his way down this shelving rock of water.  No sooner had he filled his pail than his foot

slipped from under  him, and in an instant the pail and himself were in the swiftly  flowing river. 

His cry startled the camp. 

"Hello!" shouted Duff, with a great laugh.  "Harry is in the drink!  I never knew he was so fond of water as all

that.  You've got to  swim  for it now, old boy." 

"Throw him something," said Knight. 

Past them ran Barry, throwing off coat and vest. 

"He can't swim," he cried, tearing at his boots.  "Throw him a  line, some one."  He ran down to the water's

edge, plunged in, and  swam toward the unfortunate Harry, who, splashing wildly, was being  carried rapidly

into the rough water. 

"Oh, father, he will be drowned!" cried Paula, rushing toward a  canoe which was drawn up on the shore.

Before any one could reach  her she had pushed it out and was steering over the boiling current  in Barry's

wake.  But after a few strokes of her paddle she found  herself driven far out into the current and away from

the  struggling  men.  Paula had had sufficient experience with a canoe  to handle it  with considerable ease in

smooth water and under  ordinary conditions,  but in the swirl of this rough and swift water  the canoe took the

management of its course out of her hands, and  she had all she could  do to keep afloat. 

"For God's sake, men, get her!" cried Brand.  "She will be drowned  before our eyes." 

"Come on, Tom," cried Jim Knight, swinging another canoe into the  water.  A glance he gave at the girl,

another at the struggling  men,  for by this time Barry could be seen struggling with the  drowning  Hobbs. 

"Get in, Tom," ordered Knight, taking the stern.  "We will get the  men first.  The girl is all right in the

meantime." 

"Get the girl!" commanded Brand.  "For God's sake go for the girl,"  he entreated in a frenzy of distress. 

"No," said Knight, "the men first.  She's all right." 

"Here," said Duff to Brand, pushing out the remaining canoe, "get  into the bow, and stop howling.  Those men

are in danger of being  drowned, but Knight will get them.  We'll go for the girl." 

It took but a few minutes for Knight and Fielding, who knew their  craft thoroughly and how to get the best

out of her in just such an  emergency, to draw up upon Harry and his rescuer. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 41



Top




Page No 44


"Say, they are fighting hard," said Fielding.  "That bloody little  fool is choking the life out of Dunbar.  My

God! they are out of  sight!" 

"Go on," roared Knight.  "Keep your eyes on the spot, and for  Heaven's sake, paddle!" 

"They are up again!  One of them is.  It's Barry.  The other is  gone.  No, by Jove! he's got him!  Hold on, Barry,

we're coming,"  yelled Tom.  "Stick to it, old boy!" 

Swiftly the canoe sped toward the drowning men. 

"They are gone this time for sure," cried Tom, as the canoe shot  over the spot where the men had last been

seen. 

"Not much!" said Knight, as reaching out of the stern he gripped  Barry by the hair.  "Hold hard, Barry," he

said quietly.  "No  monkey  work now or you'll drown us all."  Immediately Barry ceased  struggling. 

"Don't try to get in, Barry.  We'll have to tow you ashore." 

"All right, Jim," he said between his sobbing breaths.  "Only  hurry upI've got himhere." 

Knight reached down carefully, lifted Barry till his hand touched  the gunwale of the canoe. 

"Not too hard, Barry," he said.  "I'll ease you round to the stern.  Steady, boy, steady.  Don't dump us." 

"All rightJimbuthe's under the waterhere." 

"Oh, never mind him.  We'll get him all right.  Can you hold on  now?" said Knight. 

"YesI think so." 

"Now, for God's sake, Tom, edge her into the shore.  See that  little eddy there?  Swing into that!  You'll do it all

right.  Good  man!" 

By this time Knight was able to get Harry's head above water. 

In a few minutes they had reached the shore, and were working hard  over Harry's unconscious body, leaving

Barry lying on the sand to  recover his strength.  A long fight was necessary to bring the life  back into Harry,

by which time Barry was sufficiently recovered to  sit up. 

"Stay where you are, Barry, until we get this man back to camp,"  ordered Knight.  "We'll light a bit of a fire

for you." 

"I'm warm enough," said Barry. 

"Warm enough?  You may be, but you will be better with a fire, and  you lie beside it till we get you.  Don't

move now." 

"There's the other canoes coming," said Fielding.  "They'll make  shore a little lower down.  They're all right.

Say, she's handling  that canoe like a man!" 

"Who?" said Barry. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 42



Top




Page No 45


"Why, Miss Howland," said Fielding.  "She was out after you like a  shot.  She's a plucky one!" 

Barry was on his feet in an instant, watching anxiously the  progress of the canoes, which were being slowly

edged across the  river in a long incline toward the shore. 

"They'll make it, all right," said Knight, after observing them for  a time.  "Don't you worry.  Just lie down by

the fire.  We'll be  back  in a jiffy." 

In an hour they were all safely back in camp, and sufficiently  recovered to discover the humorous points in

the episode.  But they  were all familiar enough with the treacherous possibilities of  rough  and rapid water to

know that for Hobbs and his deliverer at  least,  there had been some serious moments during their fierce

struggle in  the river. 

"Another minute would have done," said Fielding to his friend, as  they sat over the fire after supper. 

"A half a minute would have been just as good," said Knight.  "I  got Barry by the hair under water.  He was at

his last kick, you  bet!  And that rat," he added, smiling good naturedly at Harry,  "was  dragging him down for

the last time." 

"I didn't know nothin' about it," said poor Harry, who was lying  stretched out by the fire, still very weak and

miserable.  "I  didn't  know nothin' about it, or you bet I woudn't ha' done it.  I  didn't  know nothin' after he got

me." 

"After you got him, you mean," said Fielding. 

"I guess that's right," said Harry, "but I wouldn't ha' got him if  he hadn't ha' got me first." 

They all joined in the discussion of the event except Paula, who  sat distrait and silent, gazing into the fire,

and Barry, who lay,  drowsy and relaxed, on a blanket not far from her side. 

"You ought to go to bed," said Paula at length in a low voice to  him.  "You need a good night's sleep." 

"I'm too tired to sleep," said Barry.  "I feel rather rotten, in  fact.  I ought to feel very grateful, but somehow I

just feel  rotten." 

"Can one be grateful and feel rotten at the same time?" said Paula,  making talk. 

"Behold me," replied Barry.  "I know I am grateful, but I do feel  rotten.  I don't think I have even thanked you

for risking your  life  for me," he added, turning toward her. 

"Risking my life?  Nonsense!  I paddled 'round in the canoe for a  bit, till two strong men came to tow me in,

and would have, if I  had  allowed them.  Thank the boys, who got you in time."  She  shuddered as  she spoke. 

"I do thank them, and I do feel grateful to them," said Barry.  "It  was rather a near thing.  You see, I let him

grip me.  I choked him  off my arms, but he slid down to my thigh, and I could not kick him  off.  Had to

practically drown him.  Even then he hung on." 

"Oh, don't speak about it," she said with a shudder, covering her  face with her hands.  "It was too awful, and it

might have been the  end of you."  Her voice broke a little. 

"No, not an end," answered Barry, in a quiet voice.  "Not the end  by a long way, not by a very long way." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 43



Top




Page No 46


"What do you mean?  Oh, you are thinking of immortality, and all  that," said Paula.  "It's a chilly, ghostly

subject.  It makes me  shiver.  I get little comfort out of it." 

"Ghostly it is, if you mean a thing of spirits," said Barry, "but  chilly!  Why chilly?"  Then he added to himself

in an undertone:  "I  wonder!  I wonder!  I wish sometimes I knew more." 

"Sometimes?" cried Paula.  "Always!" she added passionately.  "It's  a dreadful business to me.  To be suddenly

snatched out of the  light  and the warmth, away from the touch of warm fingers and the  sight of  dear faces!

Ah, I dread it!  I loathe the thought of it.  I hate it!" 

"And yet," mused Barry, "somehow I cannot forget that out there  somewhere there is One, kindly, genial,

true,like my dad.  How  good  he has been to memy dad, I mean, and that Other, too, has  been good.

Somehow I think of them together.  Yes, I am grateful  to Him." 

"Oh, God, you mean," said Paula, a little impatiently. 

"Yes, to God.  He saved me today.  'Saved,' I say.  It is a queer  way to speak, after all.  What I really ought to

say is that God  thought it best that I should camp 'round here for a bit longer  before moving in nearer." 

"Nearer?" 

"Yes, into the nearer circle.  Life moves 'round a centre, in outer  and inner circles.  This is the outer circle.

Nearer in there, it  is  kindlier, with better light and clearer vision.  'We shall know  even  as we are known.'"

Barry mused on, as if communing with  himself. 

"But when you move in," said Paula, and there was no mistaking the  earnestness of her tone, "you break

touch with those you love  here." 

"I don't know about that," answered Barry quickly. 

"Oh, yes you do.  You are out of all this,all this," she swept  her hand at the world around her, "this good

old world, all your  joy  and happiness, all you love.  Oh, that's the worst of it; you  give up  your love.  I hate it!"

she concluded with vehemence sudden  and  fierce, as she shook her fist towards the stars. 

"Give up your love?" said Barry.  "Not I!  Not one good, honest  affection do I mean to give up, nor shall I." 

"Oh, nonsense!  Don't be religious.  Just be honest," said Paula,  in a low, intense voice.  "Let me speak to you.

Suppose II love  a  man with all my soul and bodyand body, mind you, and he goes  out, or  goes in, as

you say.  No matter, he goes out of my life.  I  lose him,  he is not here.  I cannot feel and respond to his love.  I

cannot feel  his strong arms about me.  My God!"  Her voice came  with increasing  vehemence.  "I want his

arms.  I want him as he is.  I want his bodyI  cannot love a ghost.  No! no!" she added in a  low, hopeless

voice.  "When he goes out I lose him, and lose him as  mine forever.  Oh, what  do I care for your spirit love!

The old  Greeks were right.  They are  shadesshades, mere shades beyond the  river.  I don't want a shade.  I

want a man, a strong, warm  hearted, brave man.  Yes, a good man, a  man with a soul.  But a  MAN, not a

SOUL.  My God!" she moaned, "how  terrible it all is!  And it came so near to us today.  But I should  not be

saying this  to you, played out as you are.  I am going to bed.  Goodnight." 

She put out her hand and gripped his in warm, strong, muscular  fingers.  "Thank God, yes God, if you like,

you are stillstill in  this outer circle,"she broke into a laugh, but there was little  mirth in her

laughter"this good old outer circle, yet awhile." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 44



Top




Page No 47


"Yes," said Barry simply but very earnestly, "thank God.  It is a  good world.  But with all my soul I believe

there is a better, and  all that is best in love and life we shall take with us.  Good  night," he added, "and thank

you, at least for the will and the  attempt to save my life." 

"Sleep well," she said. 

"I hope so," he replied, "but I doubt it." 

His doubts, it turned out, were justified, for soon after midnight  Mr. Howland was aroused by Harry Hobbs in

a terror of excitement. 

"Will you come to Mr. Dunbar, sir?" he cried.  "I think he is  dying." 

"Dying?"  Mr. Howland was out of his cot immediately and at Barry's  side.  He found him fighting for breath,

his eyes starting from his  head, a look of infinite distress on his face. 

"My dear boy, what is it?  Hobbs says you are dying." 

"That conconfoundedfoolshouldn't havecalled you.  I  forbade  him," gasped Barry. 

"But, my dear boy, what is the matter?  Are you in pain?" 

"No, no,it'snothingonly an oldfriend come backfor a  call,a brief onelet ushope.  It's only

asthma.  Looks bad  feels worsebut reallynot at all dangerous." 

"What can be done, my boy?" asked Mr. Howland, greatly relieved, as  are most laymen, when the trouble can

be named.  It is upon the  terror inspired by the unknown that the medical profession lives. 

"Tell Harryto makea hot drink," said Barry, but Harry had  already forestalled the request, and appeared

with a steaming bowl.  "This willhelp.  Nowgo tobed, Mr. Howland.  Do, please.You  distressme

by remainingthere.  Harry willlook after me.  Goodnight." 

Next morning Barry appeared at breakfast a little washed out in  appearance, but quite bright and announcing

himself fit for  anything. 

The incident, however, was a determining factor in changing the  party's plans.  Already they were behind their

time schedule, to  Mr.  Cornwall Brand's disgust.  The party was too large and too  heavily  encumbered with

impedimenta for swift travel.  Besides, as  Paula said,  "Why rush?  Are we not doing the Peace River Country?

We are out for a  good time and we are having it."  Paula was not  interested in mines  and oil.  She did not

announce just what  special interest was hers.  She was "having a good time" and that  was reason enough for

leisurely  travel.  In consequence their  provisions had run low. 

It was decided to send forward a scouting party to the Hudson's Bay  Post some thirty miles further on to

restock their commissariat.  Accordingly Knight and Fielding were despatched on this mission,  the  rest of the

party remaining in camp. 

"A lazy day or two in camp is what we all need," said Mr. Howland.  "I confess I am quite used up myself,

and therefore I know you must  all feel much the same." 

On the fourth day the scouting party appeared. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 45



Top




Page No 48


"There's war!" cried Knight as he touched land.  He flung out a  bundle of papers for Mr. Howland. 

"War!"  The word came back in tones as varied as those who uttered  it. 

"War!" said Mr. Howland.  "Between whom?" 

"Every one, pretty much," said Knight.  "Germany, France, Russia,  Austria, Servia, Belgium, and Britain." 

"Britain!" said Barry and Duff at the same moment. 

"Britain," answered Knight solemnly. 

The men stood stock still, looking at each other with awed faces. 

"War!" again said Barry.  "With Germany!"  He turned abruptly away  from the group and said, "I am going." 

"Going!  Going where?" said Mr. Howland. 

"To the war," said Barry quietly. 

"To the war!  You?  A clergyman?" said Mr. Howland. 

"You?  You going?" cried Paula.  At the pain in her voice her  father and Brand turned and looked at her.

Disturbed by what he  saw,  her father began an excited appeal to Barry. 

"Why, my dear sir, it would surely be most unusual for a man like  you to go to war," he began, and for quite

ten minutes he proceeded  to set forth in fluent and excited speech a number of reasons why  the  idea of

Barry's going to war was absurd and preposterous to  him.  It  must be confessed that Barry was the only one of

the men  who appeared  to give much heed to him.  They seemed to be dazed by  the stupendous  fact that had

been announced to them, and to be  adjusting themselves  to that fact. 

When he had finished his lengthy and excited speech Brand took up  the discourse. 

"Of course you don't think of going immediately," he said.  "We  have this expedition in hand." 

The men made no reply.  Indeed, they hardly seemed to hear him. 

"You don't mean to say," continued Brand with a touch of  indignation  in his voice, addressing Duff, the

recognised leader of  the party,  "that you would break your engagement with this party, Mr.  Duff?" 

Duff glanced at him, then looked away in silence, studying the  horizon.  The world was to him and to them all

a new world within  the  last few minutes. 

His silence appeared to enrage Brand.  He turned to Barry. 

"Do you mean to tell me, sir, that you approve of this?  Do you  consider it right and fair that these men should

break their  engagement with us?  We have gone to great expense, we have  extremely  important interests at

stake in this exploration." 

Barry stood looking at him in silence, as if trying to take in  exactly what he meant, then in a low and awed

tone he said: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 46



Top




Page No 49


"It is war!  War with Germany!" 

"We cannot help that," cried Brand.  "What difference can this war  make to you here a hundred miles from

civilisation?  These men are  pledged to us." 

"Their first pledge is to their country, sir," said Barry gravely. 

"But why should you, a Canadian, take part in this war?" argued Mr.  Howland.  "Surely this is England's

war." 

Then Barry appeared to awake as from a dream. 

"Yes, it is England's war, it is Britain's war, and when Britain is  at war my country is at war, and when my

country is at war I ought  to  be there." 

"God in heaven!" shouted Duff, striking him on the back, "you have  said it!  My country is at war, and I must

be there.  As God hears  me, I am off todaynow." 

"Me, too!" said Knight with a shout. 

"I'm going with you, sir," said little Harry Hobbs, ranging himself  beside Barry. 

"Count me in," said Tom Fielding quietly.  "I have a wife and three  kids, but" 

"My God!" gasped Duff.  "My wife."  His face went white.  He had  not yet fully adjusted himself to the fact of

war. 

"Why, of course," said Mr. Howland, "you married men won't be  called upon.  You must be reasonable.  For

instance you, Mr. Duff,  cannot leave your wife." 

But Duff had recovered himself. 

"My wife, sir?  My wife would despise me if I stayed up here.  Sir,  my wife will buckle on my belt and spurs

and send me off to the  war,"  cried Duff in a voice that shook as he spoke. 

With a single stride Barry was at his side, offering both his  hands. 

"Thank God for men like you!  And in my soul I believe the Empire  has millions of them." 

"Does your Empire demand that you desert those you have pledged  yourself to?" enquired Brand in a

sneering tone. 

"Oh, Cornwall!" exclaimed Paula, "how can you?" 

"Why, Brand," said Mr. Howland, "that is unworthy of you." 

"We will see you into safety, sir," said Duff, swinging round upon  Brand, "either to the Hudson's Bay

Company's post, where you can  get  Indians, or back to Edmonton, but not one step further on this  expedition

do I go." 

"Nor I," said Knight. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS 47



Top




Page No 50


"Nor I," said Fielding. 

"Nor I," said Barry. 

"Nor I," said Harry Hobbs. 

"You are quite right, sir," said Mr. Howland, turning to Barry.  "I  apologise to you, sir, to all of you

Canadians.  I am ashamed to  confess that I did not at first get the full meaning of this  terrific  thing that has

befallen your Empire.  Were it the U.S.A.  that was in a  war of this kind, hell itself would not keep me from

going to her aid.  Nor you either, Brand.  Yes, you are right.  Go  to your war.  God go  with you." 

He shook hands solemnly with them one by one.  "I only wish to God  that my country were with you, too, in

this thing," he said when he  had performed this function. 

"Father," cried Paula, "do you think for one minute that Uncle Sam  won't be in this?  You put it down," she

said, swinging 'round upon  Barry, "where it will jump at you some day:  We will be with you in  this scrap for

all we are worth." 

"And now for the march," said Barry, who seemed almost to assume  command.  Then removing his hat and

lifting high his hand, he said  in  a voice thrilling with solemn reverence, "God grant victory to  the  right!  God

save the king!" 

Instinctively the men took off their hats and stood with bared and  bent heads, as if sharing in a solemn ritual.

They stood with  millions upon millions of their kin in the old mother lands, and  scattered wide upon the seas,

stood with many millions more of  peoples and nations, pledging to this same cause of right, life and  love and

all they held dear, and with hearts open to that all  searching eye, praying that same prayer, "God grant

victory to the  right.  Amen and amen.  We ask no other." 

Then they faced to their hundred miles' trek en route to the war. 

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH

"Fifty milesnot too bad, boy, not too bad for a one day's go.  We'll camp right here at the portage.  How is it,

Knight?" 

"Good place, Duff, right on that point.  Good wood, good landing.  Besides there's a deuce of a portage

beyond, which we can do after  supper tonight.  How do you feel, Barry?" asked Knight.  "Hard  day,  eh?" 

"Feeling fit, a little tired, of course, but good for another ten  miles," answered Barry. 

"That's the stuff," replied Knight, looking at him keenly, "but,  see here, you must ease up on the carrying.

You haven't quite got  over that ducking of yours." 

"I'm fit enough," answered Barry, rather more curtly than his wont. 

They brought the canoes up to the landing, and with the speed of  long practice unloaded them, and drew them

upon the shore. 

Knight approached Duff, and, pointing toward Barry, said quietly: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 48



Top




Page No 51


"I guess we'll have to ease him up a bit.  That fight, you know,  took it out of him, and he always jumps for the

biggest pack.  We'd  better hold him back tomorrow a bit." 

"Can't hold back any one," said Duff, with an oath.  "We've got to  make it tomorrow night.  There's the devil

of a trip before us.  That  big marsh portage is a heartbreaker, and there must be a dozen  or  fifteen of them

awaiting us, and we're going to get throughat  least,  I am." 

"All right," said Knight, with a quick flash of temper.  "I'll stay  with you, only I thought we might ease him a

bit." 

"I'm telling you, we're going to get through," said Duff, with  another oath. 

"You needn't tell me, Duff," said Knight.  "Keep your shirt on." 

"On or off, wet or dry, sink or swim, we're going to make that  train tomorrow, Knight.  That's all about it." 

Then Knight let himself go. 

"See here, Duff.  Do you want to go on tonight?  If you do, hell  and blazes, say the word and I'm with you." 

His face was white as he spoke.  He seized a tumpline, swung the  pack upon his head, and set off across the

portage. 

"Come on, boys," he yelled.  "We're going through tonight." 

"Oh, hold up, Knight!" said Duff.  "What the hell's eating you?  We'll grub first anyway." 

"No," said Knight.  "The next rapid is a bad bit of water, and if  we're going through tonight, I want that bit

behind me, before it  gets too dark.  So come along!" 

"Oh, cut it out, Knight," said Duff, in a gruff but conciliatory  tone.  "We'll camp right here." 

"It's all the same to me," said Knight, flinging his pack down.  "When you want to go on, say the word.  You

won't have to ask me  twice." 

Duff looked over the six feet of bone and sinew and muscle of the  young rancher, made as if to answer,

paused a moment, changed his  mind, and said more quietly: 

"Don't be an ass, Knight.  I'm not trying to hang your shirt on a  tree." 

"You know damned well you can't," said Knight, who was still white  with passion. 

"Oh, come off," replied Duff.  "Anyway, I don't see what young  Dunbar is to you.  We must get through

tomorrow night.  The  overseas  contingent is camping at Valcartier, according to these  papers and  whatever

happens I am going with that contingent." 

Knight made no reply.  He was a little ashamed of his temper.  But  during the past two days he had chafed

under the rasp of Duff's  tongue and his overbearing manner.  He resented too his total  disregard of Barry's

weariness, for in spite of his sheer grit, the  pace was wearing the boy down. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 49



Top




Page No 52


"We ought to reach the railroad by six tomorrow," said Duff,  renewing the conversation, and anxious to

appease his comrade.  "There's a late train, but if we catch the six we shall make home  in  good time.  Hello,

what's this coming?" 

At his words they all turned and looked in the direction in which  he pointed. 

Down a stream, which at this point came tumbling into theirs in a  dangerous looking rapid, came a canoe

with a man in the centre  guiding it as only an expert could. 

"By Jove!  He can't make that drop," said Knight, walking down  toward the landing. 

They all stood watching the canoe which, at the moment, hung poised  upon the brink of the rapid like a bird

for flight.  Even as Knight  spoke the canoe entered the first smooth pitch at the top.  Two  long,  swallowlike

sweeps, then she plunged into the foam, to appear  a  moment later fighting her way through the mass of

crowding,  crested  waves, which, like whitefanged wolves upon a doe, seemed to  be  hurling themselves

upon her, intent upon bearing her down to  destruction. 

"By the living, jumping Jemima!" said Fielding, in an awestricken  tone, "she's gone!" 

"She's through!" cried Knight. 

"Great Jehoshaphat!" said Fielding.  "He's a bird!" 

With a flip or two of his paddle, the stranger shot his canoe  across the stream, and floated quietly to the

landing. 

Barry ran down to meet him. 

"I say, that was beautifully done," he cried, taking the nose of  the canoe while the man stepped ashore and

stood a moment looking  back at the water. 

"A leetle more to the left would have been better, I think.  She  took some water," he remarked in a slow voice,

as if to himself. 

He was a strangelooking creature.  He might have stepped out of  one of Fenimore Cooper's novels.  Indeed,

as Barry's eyes travelled  up and down his long, bony, stooping, slouching figure, his mind  leaped at once to

the Pathfinder. 

"Come far?" asked Duff, approaching the stranger. 

"Quite a bit," he answered, in a quiet, courteous voice, pausing a  moment in his work. 

"Going out?" enquired Duff. 

"Not yet," he said.  "Going up the country first to The Post." 

"Ah, we have just come down from there," said Duff.  "We started  yesterday morning," he added, evidently

hoping to surprise the man. 

"Yes," he answered in a quiet tone of approval.  "Nice little run!  Nice little run!  Bit of a hurry, I guess," he

ventured  apologetically. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 50



Top




Page No 53


"You bet your life, we just are.  This damned war makes a man feel  like as if the devil was after him," said

Duff. 

"War!"  The man looked blankly at him.  "Who's fightin'?" 

"Why, haven't you heard?  It's been going on for a month.  We heard  only three days ago as we were going

further up the country.  It  knocked our plans endways, and here we are chasing ourselves to get  out." 

"War!" said the man again.  "Who's fightin'?  Uncle Sam after them  Mexicans?" 

"No.  Mexicans, hell!" exclaimed Duff.  "Germany and Britain." 

"Britain!"  The slouching shoulders lost their droop.  "Britain!"  he said, straightening himself up.  "What's she

been doin' to  Germany?" 

"What's Germany been doing to her, and to Belgium, and to Servia,  and to France?" answered Duff, in a

wrathful voice.  "She's been  raising hell all around.  You haven't seen the papers, eh?  I have  them all here." 

The stranger seemed dazed by the news.  He made no reply, but  getting out his fryingpan and teapail, his

only utensils, he set  about preparing his evening meal. 

"I say," said Duff, "won't you eat with us?  We're just about  ready.  We'll be glad to have you." 

The man hesitated a perceptible moment.  In the wilds men do not  always accept invitations to eat.  Food is

sometimes worth more  than  its weight in gold. 

"I guess I will, if you've lots of stuff," he said at length. 

"We've lots of grub, and we expect to be home by tomorrow night  anyway, if things go all right.  You are very

welcome." 

The man laid down his fryingpan and teapail, and walked with Duff  toward his camp. 

"Are you goin'?" he enquired. 

"Going?" 

"To the war.  Guess some of our Canadian boys will be goin' likely,  eh?" 

"Going," cried Duff.  "You bet your life I'm going.  But, come on.  We'll talk as we eat.  And we can't stay long,

either." 

Duff introduced the party. 

"My name's McCuaig," said the stranger. 

"Scotch, I guess?" enquired Duff. 

"My father came out with The Company.  I was born up north.  Never  been much out, but I read the papers,"

he added quickly, as if to  correct any misapprehension as to his knowledge of the world and  its  affairs.  "My

father always got the Times and the Spectator,  and I've  continued the habit." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 51



Top




Page No 54


"Any one who reads the Times and the Spectator," said Barry, "can  claim to be a fairly wellread man.  My

father takes the Spectator,  too." 

As they sat down to supper, he noticed that McCuaig took off his  old grey felt and crossed himself before

beginning toast. 

As a matter of courtesy, Barry had always been asked to say grace  before meals while with the Howland

party.  This custom, however,  had  been discontinued upon this trip.  They had no time for meals.  They  had

"just grabbed their grub and run," as Harry Hobbs said. 

While they ate, Duff kept a full tide of conversation going in  regard to the causes of the war and its progress,

as reported in  the  papers.  Barry noticed that McCuaig's comments, though few,  revealed a  unique knowledge

of European political affairs during  the last quarter  of a century.  He noticed too that his manners at  the table

were those  of a gentleman. 

After supper they packed their stuff over the long portage, leaving  their tent and sleeping gear, with their

food, however, to be taken  in the morning.  For a long time they sat over the fire, Barry  reading, for

McCuaig's benefit, the newspaper accounts of the  Belgian  atrocities, the story of the smashing drive of the

German  hosts, and  the retreat of the British army from Mons. 

"What," exclaimed McCuaig, "the British soldiers goin' back!  Runnin' away from them Germans!" 

"Well, the Germans are only about ten to one, not only in men but  in guns, and in this war it's guns that count.

Guns can wipe out  an  army of heroes as easily as an army of cowards," said Duff. 

"And them women and children," said McCuaig.  "Are they killing  them still?" 

"You're just right, they are," replied Duff, "and will till we stop  them." 

McCuaig's eyes were glowing with a deep inner light.  They were  wonderful eyes, quick, darting,

straightlooking and fearless, the  eyes of a man who owes his life to his vigilance and his courage. 

Before turning in for the night, Barry went to the river's edge,  and stood looking up at the stars holding their

steadfast watch  over  the turbulent and tossing waters below. 

"Quiet, ain't they?" said a voice at his shoulder. 

"Why, you startled me, Mr. McCuaig; I never heard you step." 

McCuaig laughed his quiet laugh. 

"Got to move quietly in this country," he said, "if you are going  to keep alive." 

A moment or so he stood by Barry's side, looking up with him at the  stars. 

"No fuss, up there," he said, interpreting Barry's mood and  attitude.  "Not like that there pitchin', tossin',

threatenin'  water." 

"No," said Barry, "but though they look quiet, I suppose if we  could really see, there is a most terrific

whirling of millions of  stars up there, going at the rate of thousands of miles a minute." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 52



Top




Page No 55


"Millions of 'em, and all whirlin' about," said McCuaig in an awe  stricken voice.  "It's a wonder they don't

hit." 

"They don't hit because they each keep their own orbit," said  Barry, "and they obey the laws of their

existence." 

"Orbut," enquired McCuaig.  "What's that?" 

"The trail that each star follows," said Barry. 

"I see," said McCuaig, "each one keeps its own trail, its own  orbut, and so there's peace up there.  And I guess

there'd be peace  down here if folks did the same thing.  It's when a man gets out of  his own orbut and into

another fellow's that the scrap begins.  I  guess that's where Germany's got wrong." 

"Something like that," replied Barry. 

"And sometimes," continued McCuaig, his eyes upon the stars, "when  a little one comes up against a big one,

he gets busted, eh?" 

Barry nodded. 

"And a big one, when he comes up against a bigger one gets pretty  badly jarred, eh?" 

"I suppose so," said Barry. 

"That's what's goin' to happen to Germany," said McCuaig. 

"Germany's a very powerful nation," said Barry.  "The most powerful  military nation in the world." 

"What!" said McCuaig.  "Bigger than Britain?" 

"Britain has two or three hundred thousand men in her army; Germany  has seven millions or more, with

seventy millions of people behind  them, organised for war.  Of course, Britain has her navy, but then

Germany has the next biggest in the world.  Oh, it's going to be a  terrific war." 

"I say," said McCuaig, putting his hand on Barry's shoulder.  "You  don't think it will bother us any to lick

her?" 

"It will be the most terrible of all Britain's wars," replied  Barry.  "It will take every ounce of Britain's

strength." 

"You don't tell me!" exclaimed McCuaig, as if struck by an entirely  new idea.  "Say, are you really anxious,

young man?" 

"I am terribly anxious," replied Barry.  "I know Germany a little.  I spent a year there.  She is a mighty nation,

and she is ready for  war." 

"She is, eh!" replied McCuaig thoughtfully.  He wandered off to the  fire without further word, where, rolling

himself in his blanket  and  scorning the place in the tent offered him by Duff, he made  himself  comfortable

for the night. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 53



Top




Page No 56


At the break of day Duff was awakened by the smell of something  frying.  Over the fire bent McCuaig, busy

preparing a breakfast of  tea, bacon and bannocks, together with thick slices of fat pork. 

Breakfast was eaten in haste.  The day's work was before them, and  there was no time for talk.  In a very few

minutes they stood ready  for their trip across the portage. 

With them stood McCuaig.  His blanket roll containing his grub,  with fryingpan and teapail attached, lay at

his feet; his rifle  beside it. 

For a moment or two he stood looking back up the stream by which,  last night, he had come.  Then he began

tying his paddles to the  canoe thwarts in preparation for packing it across the portage. 

As he was tying on the second paddle, Duff's eye fell on him. 

"What's up, McCuaig?" he said.  "Aren't you going up to the Post?" 

"No, I guess I ain't goin' up no more," replied McCuaig slowly. 

"What do you mean?  You aren't going back home?" 

"No.  My old shack will do without me for a while, I guess.Say,"  he continued, facing around upon Duff

and looking him squarely in  the  face, "this young chap says"putting his hand upon Barry's

shoulder"Britain is going to have a hell of a time licking  Germany  back into her own orbut.  Them papers

said last night that  Canada was  going in strong.  Do you think she could use a fellow  like me?" 

A silence fell upon the group of men. 

"What!  Do you mean it, McCuaig?" said Duff at length. 

The man turned his thin, eagle face toward the speaker, a light in  his eyes. 

"Why, ain't you goin'?  Ain't every one goin' that can?  If a  fellow stood on one side while his country was

fightin', where  would  he live when it's all over?  He read out of the papers that  them  Germans were shootin'

women and children.  So" his face  began to  work, "am I goin' to stand by and ask some one else to  make

'em quit?  No, by God!" 

The men stood watching his face, curiously twisted and quivering.  Then without a word Duff seized his pack,

and swung into the trail,  every man following him in his order.  Without pausing, except for  a  brief half hour

at noon, and another later in the day for eating,  they  pressed the trail, running what rapids they could and

portaging the  others, until in the early evening they saw, far  away, a dirty blur on  the skyline. 

"Hurrah!" yelled Fielding.  "Good old firebus, waiting for us." 

"Somebody run ahead and hold her," said Duff. 

Barry flung his pack down and started away. 

"Come back here, Barry," cried Knight.  "You're not fit.  You're  all in." 

"That's right, too," said McCuaig.  "I guess I'll go." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH 54



Top




Page No 57


And off he set with the long, shuffling, tireless trot with which,  for a hundred years, the "runners of the

woods" have packed their  loads and tracked their game in the wilds of northwestern Canada. 

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS

The city of Edmonton was in an uproar, its streets thronged with  excited men, ranchers and cowboys from the

ranches, lumberjacks  from  the foothill camps, men from the mines, trappers with lean,  hard  faces, in weird

garb, from the north. 

The news from the front was ominous.  Belgium was a smoking waste.  Her skies were black with the burning

of her towns, villages and  homesteads, her soil red with the blood of her old men, her women  and  children.

The French armies, driven back in rout from the  Belgian  frontier, were being pounded to death by the

German hordes.  Fortresses  hitherto considered impregnable were tumbling like  ninepins before the  terrible

smashing of Austrian and German  sixteeninch guns.  Already  von Kluck with his four hundred  thousand of

conquering warriors was at  the gates of Paris. 

Most ominous of all, the British army, that gallant, little  sacrificial army, of a scant seventyfive thousand

men, holding  like  a bulldog to the flank of von Bulow's mighty army, fifty times  as  strong, threatened by von

Kluck on the left flank and by von  Housen on  the right, was slowing down the German advance, but was

itself being  slowly ground into the bloody dust of the northern and  eastern roads  of Northern and Eastern

France. 

Black days these were for the men of British blood.  Was the world  to see something new in war?  Were

Germans to overcome men of the  race of Nelson, and Wellington and Colin Campbell? 

At home, hundreds of thousands were battering at the recruiting  offices.  In the Dominions of the Empire

overseas it was the same.  In  Canada a hundred thousand men were demanding a place in the  first  Canadian

contingent of thirtyfive thousand, now almost ready  to sail.  General Sam at Ottawa was being snowed under

by entreating,  insistent, cajoling, threatening telegrams.  Already northern  Alberta  had sent two thousand men.

The rumour in Edmonton ran that  there were  only a few places left to be filled in the north Alberta  quota.  For

these few places hundreds of men were fighting in the  streets. 

Alighting from their train, Duff and his men stood amazed, aghast,  gazing upon the scene before them.  Duff

climbed a wagon wheel and  surveyed the crowd packing the street in front of the bulletin  boards. 

"No use, this way, boys.  We'll have to go around.  Come on." 

They went on.  Up side streets and lanes, through back yards and  shops they went until at length they emerged

within a hundred yards  of the recruiting office. 

Duff called his men about him. 

"Boys, we'll have to bluff them," he said.  "You're a party of  recruits that Col. Kavanagh expects.  You've been

sent for.  I'm  bringing you in under orders.  Look as much like soldiers as you  can,  and bore in like hell.  Come

on!" 

They began to bore.  At once there was an uproar, punctuated with  vociferous and varied profanity. 

Duff proved himself an effective leader. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 55



Top




Page No 58


"Here, let me pass," he shouted into the backs of men's heads.  "I'm on duty here.  I must get through to

Colonel Kavanagh.  Keep  up  there, men; keep your line!  Stand back, please!  Make way!" 

His huge bulk, distorted face and his loud and authoritative voice  startled men into temporary submission,

and before they could  recover  themselves he and his little company of hardboring men  were through. 

Twentyfive yards from the recruiting office a side rush of the  crowd caught them. 

"They've smashed the barricades," a boy from a telegraph pole  called out. 

Duff and his men fought to hold their places, but they became  conscious of a steady pressure backwards. 

"What's doing now, boy?" shouted Duff to the urchin clinging to the  telegraph pole. 

"The fusileersthey are sticking their bayonets into them." 

Before the line of bayonets the crowd retreated slowly, but Duff  and his company held their ground, allowing

the crowd to ebb past  them, until they found themselves against the line of bayonets. 

"Let me through here, sergeant, with my party," said Duff.  "I'm  under orders of Colonel Kavanagh." 

The sergeant, an old British army man, looked them over. 

"Have you an order, sira written order, I mean?" 

"No," said Duff.  "I haven't, but the colonel expects us.  He is  waiting for me now." 

"Sorry, sir," replied the sergeant, "my orders are to let no one  through without a written pass." 

Duff argued, stormed, threatened, swore; but to no purpose.  The  N. C. O. knew his job. 

"Send a note in," suggested Barry in Duff's ear. 

"Good idea," replied Duff, and wrote hurriedly. 

"Here, take this through to your colonel," he said, passing the  note to the sergeant. 

Almost immediately Colonel Kavanagh came out and greeted Duff  warmly. 

"Where in this wide creation have you been, Duff?" he exclaimed.  "I've wanted you terribly." 

"Here I am now, then," answered Duff.  "Six of us.  We're going  with you." 

"It can't be done," said the colonel.  "I have only twenty places  left; every one promised ten times over." 

"That makes it easy, Kavanagh.  You can give six of them to us." 

"Duff, it simply can't be done.  You know I'd give it to you if I  could.  I've wires from Ottawa backing up a

hundred applicants,  actually ordering me to put them on.  No!  It's no use," continued  the colonel, holding up

his hand.  "Look here, I'll give you a  pointer.  We have got word today that there's to be a second  contingent.

Neil Fraser is out there in your district, Wapiti,  raising a company of two hundred and fifty men.  We have


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 56



Top




Page No 59


stripped  that country bare already, so he's up against it.  He wants Wapiti  men, he says.  They are no better

than any other, but he thinks  they  are.  You get out there tonight, Duff, and get in on that  thing.  You  will get

a commission, too.  Now hike!  Hike!  Go!  Honest to God,  Duff, I want you with my battalion, and if I can

work it afterwards,  I'll get you exchanged, but your only chance  now is Wapiti.  Go, for  God's sake, go

quick!" 

"What do you say, boys?" asked Duff, wheeling upon his men. 

"I say, go!" said Knight. 

In this decision they all agreed. 

"Go it is," said Duff.  "Right about turn.  Good luck, Kavanagh,  damn you.  I see you have got a good sergeant

there." 

"Who?  McDowell?  None better.  You couldn't beat him, eh?" said  the colonel with a grin. 

The sergeant stood at attention, with a wooden face. 

"He's the kind of man they want in the front lines," said Duff.  "The devil himself couldn't break through

where he is." 

"That's why I have him.  Good luck.  Goodbye!" 

Throughout the night they marched, now and then receiving a lift  from a ranch wagon, and in the grey of the

morning, weary, hungry,  but resolute for a place in the Wapiti company, they made the  village. 

Early as it was, Barry found his father astir, with breakfast in  readiness. 

"Hello, boy!" cried his father running to him with outstretched  hands. 

"Hello, dad!" answered Barry.  His father threw a searching glance  over his son's face as he shook his hand

warmly. 

"Not a word, Barry, until you eat.  Not a word.  Go get ready for  your bath.  I'll have it for you in a minute.  No,

not one word.  Quick.  March.  That is the only word these days.  As you eat I'll  give you the news." 

Resolutely he refused to talk until he saw his son begin upon his  breakfast.  Then he poured forth a stream of

news.  The whole  country  was aflame with war enthusiasm.  Alberta had offered half a  million  bushels of oats

for the imperial army, and a thousand  horses or more.  The Calgary district had recruited two thousand  men,

the Edmonton  district as many more.  All over Canada, from  Vancouver to Halifax, it  was the same. 

From the Wapiti district twentysix ranchers, furnishing their own  horses, had already gone.  Ewen Innes was

in Edmonton.  His brother  Malcolm was in uniform, too, and his young brother Jim was keen to  enlist.  Neil

Fraser was busy raising a company of Wapiti men.  Young  Pickles and McCann had joined up as buglers. 

And so the stream flowed, Barry listening with grave face but  making no response. 

"And I'm glad you're back, my boy.  I'm glad you're back," said his  father, clapping him on the shoulder. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 57



Top




Page No 60


The rest of the meal was eaten in silence.  They were having each  his own thoughts, and for the first time in

their life together,  they  kept their thoughts to themselves. 

"You're going to your office, Dad," said Barry, when they had  cleared away, and set the house in order. 

"No, the office is closed, and will be for some time, I imagine.  I'm busy with Neil Fraser.  I'm acting

paymaster, quartermaster,  recruiting sergeant, and half a dozen other things." 

"I'll go down with you," said Barry, as his father rose to go. 

His father came back to him, put his hands on his shoulders, and  said: 

"Barry, I want you to go to bed." 

"Nonsense, dad.  I'm all right.  I'm going downtown with you." 

"Barry," said his father, "we have hard times before us, and you  must be fit.  I ask you to go to bed and sleep

there this forenoon.  You're half asleep now.  This afternoon we shall face up to our  job." 

His father's voice was quietly authoritative and Barry yielded. 

"All right, dad.  I'll do as you say, and this afternoonwell,  we'll see." 

At the noonday meal they were conscious of a mutual restraint.  For  the first time in their lives they were not

opening to each other  their innermost souls.  The experience was as distressing as it was  unusual.  The father,

as if in dread of silence, was obviously  exerting himself to keep a stream of talk flowing.  Barry was  listening

with a face very grave and very unlike the bright and  buoyant face he usually carried.  They avoided each

other's eyes,  and  paid little heed to their food. 

At length Barry pushed back his chair. 

"Will you excuse me, dad," he said.  "I think I shall step out a  moment into the garden." 

"Do, Barry," said his father, in obvious relief.  "You are fagged  out, my boy." 

"Thanks, dad.  I am a bit played out." 

"And take it easy this afternoon, Barry.  Tonight you will tell me  about your trip, andandwe'll have a

talk." 

"Good old dad!" said Barry.  "You do understand a chap.  See you  later, then," he called back as he passed

through the door. 

His father sat gazing before him for some moments with a deep  shadow on his face. 

"There is something wrong with that boy," he said to himself.  "I  wish I knew what it was." 

He set his house in order, moving heavily as if a sudden weight of  years had fallen upon his shoulders, and

took his way slowly down  the  street. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 58



Top




Page No 61


"I wonder what it is," he mused, refusing to give form to a  horrible thought that hovered like a spectre about

the windows of  his  soul. 

The first glance at his son's face at the time of the evening meal  made his heart sing within him. 

"He's all right again!  He's all right!" he said to himself  jubilantly. 

"Hello, dad," cried Barry, as his father entered the room.  "Supper's just ready.  How do you feel, eh?" 

"Better, my boyfirst rate, I mean.  I'm properly hungry.  You're  rested, I can see." 

"I'm all right, dad!  I'm all right!" cried Barry, in his old  cheery way.  "Dad, I want to apologise to you.  I wasn't

myself to  day, but now I'm all right again.  Dad, I've joined up.  I'm a  soldier now," he said with a smile on

his face, but with anxious  eyes  turned on his father. 

"Joined up!" echoed his father.  "Barry, you have enlisted!  Thank  God, my boy.  I fearedI thought  No,

damned if I did!" he  added,  with such an unusual burst of passion that Barry could only  gaze at  him with

astonishment. 

"Forgive me, my boy," he said, coming forward with outstretched  hand.  "For a moment I confess I

thought"  Again he paused,  apparently unable to continue. 

"You thought, dad," cried Barry, "andforgive me, dadI thought  too.  I ought to have known you better." 

"And I, you, my son." 

They shook hands with each other in an ecstasy of jubilation. 

"My God, I'm glad that's through," said the older man.  "We were  both fools, Barry, but thank God that horror

is past.  Now tell me  all about everythingyour trip, your plans.  Let's have a good  talk  as we always do." 

"Come on then, dad," cried Barry.  "Let's have an eat first.  By  Jove, I feel a thousand years younger.  I go to

the M. O. tomorrow  for an examination." 

"He is quite unusually severe in his interpretation of the  regulations, I understand," said his father.  "He is

turning men  down  right and left.  He knows, of course, that there are plenty to  choose  from.  But there is no

fear of your fitness, Barry." 

"Not much," said Barry, with a gay laugh. 

Never had they spent a happier evening together.  True, the spectre  of war would thrust itself upon them, but

they faced it as men  with  a full appreciation of its solemn reality, but without fear,  and with  a quiet

determination to make whatever sacrifice might be  demanded of  them.  The perfect understanding that had

always marked  their  intercourse with each other was restored.  The intolerable  burden of  mutual uncertainty in

regard to each other's attitude  toward the war  was lifted.  All shadows that lay between them were  gone.

Nothing  else really mattered. 

The day following, Barry received a rude shock.  The M. O., after  an examination, to his amazement and

dismay, pronounced him  physically unfit for service. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 59



Top




Page No 62


"And why, pray?" cried his father indignantly, when Barry announced  the astounding report.  "Is the man a

fool?  I understood that he  was  strict.  But you! unfit!  It is preposterous.  Unfit! how?" 

"Heart murmur," said Barry.  "Sets it down to asthma.  You remember  I told you I had a rotten attack after my

experience last week in  the  river.  He suggested that I apply for a position in an  ambulance  corps, and he is

giving me a letter to Colonel Sidleigh  at Edmonton.  I am going tomorrow to Edmonton to see Sidleigh, and

besides I have  some church business to attend to.  I must call upon  my  superintendent.  You remember I made

an application to him for  another  mission field." 

He found Colonel Sidleigh courteously willing to accept his  application, the answer to which, he was

informed, he might expect  in  a fortnight; and so went with a comparatively light heart to his  interview with

his superintendent. 

The interview, however, turned out not entirely as he had expected.  He went with an idea of surrendering his

appointment.  His  superintendent made him an offer of another and greater. 

"So they turned you down," said the superintendent.  "Well, I  consider it most providential.  You have applied

for a position on  the ambulance corps.  As fine as is that service, and as splendid  as  are its possibilities, I offer

you something much finer, and I  will  even say much more important to our army and to our cause.  We  are in

need of men for the Chaplain Service, and for this service  we demand  the picked men of our church.  The

appointments that have  been made  already are some of them most unsuitable, some, I regret  to say,

scandalous.  Let me tell you, sir, of an experience in  Winnipeg only  last week.  It was, my fortune to fall in

with the  commanding officer  of a Saskatchewan unit.  I found him in a rage  against the church and  all its

officials.  His chaplain had become  so hilarious at the mess  that he was quite unable to carry on." 

"Hilarious?" inquired Barry. 

"Hilarious, sir.  Yes, plain drunk.  Think of it.  Think of the  crime! the shame of it!  A man charged with the

responsibility of  the  souls of these men going to warpossibly to their death  drunk, in  their presence!  A

man standing for God and the great  eternal  verities, incapacitated before them!  I took the matter up  with

Ottawa, and I have this satisfaction at least, that I believe  that no  such appointment will ever be made again.

That chaplain, I  may say  too, has been dismissed.  I have here, sir, a mission field  suitable  to your ability and

experience.  I shall not offer it to  you.  I am  offering you the position of chaplain in one of our  Alberta

battalions." 

Barry stood before him, dumb with dismay. 

"Of course, I want to go to the war," he said at length, "but I am  sure, sir, I am not the man for the position

you offer me." 

"Sir," said the superintendent, "I have taken the liberty of  sending in your name.  Time was an element.

Appointments were  being  rapidly made, and I was extremely anxious that you should go  with this  battalion.  I

confess to a selfish interest.  My own boy,  Duncan, has  enlisted in that unit, and many of our finest young

men  with him.  I  assumed the responsibility of asking for your  appointment.  I must  urge you solemnly to

consider the matter  before you decline." 

Eloquently Barry pleaded his unfitness, instancing his failure as a  preacher in his last field. 

"I am not a preacher," he protested.  "I am not a 'mixer.'  They  all say so.  I shall be impossible as a chaplain." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 60



Top




Page No 63


"Young man," said the superintendent, a note of sternness in his  voice, "you know not what transformations

in character this war  will  work.  Would I were twenty years younger," he added  passionately,  "twenty years

sounder.  Think of the opportunity to  stand for God  among your men, to point them the way of duty, and  fit

them for it, to  bring them comfort, when they need comfort  sorely, to bring them  peace, when they most need

peace." 

Barry came away from the interview more disturbed than he had ever  been in his life.  After he had returned

to his hotel, a message  from  his superintendent recalled him. 

"I have a bit of work to do," he said, "in which I need your help.  I wish you to join me in a visitation of some

of the military camps  in this district.  We start this evening." 

There was nothing for it but to obey his superintendent's orders.  The two weeks' experience with his chief

gave Barry a new view and  a  new estimate of the chaplain's work.  As he came into closer  touch  with camp

life and its conditions, he began to see how great  was the  soldier's need of such moral and spiritual support as

a  chaplain might  be able to render.  He was exposed to subtle and  powerful temptations.  He was deprived of

the wonted restraints  imposed by convention, by  environment, by family ties.  The  reactions from the

exhaustion of  physical training, from the  monotonous routine of military discipline,  from loneliness and

homesickness were such as to call for that warm,  sympathetic,  brotherly aid, and for the uplifting spiritual

inspiration that it  is a chaplain's privilege to offer.  But in  proportion as the  service took on a nobler and loftier

aspect, was  Barry conscious  to a corresponding degree of his own unfitness for the  work. 

When he returned to the city, he found no definite information  awaiting him in regard to a place in the

ambulance corps.  He  returned home in an unhappy and uncertain frame of mind. 

But under the drive of war, events were moving rapidly in Barry's  life.  He arrived late in the afternoon, and

proceeding to the  military H.Q., he found neither his father nor Captain Neil Fraser  in  the office. 

"Gone out for the afternoon, sir," was the word from the orderly in  charge. 

Wandering about the village, he saw in a field at its outskirts, a  squad of recruits doing military evolutions

and physical drill.  As  he drew near he was arrested by the short, snappy tones of the  N. C.  O. in charge. 

"That chap knows his job," he said to himself, "and looks like his  job, too," he added, as his eyes rested upon

the neat, upright,  soldierlike figure. 

Captain Neil he found observing the drill from a distance. 

"What do you think of that?" he called out to Barry, as the latter  came within hailing distance.  "What do you

think of my sergeant?" 

"Fine," replied Barry.  "Where did you get him?" 

"What?  Look at him!" 

"I am.  Pretty natty sergeant he makes, too." 

"Let's go out there, and I'll introduce him." 

As they crossed the parade ground, the sergeant dropped his  military tone and proceeded to explain in his

ordinary voice some  details in connection with the drill.  Barry, catching the sound of  his voice, stopped short. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 61



Top




Page No 64


"You don't mean it, Captain Neil!  Not dad, is it?" 

"Nobody else," said Captain Neil.  "Wait a minute.  Wait and let's  watch him at his work." 

For some time they stood observing the work of the new sergeant.  Barry was filled with amazement and

delight. 

"What do you think of him?" inquired Captain Neil. 

But Barry made no reply. 

"My company sergeant major got drunk," continued Captain Neil.  "I  had no one to take the drill.  I asked your

father to take it.  He  nearly swept us off our feet.  In consequence, there he stands, my  company sergeant

major, and let me tell you, he will be the  regimental sergeant major before many weeks have passed, or I'm a

German." 

"But his age," inquired Barry, still in a maze of astonishment. 

"Oh, that's all right.  You don't want them too young.  I assured  the authorities that he was of proper military

age, telling them,  at  the same time, that I must have him.  He's a wonder, and the men  just  adore him." 

"I don't wonder at that," said Barry. 

Together they moved over to the squad.  The sergeant, observing his  officer, called his men smartly to

attention, and greeted the  captain  with a very snappy salute. 

"Sergeant major, let me introduce you to my friend, Mr. Barry  Dunbar," said Captain Neil with a grin. 

"I say, dad," said Barry, still unable to associate his father with  this N. C. O. in uniform who stood before

him.  "I say, dad, where  did you get all that military stuff?" 

"I'm very rusty, my boy, very rusty!  I hope to brush up, though.  The men are improving, I think, sir." 

"I'm sure of it," said Captain Neil.  "How is that wild man from  Athabasca doing?" 

"He is finding it hard work, sir, I'm afraid.  He finds it  difficult to connect up this drill business with the

business of  war.  He wants to go right off and kill Germans.  But he is making  an  effort to put up with me." 

"And you, with him, eh, sergeant major?  But turn them loose.  They  have done enough for today, and I know

your son wants to take you  off with him, and get you to explain how you go into the army." 

The explanation came as they were walking home together. 

"You see, boy, I felt keenly your disappointment in being rejected  from the fighting forces of the country.  I

felt too that our  family  ought to be represented in the fighting line, so when  Captain Fraser  found himself in

need of a drill sergeant, I could  hardly refuse.  I  would have liked to have consulted you, my boy,  but" 

"Not at all, dad; you did perfectly right.  It was just fine of  you.  I'm as proud as Punch.  I only wish I could go

with you.  I'd  like to be in your squad.  But never mind, I've two jobs open to me  now, and I sorely need your

advice." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 62



Top




Page No 65


Together they talked over the superintendent's offer of the  position of chaplain. 

"I can't see myself a chaplain, dad.  The position calls for an  older man, a man of wider experience.  Many of

these men would be  almost twice my age.  Now the superintendent himself would be the  man  for the job.  You

ought to see him at his work with the  soldiers.  I  really can't think I'm fit." 

In this opinion his father rather concurred. 

"An older man would be better, Barrya man of more experience  would be of more service, and, yet I don't

know.  One thing I am  sure  of, if you accept the position, I believe you will fill it  worthily.  After all, in every

department, this war is a young  man's job." 

"Of course," said Barry.  "If I went as chaplain, it would be in  your unit, dad, and that would be altogether

glorious." 

"I do hope so.  But we must not allow that, however, to influence  our decision," replied his father. 

"I know, I know!" hurriedly agreed Barry.  "I trust I would not be  unduly influenced by personal

considerations." 

This hope, however, was rudely dashed by an unexpected call for a  draft of recruits from Captain Neil's

company that came through  from  Colonel Kavanagh to replace a draft suddenly dispatched to  make up to

strength another western regiment.  Attached to the call  there was a  specific request, which amounted to a

demand for the  sergeant major,  for whose special qualifications as physical and  military instructor  there was

apparently serious need in Colonel  Kavanagh's regiment. 

With great reluctance, and with the expenditure of considerable  profanity, Captain Neil Fraser dispatched his

draft and agreed to  the  surrender of his sergeant major. 

The change came as a shock to both Barry and his father.  For some  days they had indulged the hope that they

would both be attached to  the same military unit, and unconsciously this had been weighing  with  Barry in his

consideration of his probable appointment as  chaplain. 

The disappointment of their hope was the more bitter when it was  announced that Colonel Kavanagh's

battalion was warned for  immediate  service overseas, and the further announcement that in  all probability  the

new battalion, to which the Wapiti company  would be attached,  might not be dispatched until some time in

the  spring. 

"But you may catch us up in England, Barry," said his father, when  Barry was deploring their ill luck.  "No

one knows what our  movements  will be.  I do wish, however, that your position were  definitely  settled." 

The decision in this matter came quickly, and was, without his will  or desire, materially hastened by Barry

himself. 

Colonel Kavanagh's battalion being under orders to depart within  ten days, a final Church Parade was

ordered, at which only soldiers  and their kin were permitted to be present.  The preacher for the  day  falling ill

from an overweight of war work, and Barry being in  the  city with nothing to do, the duty of preaching at this

Parade  Service  was suddenly thrust upon him. 

To his own amazement and to that of his father, Barry accepted  without any fear or hesitation this duty which

in other circumstances  would have overwhelmed him with dismay.  But to Barry the occasion  was of such


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 63



Top




Page No 66


surpassing magnitude and importance that all personal  considerations were obliterated. 

The war, with its horrors, its losses, its overwhelming sacrifice,  its vast and eternal issues, was the single fact

that filled his  mind.  It was this that delivered him from that nervous self  consciousness, the preacher's curse,

that paralyses the mental  activities, chills the passions, and cloggs the imagination, so  that  his sermon

becomes a lifeless repetition of words, previously  prepared, correct, even beautiful, it may be in form, logical

in  argument, sound in philosophy, but dead, dull and impotent, bereft  of  the fire that kindles the powers of the

soul, the emotion that  urges  to action, the imagination that lures to high endeavour. 

"I beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, that ye  present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy,

acceptable unto God,  which is your reasonable service." 

The voice, clear, vibrant, melodious, arrested with its first word  the eyes and hearts of his hearers, and so held

them to the end.  With  the earnest voice there was the fascination of a face alight  with a  noble beauty, eyes

glowing as with lambent flame. 

A second time he read the appealing words, then paused and allowed  his eyes to wander quietly over the

congregation.  They represented  to him in that hour the manhood and womanhood of his country.  Sincerely,

with no attempt at rhetoric and with no employment of  any  of its tricks, he began his sermon. 

"This war," he said, "is a conflict of ideals eternally opposed.  Our ambitious and ruthless enemy has made the

issue and has  determined the method of settlement.  It is a war of souls, but the  method of settlement is not

that of reason but that of forcea  force  that finds expression through your bodies.  Therefore the  appeal of

the Apostle Paul, this oldworld hero, to the men of his  time reaches  down to us in this day, and at this crisis

of the  world's history.  Offer your bodiesthese living bodiesthese  sacred bodiesoffer  them in sacrifice

to God." 

There was little discussion of the causes of the war.  What need?  They knew that this war was neither of their

desiring nor of their  making.  There was no attempt to incite hatred or revenge.  There  was  little reference to

the horrors of war, to its griefs, its  dreadful  agonies, its irreparable losses. 

From the first word he lifted his audience to the high plane of  sacrament and sacrifice.  They were called upon

to offer upon the  altar of the world's freedom all that they held dear in lifeyea,  life itself!  It was the ancient

sacrifice that the noblest of the  race had always been called upon to make.  In giving themselves to  this cause

they were giving themselves to their country.  They were  offering themselves to God.  In simple diction, and in

clear  flowing  speech, the sermon proceeded without pause or stumbling  to the end.  The preacher closed with

an appeal to the soldiers  present to make  this sacrifice of theirs at once worthy and  complete.  These bodies of

theirs were sacred and were devoted  to this cause.  It was their duty  to keep them clean and fit. 

For a few brief moments, he turned to the others present at the  servicethe fathers, mothers, wives and

sweethearts of the  soldiers,  and reminded them in tones thrilling with tenderness and  sympathy that  though

not privileged to share in the soldiers'  service in the front  lines, none the less might they share in this

sacrifice, by patient  endurance of the separation and loss, by a  cheerful submission to  trial, and by continual

remembrance in  prayer to Almighty God of the  sacred cause and its defenders they  might help to bring this

cause to  victory. 

In the brief prayer that followed the sermon, in words tender,  simple, heartmoving, he led the people in

solemn dedication of  themselves, soul and body, to their country, to their cause, to  their  God. 

The effect of the sermon and prayer was overpowering.  There were  no tears, but men walked out with heads

more erect, because of the  exaltation of spirit which was theirs.  And women, fearful of the  coming hour of


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 64



Top




Page No 67


parting, felt their hearts grow strong within them  with the thought that they were voluntarily sending their

men away.  Upon the whole congregation lay a new and solemn sense of duty, a  new  and uplifting sense of

privilege in making the sacrifice of all  that  they counted precious for this holy cause. 

It was the sermon that brought the decision in the matter of  Barry's appointment. 

"What do you think of that, Colonel Kavanagh?" asked Captain Neil  Fraser, who came in for the service. 

"A very fine sermon!  A very notable sermon!" said the colonel.  "Who is he?" 

"He is my own minister," said Captain Neil, "and he gave me, to  day, the surprise of my life.  I didn't know it

was in him.  I  understand there is a chance of his being our chaplain.  He is  Sergeant Dunbar's son." 

"I wish to Heaven we could take him with us!  What about it,  Fraser?  We've got the father, why not the son,

too?  They'd both  like it." 

"I say, Colonel, for Heaven's sake, have a heart.  I hated to  surrender my company sergeant major.  I don't

think I ought to be  asked to surrender our chaplain." 

"All right, Fraser, so be it.  But you have got a wonderful  chaplain in that boy.  What a face!  What a voice!

And that's the  kind of a spirit we want in our men." 

That very afternoon, Captain Neil went straight away to Colonel  Leighton, the officer commanding the new

regiment to which Captain  Neil's company belonged.  To the colonel he gave an enthusiastic  report of the

sermon, with Colonel Kavanagh's judgment thereon. 

"I would suggest, sir, that you wire Ottawa on the matter," he  urged.  "If Colonel Kavanagh thought he had a

chance, he would not  hesitate.  We really ought to get this fixed.  I assure you he's a  find." 

"Go to it, then, Fraser.  I'm rather interested to see your earnest  desire for a chaplain.  The Lord knows you

need one!  Go up to  Headquarters and use my name.  Say what you like." 

Thus it came that the following day Barry was informed by wire of  his appointment as chaplain of the new

regiment of Alberta rangers. 

"It's at least a relief to have the matter settled," said his  father, to whom Barry brought his wire.  "Barry, I'm

glad of the  opportunity to tell you that since yesterday, my mind has undergone  considerable change.  I am not

sure but that you have found your  place and your work in the war." 

"No, dad," answered Barry, "I wasn't responsible for that sermon  yesterday.  The war was very near and very

real to me.  Those boys  were looking up at me, and you were there, dad.  You drew that  sermon  stuff out of

me." 

"If once, why not again?  At any rate, it greatly rejoiced me to  know that it was there in you.  I don't say I was

proud of you, my  boy.  I was proud of you, but that is not the word that I should  like  to use.  I was profoundly

grateful that I was privileged to  hear a  sermon like that from a son of mine.  Now, Barry," continued  his

father, "this is our last day together for some months, perhaps  forever," he added in a low tone. 

"Don't, daddy, don't," cried Barry, "I can't bear to think of that  today." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 65



Top




Page No 68


"All right, Barry, but why not?  It is really far better that we  should face all the possibilities.  But now that we

have this day  and what a perfect day it isfor our last day together, what shall  we do with it?" 

"I know, dadI think you would wish that we take our ride into the  foothills today." 

"It was in my mind, my boy.  I hesitated to suggest it.  So let us  go." 

It was one of those rare November days that only Alberta knows,  mellow with the warm sun, and yet with a

nip in it that suggested  the  coming frost, without a ripple of the wind that almost  constantly  sweeps the

Alberta ranges.  In the blue sky hung  motionless, like  white ships at sea, bits of cloud.  The long  grass, brown,

yellow and  green in a hundred shades, lay like a  carpet over the rolling hills  and wide spreading valleys,

reaching  up on every side to the horizon,  except toward the west, where it  faded into the blue of the foothills

at the bases of the mighty  Rockies. 

Up the long trail, resilient to their horses' feet, they cantered  where the going was good, or picked their way

with slow and careful  tread where the rocky ridges jutted through the black soil. 

They made no effort to repulse the thought that this was their last  day together, nor did they seek to banish

the fact of the war.  With  calm courage and hope they faced the facts of their environment,  seeking to aid each

other in readjusting their lives to those facts.  They were resolutely cheerful.  The day was not to be spoiled

with  tears and lamentations.  Already each in his own place and time had  made his sacrifice of a comradeship

that was far dearer than life.  The agony of that hour, each had borne in silence and alone.  No  shadow should

fall across this sunny day. 

By the side of the grave, in its little palisaded enclosure, they  lingered, the father recalling the days of his

earlier manhood,  which  had been brightened by a love whose fragrance he had  cherished and  shared with his

son through their years together,  Barry listening with  reverent attention and tender sympathy. 

"I had always planned that I too should be laid here, Barry," said  his father, as they prepared to take their

departure, "but do you  know, boy, this war has made many changes in me and this is one.  It  seems to me a

very little thing where my body lies, if it be  offered,  as you were saying so beautifully yesterday, in sacrifice

to our  cause." 

Barry could only nod his head in reply.  He was deeply moved. 

"You are young, Barry," said his father, noting his emotion, "and  life is very dear to you, my boy." 

"No, dad, no!  Not life," said Barry brokenly.  "Not life, only  you, dad.  I just want you, and, oh dad!"

continued the boy, losing  hold of himself and making no effort to check or hide the tears  that  ran down his

face, "if one of us is to go in this war,as is  likely  enough,I only want that the other should be there at the

time.  It  would beterriblylonelydadto go out myself  without you.  Or  to have you go

outalone.We have always been  togetherand you have  beenso very good to me, dad.  I can't help

this, dad,I trybut I  am not strong enoughI'm not holding back  from the sacrifice, dad,"  hurrying his

words,"No, no, not that,  but perhaps you understand." 

For answer, his father put both his arms around his son, drew his  head down to his breast, as if he had been a

child. 

"There, there, laddie," he said, patting him on the shoulder, "I  know, I know!  Oh God, how I know.  We have

lived together very  closely, without a shadow ever between us, and my prayer, since  this  war began, has been

that in death, if it had to be, we might  be  together, and, Barry, somehow I believe God will give us that." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS 66



Top




Page No 69


"Good old dad, good old boy!  What a brick you are!  I couldn't  help that, dad.  Forgive me for being a baby,

and spoiling the day" 

"Forgive you, boy," still with his arms around his son, "Barry, I  love you for it.  You've never brought me one

sorrow nor will you.  Today and every day I thank God for you, my son." 

They rode back through the evening toward the camp.  By the time  they arrived there, the sun had sunk behind

the mountains, and the  quiet stars were riding serenely above the broken, floating clouds,  and in their hearts

was peace. 

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE

"Gentlemen, may I introduce Captain Dunbar, your skypilot, padre,  chaplain, anything you like?  They say

he's a devil of a good  preacher.  The Lord knows you need one." 

So Barry's commanding officer introduced him to the mess. 

He bowed in different directions to the group of officers who, in  the anteroom of the mess, were having a

preprandial cocktail.  Barry  found a place near the foot of the table and for a few  minutes sat  silent, getting

his bearings. 

Some of the officers were known to him.  He had met the commanding  officer, Colonel Leighton, a typical,

burly Englishman, the owner  of  an Alberta horse ranch, who, well to do to begin with, had made  money

during his five years in the country.  He had the reputation  of being  a sporting man, of easy morality, fond of

his glass and of  good  living.  He owed his present position, partly to political  influence,  and partly to his

previous military experience in the  South African  war.  His popularity with his officers was due  largely to his

easy  discipline, and to the absence of that rigidity  of manner which is  supposed to go with high military

command, and  which civilians are  wont to find so irksome. 

Barry had also met Major Bustead, the Senior Major of the  Battalion,  and President of the mess, an eastern

Canadian, with no  military  experience whatever, but with abounding energy and ambition;  the  close friend

and boon companion of Colonel Leighton, he naturally  had become his second in command.  Barry was

especially delighted to  observe Major Bayne, whom he had not seen since his first meeting  with him some

months ago on the Red Pine Trail.  Captain Neil Fraser  and Lieutenant Stewart Duff were the only officers

about the table  whom he recognised, except that, among the junior lieutenants, he  caught the face of young

Duncan Cameron, the oldest son of his  superintendent, and a fine, cleanlooking young fellow he appeared. 

Altogether Barry was strongly attracted by the clean, strong faces  about him.  He would surely soon find good

friends among them, and  he  only hoped he might be able to be of some service to them. 

The young fellow on his right introduced himself as Captain  Hopeton.  He was a young English public school

boy, who, though a  failure as a rancher, had proved an immense success in the social  circles of the city.

Because of this, and also of his family  connections "at home," he had been appointed to a Civil Service

position.  A rather bored manner and a supercilious air spoiled  what  would otherwise have been a handsome

and attractive face. 

After a single remark about the "beastly bore" of military duty,  Hopeton ignored Barry, giving such attention

as he had to spare  from  his dinner to a man across the table, with whom, apparently,  he had  shared some

rather exciting social experiences in the city. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 67



Top




Page No 70


For the first half hour of the meal, the conversation was of the  most trivial nature, and was to Barry

supremely uninteresting.  "Shop  talk" was strictly taboo, and also all reference to the war.  The thin  stream of

conversation that trickled from lip to lip ran  the gamut of  sport, spiced somewhat highly with society scandal

which, even in that  little city, appeared to flourish. 

To Barry it was as if he were in a strange land and among people of  a strange tongue.  Of sport, as understood

by these young chaps, he  knew little, and of scandal he was entirely innocent; so much so  that  many of the

references that excited the most merriment were to  him  utterly obscure.  After some attempts to introduce

topics of  conversation which he thought might be of mutual interest, but  which  had fallen quite flat, Barry

gave up, and sat silent with a  desolating  sense of loneliness growing upon his spirit. 

"After the port," when smoking was permitted, he was offered a  cigarette by Hopeton, and surprised that

young man mightily by  saying  that he never smoked.  This surprise, it is to be feared,  deepened  into disgust

when, a few moments later, he declined a  drink from  Hopeton's whisky bottle, which a servant brought him. 

Liquors were not provided at the mess, but officers were permitted  to order what they desired. 

As the bottles circulated, tongues were loosened.  There was  nothing  foul in the talk, but more and more

profanity, with frequent  apology  to the chaplain, began to decorate the conversation.  Conscious of a

deepening disgust with his environment, and of an  overwhelming sense  of isolation, Barry cast vainly about

for a means  of escape.  Of  military etiquette he was ignorant; hence he could only  wait in  deepening disgust

for the O. C. to give the signal to rise.  How  long he could have endured is doubtful, but release came in a

startling, and, to most of the members of the mess, a truly  horrifying manner. 

In one of those strange silences that fall upon even the noisiest  of companies, Colonel Leighton, under the

influence of a somewhat  liberal indulgence in his whisky bottle, began the relation of a  tale  of very doubtful

flavour.  In the midst of the laughter that  followed  the tale, Barry rose to his feet, his face white and his  eyes

aflame,  and in a voice vibrating with passion, said: 

"May I be excused, sir?" 

"Why, certainly," said the colonel pleasantly, adding after a  moment's hesitation, "is there anything wrong,

Dunbar?  Are you  ill?" 

"No, sir."  Barry's voice had the resonant quality of a cello  string.  "I mean, yes, sir," he corrected.  "I am ill.

The  atmosphere surrounding such a tale is nauseating to me." 

In the horrified silence that followed his remark, he walked out  from the room.  Upon his ears, as he stood in

the anteroom,  trembling with the violence of his passion, a burst of laughter  fell.  A sudden wrath like a hot

flame swept his body.  He wheeled  in his  tracks, tore open the door, and with head high and face set,  strode to

his place at the table and sat down. 

Astonishment beyond all words held the company in tense stillness.  From Barry's face they looked toward the

colonel, who, too  dumfounded  for speech or action, sat gazing at his chaplain.  Then  from the end  of the table

a few places down from Barry, a voice was  heard. 

"Feel better, Dunbar?"  The cool, clear voice cut through the tense  silence like the zip of a sword. 

"I do, thank you, sir," looking him straight in the eye. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 68



Top




Page No 71


"The fresh air, doubtless," continued the cool voice.  "I always  find myself that even a whiff of fresh air is a

very effective  antidote for threatening vertigo.  I remember once" continued the  speaker, dropping into a

conversational tone, and leaning across  the  table slightly toward Barry, "I was in the room with a company  of

men"  And the speaker entered upon a long and none too  interesting  relation of an experience of his, the

point of which no  one grasped,  but the effect of which every one welcomed with the  profoundest  relief.  He

was the regimental medical officer, a tall,  slight man,  with a keen eye, a pleasant face crowned by a topknot

of flaming hair,  and with a little dab of hair of like colour upon  his upper lip, which  he fondly cherished, as

an important item in  his military equipment. 

"Say, the old doc is a lifesaver, sure enough," said a young  subaltern, answering to the name of "Sally,"

colloquial for  Salford,  as he stood amid a circle of officers gathered in the  smoking room a  few minutes later.

"A lifesaver," repeated Sally,  with emphasis.  "He  can have me for his laboratory collection after  I'm

through." 

"He is one sure singing bird," said another sub, a stout, overgrown  boy by the name of Booth.  "The nerve of

him," added Booth in  admiration. 

"Nerve!" echoed a young captain, "but what about the pilot's  nerve?" 

"Sui generis, Train, I should say," drawled Hopeton. 

"Suey, who did you say?" inquired Sally.  "What's her second name?  But let me tell you I could have fallen on

his neck and burst into  tears of gratitude.  For me," continued Sally, glancing about the  room, "I don't hold

with that dirt stuff at mess.  It isn't  necessary." 

"Beastly bad form," said Hopeton, "but, good Lord!  Your Commanding  Officer, Sally!  There's such a thing

as discipline, you know." 

"What extraordinary thing is it that Sally knows?" inquired Major  Bustead, who lounged up to the group. 

"We were discussing the padre's break, Major, which for my part,"  drawled Hopeton, "I consider rotten

discipline." 

"Discipline!" snorted the major.  "By Gad, it was a piece of the  most damnable cheek I have ever heard at a

mess table.  He ought to  be sent to Coventry.  I only hope the O. C. will get him exchanged." 

The major made no effort to subdue his voice, which was plainly  audible throughout the room. 

"Hush, for God's sake," warned Captain Train, as Barry entered the  door.  "Here he is." 

But Barry had caught the major's words.  For a moment he stood  irresolute; then walked quietly toward the

group. 

"I couldn't help hearing you, Major Bustead," he said, in a voice  pleasant and under perfect control.  "I gather

you were referring  to  me." 

"I was, sir," said the major defiantly. 

"And why should I be sent to Coventry, or exchanged, may I ask?"  Barry's voice was that of an interested

outsider. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 69



Top




Page No 72


"Because," stuttered the Major, "I consider, sir, thatthatyou  have been guilty of a piece of damnable

impertinence toward your  Commanding Officer.  I never heard anything like it in my life.  Infernal cheek, I

call it, sir." 

While the major was speaking, Barry stood listening with an air of  respectful attention. 

"I wonder!" he said, after a moment's thought.  "If I thought I had  been impertinent, I should at once

apologise.  But, sir, do you  think  it is part of my duty to allow any man, even my Commanding  Officer,

topardon the disgusting metaphor, it is not so  disgusting as the  action complained ofto spit in my soup,

and  take it without protest?  Do you, sir?" 

"Iyou"  The major grew very red in the face.  "You need to  learn your place in this battalion, sir." 

"I do," said Barry, still preserving his quiet voice and manner.  "I want to learnI am really anxious to learn

it.  Do you mind  answering my question?"  His tone was that of a man who is  earnestly  but quite respectfully

seeking information from a  superior officer. 

"Your question, sir?" stuttered the major, "youryourquestion.  Damn your question, and yourself too." 

The major turned abruptly away.  Barry heard him quite unmoved,  stood looking after him in silence a

moment or two, then, shaking  his  head, with a puzzled expression on his face, moved slowly away  from  the

group. 

"Oh, my aunt Caroline," breathed Sally into his friend Hopeton's  ear, resting heavily meanwhile against his

shoulder.  "What a  score!  What a score!" 

"A bull, begad! a clean bull!" murmured Hopeton, supporting his  friend out of the room as he added, "A little

fresh air, as a  preventative of vertigo, as the old doc says, eh, Sally." 

"Good Lord, is he just a plain ass, or what?" inquired young Booth,  his eye following Barry down the room. 

"Ass!  A mule, I should say.  And one with a good lot of kick in  him," replied Captain Train.  "I don't know that

I care for that  kind  of an animal, though." 

Before many hours had passed, the whole battalion had received with  undiluted joy an account of the

incident, for though the Commanding  Officer was popular with his men, to have him called down at his  own

mess by one of his own officers was an event too thrilling to  give  anything but unalloyed delight to those who

had to suffer in  silence  similar indignities at the hands of their officers. 

A notable exception in the battalion, however, was Sergeant Major  McFetteridge, who, because of his

military experience, and of his  reputation as a disciplinarian, had been recently transferred to  the  battalion.  To

the sergeant major this act of Barry's was but  another  and more flagrant example of his fondness for "buttin'

in,"  and the  sergeant major let it be known that he strongly condemned  the chaplain  for what he declared was

an unheard of breach of  military discipline. 

Of course there were others who openly approved, and who admired  the chaplain's "nerve in standing up to

the old man."  In their  opinion he was entirely justified in what he had said.  The O. C.  had  insulted him, and

every officer at the mess, by his offcolour  story,  but on the whole the general result of the incident was that

Barry's  life became more and more one of isolation from both  officers and men.  For this reason and because

of a haunting sense  of failure the months  of training preceding the battalion's departure  for England were for

Barry one long and almost uninterrupted misery.  It seemed impossible  to establish any point of contact with


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 70



Top




Page No 73


either  the officers or the men.  In their athletics, in their social  gatherings, in their reading, he  was quietly

ignored and made to  feel that he was in no way necessary.  An impalpable but very real  barrier prevented his

near approach to  those whom he was so eager  to serve. 

This unexpressed opposition was quickened into active hostility by  the chaplain's uncompromising attitude

on the liquor question.  By  the army regulations, the battalion canteen was dry, but in spite  of  this many, both

of the officers and the men, freely indulged in  the  use of intoxicating drink.  The effect upon discipline was, of

course,  deplorable, and in his public addresses as well as private  conversation, Barry constantly denounced

these demoralising habits,  winning thereby the violent dislike of those especially affected,  and  the latent

hostility of the majority of the men who agreed with  the  sergeant major in resenting the chaplain's "buttin'

in." 

It was, therefore, with unspeakable joy that Barry learned that the  battalion was warned for overseas service.

Any change in his lot  would be an improvement, for he was convinced that he had reached  the  limit of

wretchedness in the exercise of his duty as chaplain  of the  battalion. 

In this conviction, however, he was mistaken.  On shipboard, he  discovered that there were still depths of

misery which he was  called  upon to plumb.  Assigned to a miserable stateroom in an  uncomfortable  part of

the ship, he suffered horribly from  seasickness, and for the  first half of the voyage lay foodless and  spiritless

in his bunk,  indifferent to his environment or to his  fate.  His sole friend was  his batman, Harry Hobbs, but, of

course,  he could not confide to Harry  the misery of his body, or the deeper  misery of his soul. 

It was Harry, however, that brought relief, for it was he that  called the M. O. to his officer's bedside.  The M.

O. was shocked  to  find the chaplain in a state of extreme physical weakness, and  mental  depression.  At once,

he gave orders that Barry should be  removed to  his own stateroom, which was large and airy and open to  the

sea  breezes.  The effect was immediately apparent, for the  change of room,  and more especially the touch of

human sympathy,  did much to restore  Barry to his normal health and spirits.  A  friendship sprang up  between

the M. O. and the chaplain.  With  this friendship a new  interest came into Barry's life, and with  surprising

rapidity he  regained both his physical and mental tone. 

The doctor took him resolutely in hand, pressed him to take his  part in the daily physical drill, induced him to

share the daily  programme of sports, and, best of all, discovering a violin on  board,  insisted on his taking a

place on the musical programme  rendered  nightly in the salon.  As might be expected, his violin  won him

friends among all of the music lovers on board ship, and  life for  Barry began once more to be bearable. 

Returning strength, however, recalled him to the performance of his  duties as chaplain, and straightway in the

exercise of what he  considered his duty, he came into conflict with no less a personage  than the sergeant

major himself.  The trouble arose over his  batman,  Harry Hobbs. 

Harry was a man who, in his youthful days, had been a diligent  patron of the London music halls, and in

consequence had become  himself an amateur entertainer of very considerable ability.  His  sailor's hornpipes,

Irish jigs, his old English Northcountry  ballads  and his coster songs were an unending joy to his comrades.

Their  gratitude and admiration took forms that proved poor Harry's  undoing,  and besides some of them took

an unholy joy in sending the  chaplain's  batman to his officer incapable of service. 

Barry's indignation and grief were beyond words.  He dealt  faithfully with the erring Hobbs, as his minister, as

his officer,  as  chaplain, but the downward drag of his environment proved too  great  for his batman's powers

of resistance.  Once and again Barry  sought  the aid of the sergeant major to rescue Harry from his  downward

course, but the old sergeant major was unimpressed with  the account of  Harry's lapses. 

"Is your batman unfit for duty, sir?" he inquired. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 71



Top




Page No 74


"Yes, he is, often," said Barry indignantly. 

"Did you report him, sir?" inquired the sergeant major. 

"No, I did not." 

"Then, sir, I am afraid that until you do your duty I can do  nothing," answered the sergeant major, with suave

respect. 

"If you did your duty," Barry was moved to say, "then Hobbs would  not need to be reported.  The regulations

governing that canteen  should prevent these frequent examples of drunkenness, which are a  disgrace to the

battalion." 

"Do I understand, sir," inquired the sergeant major, with quiet  respect, "that you are accusing me of a failure

in duty?" 

"I am saying that if the regulations were observed my batman and  others would not be so frequently drunk,

and the enforcing of these  regulations, I understand, is a part of your duty." 

"Then, sir," replied the sergeant major, "perhaps I had better  report myself to the Commanding Officer." 

"You can please yourself," said Barry, shortly, as he turned away. 

"Very good, sir," replied the sergeant major.  "I shall report  myself at once." 

The day following, the chaplain received an order to appear before  the O. C. in the orderly room. 

"Captain Dunbar, I understand that you are making a charge against  Sergeant Major McFetteridge," was

Colonel Leighton's greeting. 

"I am making no charge against any one, sir," replied Barry  quietly. 

"What do you say to that, Sergeant Major McFetteridge?" 

In reply, the sergeant major gave a full and fair statement of the  passage between the chaplain and himself the

day before. 

"Is this correct, Captain Dunbar?" asked the O. C. 

"Substantially correct, sir, except that the sergeant major is here  on his own suggestion, and on no order of

mine." 

"Then I understand that you withdraw your charge against the  sergeant major." 

"I withdraw nothing, sir.  I had no intention of laying a charge,  and I have laid no charge against the sergeant

major; but at the  same  time I have no hesitation in saying that the regulations  governing the  canteen are not

observed, and, as I understand that  the responsibility  for enforcing these regulations is in the  sergeant major's

hands, in  that sense I consider that he has failed  in his duty." 

But the sergeant major was too old a soldier to be caught napping.  He had his witnesses ready at hand to

testify that the canteen was  conducted according to regulations, and that if the chaplain's  batman  or any others


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 72



Top




Page No 75


took more liquor than they should, neither the  corporal  in charge of the canteen nor the sergeant major was to

be  blamed. 

"All I can say, sir," replied Barry, "is that soldiers are  frequently drunk on this ship, and I myself have seen

them when the  worse for liquor going into the canteen." 

"And did you report these men to their officers or to me, Captain  Dunbar, or did you report the corporal in

charge of the canteen?" 

"No, sir, I did not." 

"Then sir, do you know that you have been guilty of serious neglect  of duty?" said the colonel sternly. 

"Do I understand, sir, that it is my duty to report to you every  man I see the worse for liquor on this ship?" 

"Most certainly," replied the colonel, emphatically.  "Every breach  of discipline must be reported." 

"I understood, sir, that an officer had a certain amount of  discretion in a matter of this kind." 

"Where did you get that notion?" inquired the colonel.  "Let me  tell you that you are wrong.  Discretionary

powers lie solely with  me." 

"Then, sir, I am to understand that I must report every man whom I  see the worse for liquor?" 

"Certainly, sir," 

"And every officer, as well, sir?" 

The colonel hesitated a moment, fumbled with his papers, and then  blurted out: 

"Certainly, sir.  And let me say, Captain Dunbar, that an officer,  especially an officer in your position, ought

to be very careful in  making a charge against a N. C. O., more particularly the sergeant  major of his battalion.

Nothing is more calculated to drag down  discipline.  The case is dismissed." 

"Sir," said Barry, maintaining his place before the table.  "May I  ask one question?" 

"The case is dismissed, Captain Dunbar.  What do you want?" asked  the colonel brusquely. 

"I want to be quite clear as to my duty, in the future, sir.  Do I  understand that if any man or officer is found

under the influence  of  liquor, anywhere in this ship, and at any hour of the day or  night, he  is to be reported at

once to the orderly room, even  though that  officer should be, say, even the adjutant or yourself?"  Barry said,

gazing up at the colonel with a face in which  earnestness and candour  were equally blended. 

The colonel gazed back at him with a face in which rage and  perplexity were equally apparent.  For some

moments, he was  speechless, while the whole orderly room held its breath. 

"I meanthat youyou understandof course," stuttered the  colonel, "that an officer must use common

sense.  He must be damned  sure of what he says, in other words," said the colonel, rushing  his  speech. 

"But, sir," continued Barry. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 73



Top




Page No 76


"Oh, go to the devil, sir," roared the colonel.  "The case is  dismissed." 

Barry saluted and left the room. 

"Is the man an infernal and condemned fool, or what is the matter  with him?" exclaimed the colonel, turning

to his adjutant in a  helpless appeal, while the orderly room struggled with its grins. 

"The devil only knows," said Major Bustead.  "He beats me.  He is  an interfering and impertinent ass, in my

opinion, but what else he  is, I don't know." 

It is fair to say that the sergeant major bore the chaplain no  grudge for his part in the affair.  The whole

battalion, however,  soon became possessed of the tale, adorned and expanded to an  unrecognisable extent,

and revelled in ecstasy over the discomfort  of  the C. O.  The consensus of opinion was that on the whole the

sergeant  major had come off with premier honours, and as between  the "old man"  and the "Sky Pilot," as

Barry was coming to be  called, it was about an  even break.  As for the Pilot, he remained  more than ever a

mystery,  and on the whole, the battalion was  inclined to leave him alone. 

The chaplain, however, had partially, at least, achieved his aim,  in that the regulations governing the canteen

were more strictly  enforced, to the vast improvement of discipline generally, and to  the  immense advantage

of Harry Hobbs in particular. 

Soon after this, another event occurred which aided materially in  bringing about this same result, and which

also led to a modification  of opinion in the battalion in regard to their chaplain. 

To the civilian soldier the punctilio of military etiquette is  frequently not only a bore, but at times takes on

the appearance of  wilful insult which no grown man should be expected to tolerate.  To  the civilian soldier

born and brought up in wide spaces of the  far  Northwest this is especially the case. 

It is not surprising, therefore, that McCuaig, fresh from his  thirtyfive years of life in the Athabasca wilds,

should find the  routine of military discipline extremely irksome and the niceties  of  military etiquette as from

a private to an officer not only  foolish  but degrading both to officer and man.  Under the patient  shepherding

of Barry's father, he had endured much without protest  or complaint,  but, with the advent of Sergeant Major

McFetteridge,  with his rigid  military discipline and his strict insistence upon  etiquette, McCuaig  passed into a

new atmosphere.  To the freeborn  and freebred recruit  from the Athabasca plains, the stiff and  somewhat

exaggerated military  bearing of the sergeant major was at  first a source of quiet  amusement, later of

perplexity, and finally  of annoyance.  For  McFetteridge and his minutiae of military  discipline McCuaig held

only  contempt.  To him, the whole business  was a piece of silly nonsense  unworthy of serious men. 

It was inevitable that the sergeant major should sooner or later  discover this opinion in Private McCuaig, and

that he should  consider  the holding of this opinion as a tendency toward  insubordination.  It  was also

inevitable that the sergeant major  should order a course of  special fatigues calculated to subdue the  spirit of

the insubordinate  private. 

It took McCuaig some days to discover that in these frequent  fatigues and special duties, he was undergoing

punishment, but once  made, the discovery wrought in him a cold and silent rage, which  drove him to an

undue and quite unwonted devotion to the canteen,  which in turn transformed the reserved, selfcontrolled

man of the  wilds into a demonstrative, disorderly and quarrelsome "rookie"  aching for trouble. 

Under these circumstances, an outburst was inevitable.  Corporal  Ferry, in charge of the canteen, furnished the

occasion. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 74



Top




Page No 77


"No more for you, McCuaig.  You've got more aboard now than you can  carry." 

To the injury of being denied another beer was added the insult of  suggesting his inability to carry what he

had.  This to a man of  McCuaig's experience in every bar and camp and roadhouse from  Edmonton to the

Arctic circle, was not to be endured. 

He leaned over the improvised bar, until his face almost touched  the corporal's. 

"What?" he ejaculated, but in the single expletive there darted out  such concentrated fury, that the little

corporal sprang back as  from  a striking snake. 

"You can't have any more beer, McCuaig," said the corporal, from a  safe distance. 

"Watch me, sonny!" replied McCuaig. 

With a single sweep of his hand, he snatched two bottles from the  ledge behind the corporal's head.  Holding

one aloft, he knocked  the  top off the other, drank its contents slowly and smashed the  empty  bottle at the spot

where the corporal's head had been;  knocked the top  off the second bottle and was proceeding to drink  it, in a

more or  less leisurely fashion. 

"Private Timms!  Private Mulligan!" shouted Corporal Ferry,  reappearing from beneath the counter.  "Arrest

that man!" 

"Wait, sonny; give me a chance," cried McCuaig, in a wild, high,  singsong voice.  Lifting his bottle to his lips,

he continued to  drink slowly, keeping his eye upon the two privates, who were  considering the best method

of carrying out their orders. 

"There, sonny, fill that up again," cried McCuaig, goodnaturedly,  when he had finished his drink, tossing

the second bottle at the  head  of the corporal, who, being on the alert, again made a  successful  disappearance. 

"Now, then, boys, come on," said McCuaig, backing toward the wall,  and dropping his hands to his hips.

With a curse of disappointment  that he found himself without his usual weapons of defence, McCuaig  raised

a shout, sprang into the air, cracked his heels together in  a  double rap, and swinging his arms around his head,

yelled: 

"Come on, my boys!  I'm hungry, I am!  Meat!  Meat!  Meat!" 

With each "meat," his white teeth came together with a snap like  that of a hungry wolf.  Such was the beastly

ferocity in his face  and  posture that both Private Timms and Private Mulligan,  themselves men  of more than

average strength, paused and looked at  the corporal for  further orders. 

"Arrest that man," said the corporal again, preserving at the same  time an attitude that revealed a complete

readiness for swift  disappearance.  "Private McTavish," he added, calling upon a tall  Highlander who was

gazing with admiring eyes upon the raging  McCuaig,  "assist Private Timms and Private Mulligan in arresting

that man." 

"Why don't you come yourself, sonny?" inquired McCuaig.  With a  swift sidestep and a swifter swoop of his

long arm, he reached for  the corporal, who once more found safety in swift disappearance. 

At that instant, the Highlander, seeing his opportunity, flung  himself upon McCuaig, and winding his arms

around him, hung to him  grimly, crying out: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 75



Top




Page No 78


"Get hold of his legs!  Queeck!  Will you?" 

When the sergeant major, attracted by the unwonted uproar, appeared  upon the scene, there was a man on

every one of McQuaig's limbs,  and  another one astride his stomach.  "Heavin' like sawlogs  shootin' a  rapid,"

as Private Corbin, a lumberjack from the Eau  Claire, was later  heard to remark. 

"What is he like now?" inquired the colonel, after listening to the  sergeant major's report of the Homeric

combat. 

"He is in a compartment in the hold, sir, and raging like one  demented.  He very nearly did for Major Bustead,

smashing at him  with  a scantling that he ripped from the ship's timbers, sir.  He  still has  the scantling, sir." 

"Let him cool off all night," said the Commanding Officer, after  consultation with the adjutant. 

Barry, who with difficulty had restrained himself during the  sergeant major's report, slipped from the room,

found the M. O., to  whom he detailed the story and dragged him off to visit the raging  McCuaig. 

They found a corporal on guard outside. 

"I would not open the door, sir.  He is really dangerous." 

"Oh, rot!" replied the M. O.  "Open up the door!" 

"Excuse me, sir," said the corporal, "it is not safe.  At present,  he is clean crazy.  He is off his nut entirely." 

The M. O. stood listening at the door.  From within came moaning  sounds as from a suffering beast. 

"That man is suffering.  Open the door!" ordered the M. O.  peremptorily. 

The corporal, with great reluctance, unlocked the padlock, shot  back the bolt, and then stood away from the

door. 

"It is the medical officer, McCuaig," said the doctor, opening the  door slightly. 

Bang!  Crash! came the scantling upon the door jamb, shattering it  to pieces.  The whole guard flung

themselves against the door,  shoved  it shut, and shot the bolt. 

"I warned you, sir," said the panting corporal.  "Better leave him  until morning.  He's a regular devil!" 

"He is no more a devil than you are, corporal," said Barry, in a  loud, clear voice.  "He is one of the best men in

the battalion.  More  than that, he is my friend, and if he spends the night there,  I spend  it with him." 

So saying, and before any one could stop him, Barry shot back the  bolt, opened the door, and with his

torchlight flashing before him,  stepped inside. 

"Hello, McCuaig," he called, in a quiet, clear voice, "where are  you?  It's Dunbar, you know." 

He drew the door shut after him.  The corporal was for following  him, but the M. O. interposed. 

"Stop out!" he ordered.  "Stay where you are!  You have done enough  mischief already." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 76



Top




Page No 79


"But, sir, he'll kill him!" 

"This is my case," said the M. O. sharply.  "Fall back all of you,  out of sight!" 

Together they stood listening in awestruck silence, expecting every  moment to hear sounds of conflict, and

cries for help, but all they  heard was the cool, even flow of a quiet voice, and after some  minutes had passed,

the sound of moans, mingled with a terrible  sobbing. 

The M. O., moving toward the corporal and his guard, said in a low  tone: 

"Take your men down the passage and keep them there until I call  for you." 

"Sir," began the corporal. 

"Will you obey my orders?" said the M. O.  "I'm in command here!  Go!" 

Without further words, the corporal moved his men away. 

Half an hour later, the sergeant major, going his rounds, received  a rude shock.  In the passage leading to

McCuaig's compartment, he  met four men, bearing on a stretcher toward the sick bay a long  silent form. 

"Who have you got there, corporal?" he inquired in a tone of kindly  interest. 

"McCuaig, sir." 

"McCuaig?" roared the sergeant major.  "And who" 

"Medical officer's orders." 

"Silence there," said a sharp voice in the rear.  "Carry on, men." 

And past the astonished sergeant major, the procession filed with  the medical officer and the chaplain at its

tail end. 

After the sergeant major had made his report to the O. C., as was  his duty, the M. O. was sent for.  What took

place at that  interview  was never divulged to the mess, but it was known that  whereas the  conversation began

in very loud tones by the Officer  Commanding, it  ended half an hour later with the M. O. being shown  out of

the room by  the colonel himself, who was heard to remark: 

"A very fine bit of work.  Tell him I want to see him when he has a  few minutes, and thank you, doctor, thank

you!" 

"Who does the old man want to see?" inquired Sally, who, with  Hopeton and Booth, happened to be passing. 

"The chaplain," snapped the M. O., going on his way. 

"The chaplain?  By Jove, he's a queer one, eh?" 

The M. O. turned sharply back, and coming very close to Sally, said  in a wrathful voice: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE 77



Top




Page No 80


"A queer one?  Yes, a queer one!  But if some of you damned young  idiots that sniff at him had just half his

guts, you'd be twice the  men you are.Shut up, Hopeton!  Listen to me" and in words of  fiery rage that

ran close to tears, he recounted his experience of  the last hour. 

"By Jove! Doc, some guts, eh?" said Sally in a low tone, as he  moved away. 

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS

A long, weird blast from the fog horn, followed by two short, sharp  toots, recalled Barry from his morning

dream. 

"Fog," he grumbled, and turned over to recapture the enchantment  of the Athabasca rapids, and his dancing

canoe. 

Overhead there sounded the trampling of feet. 

"Submarines, doc," he shouted and leaped to the floor broad awake. 

"What's the row?" murmured the M. O., who was a heavy sleeper. 

For answer, Barry ripped the clothes from the doctor's bed. 

"Submarines, doc," he shouted again, and buckling on his Sam Brown,  and seizing his lifebelt, he stood ready

to go. 

"What! your boots off, doc?" 

In the orders of the day before had been an announcement that  officers and men were to sleep fully dressed. 

"Oh, the devil!" exclaimed the doctor, hunting through his  bedclothes in desperation.  "I can't sleep in my

boots.  Where's my  tunic?  Go on, old fellow, I'll follow you." 

Barry held his tunic for him. 

"Here you are!  Wake up, doc!  And here's your Sam Brown." 

Barry dropped to lace the doctor's boots, while the latter was  buckling on the rest of his equipment. 

"All right," cried the doctor, rushing from the room and leaving  his lifebelt behind him. 

Barry caught up the lifebelt and followed. 

"Your lifebelt, doc," he said, as they passed up the companion way. 

"Oh, I'm a peach of a soldier," said the doctor, struggling into  his lifebelt, and swearing deeply the while. 

"Stop swearing, doc!  It's a waste of energy." 

"Oh, go to hell!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 78



Top




Page No 81


"No, I prefer Heaven, if I must leave this ship, but for the  present, I believe I'm needed here, and so are you,

doc.  Look  there!" 

The doctor glanced out upon the deck. 

"By Jove!  You're right, old man, we are needed and badly.  I say,  old chap," he said, pausing for a moment to

turn to Barry, "you are  a  dear old thing, aren't you?" 

The deck was a mass of soldiers struggling, swearing, fighting  their way to their various stations.  Officers,

half dressed and  half  awake, were rushing hither and thither, seeking their units,  swearing  at the men and

shouting meaningless orders.  Over all the  stentorian  voice of the sergeant major was vainly trying to make

itself  understood. 

In the confusion the cry was raised:  "We're torpedoed!  We're  going down!" 

There was a great rush for the nearest boats.  Men flung discipline  to the winds and began fighting for a

chance of their lives.  It  was  a terrific and humiliating scene. 

Suddenly, over the tumult, was heard a loud, ringing laugh. 

"Oh, I say, Duff!  Not that way!  Not that way!" 

Again came the ringing laugh. 

Immediately a silence fell upon the struggling crowd, and for a  moment they stood looking inquiringly at

each other.  That moment  of  silence was seized by the sergeant major.  Like a trumpet his  sonorous  voice rang

out steady and clear. 

"Fall in, men!  Boat quarters!  Silence there!" 

He followed this with sharp, intelligible commands to his N. C.  O.'s.  Like magic, order fell upon the

turbulent, struggling crowd. 

"Stand steady, you there!" roared the sergeant major, who having  got control of his men, began to indulge

himself in a few telling  and  descriptive adjectives. 

In less than two minutes, the men were standing steady as a rock  and the panic was passed. 

"Who was it that laughed up there in that stampede?" inquired the  O. C., when the officers were gathered

about him in the orderly  room. 

"I think it was the Sky Pilot, sirthe chaplain, sir," said  Lieutenant Stewart Duff. 

"Was it you that laughed, Captain Dunbar?" asked the colonel,  turning upon Barry. 

"Perhaps I did, sir.  I'm sorry if" 

"Sorry!" exclaimed the colonel.  "Dammit, sir, you saved the  situation for us all.  Who told you it was a false

alarm?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 79



Top




Page No 82


"No one, sir.  I didn't know it was a false alarm.  I was looking  at Lieutenant Duff"  He checked himself

promptly.  "I mean, sir  well, it seemed a good place to laugh, so I just let it come." 

The colonel's eyes rested with curious inquiry upon the serene face  of the chaplain, with its glowing eyes and

candid expression.  "A  good place for a laugh?  It was a damned good place for a laugh,  and  gentlemen, I

thank God I have one officer who finds in the face  of  sudden danger a good place for a laugh.  And now I

have something  to  say to you." 

The O. C.'s remarks did not improve the officers' opinion of  themselves, and they slunk out of the roomno

other word properly  describes the cowed and shamed appearance of that company of men  they slunk out of

the room.  They had failed to play the part of  British officers in the face of sudden peril. 

In his speech to the men, the C. O. made only a single reference to  the incident, but that reference bit deep. 

"Men, I am thoroughly ashamed and disappointed.  You acted, not  like soldiers, but like a herd of steers.  The

difference between a  herd of steers and a battalion of soldiers, in the face of sudden  danger, is only this:the

steers break blindly for God knows  where,  and end piled up over a cut bank; soldiers stand steady  listening

for  the word of command." 

If the O. C. handled the men with a light hand, the sergeant major  did not.  His tongue rasped them to the raw.

No one knows a  soldier  as does his N. C. O., and no N. C. O. is qualified to set  forth the  soldier's

characteristics with the intimate knowledge and  adequate  fluency of the sergeant major.  One by one he peeled

from  their  shivering souls the various layers of their moral cuticle,  until they  stood, in their own and in each

other's eyes, objects of  commiseration. 

"There's just one thing more I wad like ta say to ye."  The  sergeant  major's tendency to Doric was more

noticeable in his moments  of  deeper feeling, "but it's something for you lads to give heed ta.  When ye were

scrammlin' up yonder, like a lot o' mavericks at a  brandin', and yowlin' like a bunch o' coyotes, there was one

man in  the regiment who could laugh.  There's lots o' animals that the  Almighty made can yowl, but there's

only one can laugh, and that's  a  mon.  For God's sake, men, when ye're in a tight place, try a  laugh." 

For some weeks after this event the chaplain was known throughout  the battalion as "the man that can laugh,"

and certain it is that  from that day there existed between the M. O. and the chaplain a  new  bond of friendship. 

As the ship advanced deeper into the submarine zone, the sole topic  of thought and of conversation came to

be the convoy.  Where was  that  convoy anyway?  While the daylight lasted, a thousand pairs of  eyes  swept the

horizon, and the intervening spaces of tossing,  bluegrey  water, for the sight of a sinister periscope, or for the

smudge of a  friendly cruiser, and when night fell, a thousand pairs  of ears  listened with strained intentness for

the impact of the  deadly torpedo  or for the signal of the protecting convoy. 

While still a day and a night out from land, Barry awoke in the  dim light of a misty morning, and proceeded

to the deck for his  constitutional.  There he fell in with Captain Neil Fraser and  Captain Hopeton pacing up

and down. 

"Come along, Pilot!" said Captain Neil, heartily, between whom and  the chaplain during the last few days a

cordial friendship had  sprung  up.  "We're looking for submarines.  This is the place and  the time  for Fritz, if he

is going to get us at all." 

Arm in arm they made the circle of the deck.  The mist, lying like  a bank upon the sea, shifted the horizon to

within a thousand yards  of the ship. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 80



Top




Page No 83


"I wish I knew just what lies behind that bank there," said Captain  Hopeton, pointing over the bow. 

For some moments they stood, peering idly into the mist. 

"By Jove, there IS something there," said Barry, who had a hawk's  eye. 

"You've got 'em too, eh," laughed Hopeton.  "I've had 'em for the  last fortyeight hours.  I've been 'seein'

things' all night." 

"But there is," insisted Barry, pointing over the port bow. 

"What is it like?" asked Captain Neil, while Hopeton ran for his  glass. 

"I'll tell you what it's likeexactly like the eye of an oyster in  its pulp.  And, by Jove, there's another!" added

Barry excitedly. 

"I can't see anything," said Captain Neil. 

"But I can," insisted Barry.  "Look there, Hopeton!" 

Hopeton fixed his glass upon the mist, where Barry pointed. 

"You're right!  There is something, and there are two of them." 

"Give the Pilot the glass, Hopeton," said Neil.  "He's got a good  eye." 

"There are two ships, boys, as I'm a sinner, but what they are, I  don't know," cried Barry in a voice tense with

excitement.  "Here,  Neil, take the glass.  You know about ships." 

Long and earnestly, Captain Neil held the glass in the direction  indicated. 

"Boys, by all that's holy, they're destroyers," he said at length  in a low voice. 

Even as they gazed, the two black dots rapidly took shape, growing  out of the mist into two sea monsters, all

head and shoulders,  boring  through the seas, each flinging high a huge comb of white  spray, and  with an

indescribable suggestion of arrogant, resistless  power,  bearing down upon the ship at furious speed. 

"Destroyers!" shouted Captain Neil, in a voice that rang through  the ship.  "By gad, destroyers!" 

There was no question of friend or foe; only Great Britain's navy  rode over those seas immune. 

Upon every hand the word was caught up and passed along.  In a  marvellously short space of time, the rails,

the boats, the  rigging,  all the points of vantage were thronged with men, roaring,  waving,  cheering, like mad. 

With undiminished speed, each enveloped in its cloud of spray, the  destroyers came, one on each side, rushed

foaming past, swept in a  circle around the ship and took their stations alongside, riding  quietly at half speed

like bulldogs tugging at a leash. 

"Great heavens, what a sight!"  At the croak in Hopeton's voice,  the others turned and looked at him. 

"You've got it too, eh!" said Captain Neil, clearing his own  throat. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 81



Top




Page No 84


"I've got something, God knows!" answered Hopeton, wiping his eyes. 

"I, too," said Barry, swallowing the proverbial lump.  "Those  littlelittle" 

"Bulldogs," suggested Hopeton. 

"Bulldog pups," said Captain Neil. 

"That's it," said Barry.  "That's what they are, little bulldog  pups, got me by the throat all right." 

"Me, too, by gad!" said Captain Neil.  "I should have howled out  loud in another minute." 

"Listen to the boys!" cried Barry. 

From end to end of the ship rose one continuous roar, "Good old  Navy!  Good old John Bull!" while Hopeton,

openly abandoning the  traditional reserve and selfcontrol supposed to be a characteristic  of the English

public school boy, climbed upon the rail and, hanging  by a stanchion with one hand, and with the other

frantically waving  his cap over his head, continued to shout: 

"England!  England!  England forever!" 

Then above the cheering cries was heard the battalion band, and  from a thousand throats in solemn chant

there rose the Empire's  national anthem, "God Save the King." 

That night they steamed into old Plymouth town, and the following  morning were anchored safe at

Devonport dock.  Strict orders held  the  officers and men on board ship until arrangements for debarkation

should be completed, but to Barry and the doctor, the Commanding  Officer gave shore leave for an hour. 

"And I would suggest," he said, "that you go and have a talk with  that old boy walking up and down the dock

there.  Yarn to him about  Canada, he's wild to know about it." 

The old naval officer was indeed "wild to know about Canada," so  that the greater part of their shore leave

was spent in answering  his  questions, and eager though he was to explore the old historic  town,  before Barry

knew it, he was in the full tide of a glowing  description  of his own Province of Alberta, extolling its great

ranches, its  sweeping valleys, its immense resources. 

"And to think you are all British out there," exclaimed the old  salt. 

"We're all British, of course," replied Barry, "but not all from  Britain." 

"I know, I know," said the officer, "but that only makes it more  wonderful." 

"Wonderful!  Why, why should it be wonderful?" 

"Yes, wonderful.  Oh, you Canadians," cried the old salt,  impulsively  stretching out his hand to Barry.  "You

Canadians!" 

Surprised, Barry glanced at his face.  Those hard blue eyes were  brimming with tears; the leatherlike skin was

working curiously  about  the mouth. 

"Why, sir, I don't quite understand what you mean," said Barry. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 82



Top




Page No 85


"No, and you never will.  Think of it, rushing three thousand  miles" 

"Five thousand for some of us," interrupted Barry. 

"Fancy that!  Rushing five thousand miles in this way, to help old  mother England, and all of your own free

will.  We didn't ask it  of  you.  Though, by heaven, we're grateful for it.  I find it  difficult,  sir, to speak quietly of

this." 

Not until that moment had Barry caught the British point of view.  To him, as to all Canadians, it had only

been a perfectly  reasonable  and natural thing that when the Empire was threatened,  they should  spring into

the fight.  They saw nothing heroic in  that.  They were  doing their simple duty. 

"But think of the wonder of it," said the naval officer again,  "that Canada should feel in that way its response

to the call of  the  blood." 

The old man's lips were still quivering. 

"That is true, sir," said the M. O., joining in the talk, "but  there is something more.  Frankly, my opinion is

that the biggest  thing, sir, with some of us in Canada, is not that the motherland  was  in need of help, though,

of course, we all feel that, but that  the  freedom of the world is threatened, and that Canada, as one of  the  free

nations of the world, must do her part in its defence." 

"A fine spirit," said the old gentleman. 

"This fight," continued the M. O., "is ours, you see, as well as  yours, and we hate a bully." 

The old salt swore a great oath, and said: 

"You are pups of the old breed, and you run true to type.  I'm glad  to know you, gentlemen," he continued,

shaking them warmly by the  hand. 

After they had gone a few steps he called Barry back to him. 

"That's my card, sir.  I should like you to come to see me in  London sometime when you are on leave." 

Barry glanced at the card and read, "Commander Howard Vincent,  R.  N. R." 

"It was very decent of the old boy," he said to the Commanding  Officer afterwards, when recounting the

interview.  "I don't  suppose  I'll ever use the card, but I do think he really meant it." 

"Meant it," exclaimed the Commanding Officer.  "Why, Dunbar, I'm an  old country man, and I know.  Make

no mistake.  These people, and  especially these naval people, do not throw their cards loosely  about.  You will

undoubtedly hear from him." 

"It's not likely," replied Barry, "but the old gentleman is great  stuff, all right." 

During the long, sunny spring day, their dinky little train whisked  them briskly through the sweet and restful

beauty of the English  southern counties.  To these men, however, from the wide sunbaked,  windswept plains

of western Canada, the English landscape suggested  a  dainty picture, done in soft greys and greens, with here

and  there a  vivid splash of colour, where the rich red soil broke  through the  green.  But its tiny fields set off

with hedges, and  lines of trees,  its little, cleanswept villages, with their  picturesque church  spires, its parks


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 83



Top




Page No 86


with deer that actually stood  still to look at you,  its splendid manor houses, and, at rare  intervals, its turreted

castles, gave these men, fresh from the  raw, unmeasured and unmade  west, a sense of unreality.  To them it

seemed a toy landscape for  children to play with, but, as they  passed through the big towns and  cities with

their tall, clustering  chimneys, their crowding  populations, with unmistakable evidences  of great wealth, their

shipping, where the harbours bit into the  red coast line, there began  to waken in them the thought that this

tiny England, so beautifully  finished, and so neatly adorned, was  something mightier than they had  ever

known. 

In these tiny fields, in these clean swept villages, in these manor  houses, in these castles, in factory and in

shipyard, were struck  deep the roots of an England whose greatness they had never yet  guessed. 

The next afternoon brought them to the great military camp at  Shorncliffe, in a misty rain, hungry, for their

rations had been  exhausted early in the day, weary from ship and train travel, and  eager to get their feet once

again on mother earth. 

At the little station they were kept waiting in a pouring rain for  something to happen, they knew not what.

The R. T. O., a young  Imperial officer, blase with his ten months of war in England, had  some occult reason

for delaying their departure.  So, while the  night  grew every moment wetter and darker, the men sat on their

kitbags or  found such shelter as they could in the tiny station,  or in the lee of  the "goods trains" blocking the

railroad tracks,  growing more  indignant and more disgusted with the British high  command, the war in

general, and registering with increasing  intensity vows of vengeance  against the Kaiser, who, in the last

analysis, they considered  responsible for their misery. 

At length the "brass hat" for whom they had been waiting appeared  upon the scene, not in the slightest degree

apologetic, but very  businesslike, and with a highly emphasised military manner.  After  a  little conversation

between the brass hat and their Commanding  Officer, the latter gave the command and off they set in the

darkness  for their first route march on English soil. 

Through muddy roads and lanes, over fields, slushy and sodden, up  hill and down dale, they plodded steadily

along.  At the rear of  the  colunm marched Barry with the M. O. 

Long before they reached their destination, their conversation had  given out, the M. O. sucking sullenly at his

pipe, the bowl upside  down.  The rear end of the column was very frayed and straggling.  Why  it is that a

perfectly fit company will invariably fray out if  placed  at the rear of a marching column, no military expert

has  quite  succeeded in satisfactorily explaining. 

As he tramped along in the dark by the side of the road, the M. O.  stumbled over a soldier sitting upon the

soggy bank. 

"Who are you?" he inquired shortly. 

"Corporal Thom, sir." 

"What's the matter with you?" 

"I'm all in, sir.  I've been sick all day, sir." 

"Why didn't you report sick, then?  Can't you get on?" 

"I don't think so, sir.  Not for a while, at least." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 84



Top




Page No 87


"Have you any pain, any nausea?" 

"No, sir, I'm just all in." 

"Do you know our route?" 

"Yes, sir, I've got the turns down." 

"Well, come along then when you can.  I'll send back a waggon  later, but don't wait for that." 

"Yes, sir," said Corporal Thom. 

"Come on, Dunbar!  We'll send a waggon back for these stragglers.  There will be a good many of them before

long." 

"You go on, doc.  I'll come later," said Barry.  "I'll catch up to  you." 

But the M. O., at the various halts, waited in vain for the  chaplain to appear. 

On arriving at the camp, after a long struggle, he succeeded in  sending back an Army Service waggon to

bring in the stragglers, but  just as the waggon was about to leave, he heard coming up the road,  a  party

stepping out briskly to the music of their own whistling.  In the  rear of the party marched the chaplain, laden

down with one  man's  rifle and another man's kitbag. 

"They're all here, sir," said Corporal Thom to the M. O., with a  distinct note of triumph in his voice.  "All

here, sir," he  repeated,  as he observed the sergeant major standing at the  doctor's side. 

"Well done, corporal," said the sergeant major.  "You brought 'em  all in?  That means that no man has fallen

out on our first march  in  this country." 

The corporal made no reply, but later on, he explained the matter  to the sergeant major. 

"It's that Sky Pilot of ours, sir," he said.  "Blowed if he'd let  us fall out." 

"Kept you marching, eh?" 

"No, it's his chocolate and his jaw, but more his jaw than his  chocolate.  He's got lots of both.  I was all in.  I'd

been sick  all  day in the train.  Couldn't eat a bite.  Well, the first thing,  he  gives me a cake of his chocolate.

Then he sets himself down in  the  mud beside me, and me wishin' all the time he'd go on and leave  me for  the

waggon to pick up.  Then he gives me a cigarette, and  then he  begins to talk." 

"Talk, what about?" 

"Damned if I know, but the first thing I knew I was tellin' him  about the broncho bustin',that's my job, you

knowand how I won  out from Nigger Jake in the Calgary Stampede, until I was that  stuck  on myself that I

said:  'Well, sir, we'd better get a move  on,' and up  he gets with my kitbag on his back.  By and by, we  picks

up another  lame duck and then another, feedin' 'em with  chocolate and slingin'  his jaw, and when we was at

the limit, he  halts us outside one of them  stone shacks and knocks at the door.  'No soldiers here,' snaps the

redheaded angel, shuttin' the door  right in his face.  Then he opens  the door and steps right in where  she

could see him, and starts to  talk to her, and us listening out  in the rain.  Say!  In fifteen  minutes we was all

standin' up to a  feed of coffee and buns, and then  he gets Harry Hobbs whistlin' and  singin', and derned if we


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 85



Top




Page No 88


couldn't  have marched to Berlin.  Say!  He's a good one, ain't no quitter, and  he won't let nobody else be  a

quitter." 

And thus it came that with Corporal Thom and his derelicts the  chaplain marched into a new place in the

esteem of the men of his  battalion, and of its sergeant major. 

But of this, of course, Barry had no knowledge.  He knew that he  had made some little progress into the

confidence of both officers  and men in his battalion.  He had made, too, some firm friendships  which had

relieved, to a certain extent, the sense of isolation and  loneliness that had made his first months with the

battalion so  appalling.  But there still remained the sense of failure inasfar  as  his specific duty as chaplain was

concerned. 

The experiences of the first weeks in England only served to deepen  in him the conviction that his influence

on the men against the  evils  which were their especial snare was as the wind against the  incoming  tide,

beating in from the North Sea.  He could make a  ripple, a  certain amount of fussy noise, but the tide of

temptation  rolled  steadily onward, unchecked in its flow. 

The old temptations to profanity, drink and lust, that had haunted  the soldiers' steps at home, were found to be

lying in wait for  them  here and in aggravated form.  True, in the mess and in his  presence  among the men

there was less profanity than there had been  at the  first, but it filled him with a kind of rage to feel that  this

change  was due to no sense of the evil of the habit, but  solely to an  unwillingness to give offence to one

whom many of them  were coming to  regard with respect and some even with affection. 

"I hate that," he said to the M. O., to whom he would occasionally  unburden his soul.  "You'd think I was a

kind of policeman over  their  morals." 

"Oh, I wouldn't worry about that," said the M. O., to whom the  habit of profanity was a very venial sin.  "You

ought to be mighty  glad that your presence does act as a kind of moral prophylactic.  And  it does, I assure

you.  I confess that since I have come to be  associated with you, I am conscious of a very real, and at times,

distressing limitation of my vocabulary.  I may not be more  virtuous,  but certainly I am more respectable." 

This sentiment, however, brought little comfort to the chaplain. 

"I am not a policeman," he protested, "and I am not going to play  policeman to these men.  I notice them shut

up when I come around,  but I know quite well that they turn themselves loose when I pass  on,  and that they

feel much more comfortable.  I am not and will  not be  their policeman." 

"What then would you be?" inquired the M. O. 

Barry pondered this question for some time. 

"To tell the truth," he said, at length, "I confess, I don't quite  know.  I wish I did, doc, on my soul.  One thing I

do know, the men  are no better here in their morals than they were at home." 

"Better?  They are worse, by Jove!" exclaimed the M. O.  "Look at  the daily crimesheet!  Look at that daily

orderly room parade.  It's  something fierce, and it's getting worse." 

"The wet canteen?" inquired Barry, who had lost prestige with some  in the battalion by reason of the

strenuous fight he had made  against  its introduction since coming to England.  Not that the men  cared so

much for their liquor, but they resented the idea that  they were  denied privileges enjoyed by other battalions. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 86



Top




Page No 89


"The wet canteen?" echoed the doctor.  "No, you know I opposed, as  you did, the introduction of the wet

canteen, although not upon the  same grounds.  I regard it as a perfect nuisance in camp.  It is  the  centre of

every disorder, it is subversive of discipline; it  materially increases my sick parade.  But it is not the wet

canteen  that is chiefly responsible for the growing crimesheet and orderly  room parade.  It is those

damnedI don't apologise" 

"Please don't.  Say it again!" exclaimed Barry fervently. 

"Those damned pubs," continued the M. O., "stuck at every  crossroads  in this country.  They're the cause of

ninety per cent. of  the  drunkenness in our army, and more than that, I want to give you  another bit of

information that came out at our M. O. conference  this  week, namely that these pubs account for ninety per

cent. of  our tent  hospital cases." 

"Ninety per cent., doctor?  That's surely high." 

"I would have said so, but I am giving you the unanimous verdict of  the twentysix medical officers at the

conference.  Cut out the  damned beerand you know I take my share of itcut out the beer  and  ninety per

cent. of the venereal disease goes.  With me it is  not a  question of morality but of efficiency."  Here the M. O.

sprang from  his chair and began to pace the hut.  "This is the one  thing in this  army business that makes me

wild.  We come over here  to fightthese  boys are willing to fightand by gad they will  fight!  They go out

for a walk, they have a few beers together,  their inhibitory powers  are paralysed, opportunity comes their

way,  and they wake up a little  later diseased.  God in heaven!  I love  this dear old England, and I  would die for

her if need be, but may  God Almighty damn her public  houses, and all the infernal and  vicious customs

which they nourish." 

"Thank you, doctor, go right on," said Barry.  "I was at the tent  hospital this week for the first time.  Ever

since, I have been  wanting to say what you have said just now.  But what did your M. O.  conference do about

it?" 

"What could we do?  The Home Office blocks the way.  Well, I've got  that off my stomach, and I feel better,"

added the M. O., with a  slight laugh. 

"But, doc, I want to say this," said Barry.  "I don't believe that  the percentage of men who go in for this sort of

thing is large.  I've  been making inquiries from our chaplains and they all agree  that we  have a mighty fine

and clean body of men in our Canadian  army." 

"Right you are!  Of course, it is only a small percentage, a very  small percentagea much smaller percentage

than in our civilian  population at home.  But small as it is, it is just that much too  many.  Hell and blazes!

These men are soldiers.  They have left  their homes, and their folks, to fight.  Their peopletheir people  are

the best in our land.  There's that young Pentland.  A finer  young chap never threw a leg over a broncho.  He's

in that tent  hospital tonight.  I know his mother.  Three sons she has given.  Oh,  damn it all," the doctor's

voice broke at this point.  "I can't  speak  quietly.  Their mothers have given them up, to death, if need  be, but

not to this rotten, damnable disease.  Look here, Pilot!"  The doctor  pointed a shaking and accusing finger at

Barry.  "You  have often  spoken against this thing, but next time you break  loose, give them  merry hell over it.

You can't make it too hot." 

Long Barry sat silent overborne by the fury of the doctor's  passionate indictment. 

"Cheer up, old chap!" said the doctor, when his wrath had somewhat  subsided.  "We'll lick the Kaiser and beat

the devil yet." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 87



Top




Page No 90


"But, doctor, what can I do?" implored Barry.  "That's part of my  job, surely.  Part of the job of the chaplain

service, I mean.  Oh,  that is the ghastly tragedy of this work of mine.  Somehow I can't  get at it.  These evils

exist.  I can speak against them and make  enemies, but the things go on just as before." 

"Don't you believe it, Pilot, not quite as before.  Behold how you  have already checked my profanity.  Even

the old man has pretty  much  cut it out at mess.  You don't know where they would have been  but for  you.

Cheer up!  Our wings may not be visible but, on the  other hand,  there are no signs of horns and hoofs." 

"Doctor, one thing I'll do," cried Barry, with a sudden inspiration  "We've a meeting of the chaplains' corps

tomorrow.  I'll give them  your speech." 

"Expurgated edition, I hope," said the M. O. 

"No, I'll put in every damn I can remember, and, if need be, a few  more." 

"Lord, I'd like to be there, old boy!" said the doctor, fervently. 

Barry was as good as his word.  At the meeting of the chaplains'  corps, the time was mainly taken up in

routine business, dealing  with  arrangements for religious services at the various camps  within the  area. 

At the close of the meeting, however, one of the chaplains rose and  announced that he had a matter to bring to

the attention of the  corpsa matter of the highest importance, which demanded their  immediate and serious

attention, and which they dared not any  longer  ignore.  It was the matter of venereal disease in our  Canadian

army. 

His statistics and illustrative incidents gripped hard the hearts  of the men present.  He closed with a demand

that steps be taken  that  day to deal with the situation.  The Canadian people had  entrusted  them with the care

of their boys' souls.  "Their souls,"  he cried.  "I  say our first duty is to their bodies.  I am not  saying the

percentage  is large.  It is not as large as in the  civilian population at home.  But why any?  We must care for

these  men's bodies.  They fight with  their bodies." 

His last sentence struck Barry to the heart.  It recalled his own  sermon, spoken in Edmonton to his father's

battalion.  Immediately  he  was on his feet, and without preface or apology, reproduced as  far as  he was able

the M. O.'s speech of the previous night, and  that without  expurgation. 

There was but little discussion.  There was but one opinion.  It  was resolved to call a joint meeting of the

chaplains and medical  officers to decide upon a course of action. 

As Barry was leaving the meeting, the senior chaplain, an old  Anglican clergyman, with a saintly face and a

smile that set one's  tenderest emotions astir, came to him, and putting his hand  affectionately upon his

shoulder, said: 

"And how is your work going, my dear fellow?" 

It was to Barry as if his father's hand were upon his shoulder, and  before he was aware he was pouring out the

miserable story of his  own  sad failure as a chaplain. 

"Poor boy!  Poor boy!" the old gentleman kept saying.  "I know how  you feel.  Just so, just so!" 

When Barry had finished relieving his heart of the burden that had  so long lain upon it, the old gentleman

took him by the hand and  said: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS 88



Top




Page No 91


"My dear fellow, remember they are far from home.  These boys need  their mothers.  They sorely need their

mothers!  And, my boy, they  need God.  And they need you.  Goodbye!" 

Barry came away with a warm feeling in his heart, and in it a new  purpose and resolve.  No longer would he

be a policeman to his men.  He would try to forget their faults, and to remember only how  sorely  they needed

their mothers and their God, and that they  needed him,  too. 

He found the camp thrilling with great news, glorious news.  The  day so long awaited had come.  The battalion

was under orders for  France.  At that very moment there was an officers' meeting in the  orderly room. 

As Barry entered the room, the O. C. was closing his speech. 

Barry was immediately conscious of a new tone, a new spirit, in the  colonel's words.  He spoke with a new

sense of responsibility, and  what more than anything else arrested Barry's attention, with a new  sense of

brotherhood toward his officers. 

"In closing what I have to say, gentlemen, let me make a  confession.  I am not satisfied with the battalion, nor

with my  officers.  I am  not satisfied with myself.  I remember being indignant  at the report  sent in by the

inspecting officer concerning this  battalion.  I  thought he was unfair and unduly severe.  I believe I  said so.

Gentlemen, I was wrong.  Since that time I have seen work in  some  regiments of the Imperial Service, and

especially, I have seen  the  work on the front line.  I think I know now what discipline means.  Discipline,

gentlemen, is the thing that saves an army from disaster.  Some things we must cut out absolutely.  Whatever

unfits for service  must go.  I saw a soldier, a Canadian soldier, shot at the front for  being intoxicated.  I pray

God, I may never see the like again.  At  this point, I wish to express my appreciation of the work of our

chaplain, who I am glad to see has just come in.  He has stood for  the right thing among us, and has materially

helped in the  discipline  and efficiency of this battalion.  Gentlemen, you have  your orders.  Let there be no

failure.  Obedience is demanded, not  excuses.  Gentlemen, carry on!" 

Barry hurried away to his hut.  The words of his colonel had lifted  him out of his despair.  He had not then so

desperately failed.  His  colonel had found something in him to approve.  And France was  before  him!  There

was still a chance for service.  The boys would  need him  there. 

CHAPTER X. FRANCE

"France, sunny France!"  The tone carried concentrated bitterness  and disgust.  "One cursed fraud after another

in this war." 

"Cheer up!" said Barry.  "There's worse to comeperhaps better.  This rain is beastly, but the clouds will

pass, and the sun will  shine again, for in spite of the rain this IS 'sunny France.'  There's  a little homily for

you," said Barry, "and for myself as  well, for I  assure you this combination of mal de mer and sleet  makes

one feel  rotten." 

"Everything is rotten," grumbled Duff, gazing gloomily through the  drizzling rain at the rugged outline of

wharves that marked the  Boulogne docks. 

"Look at this," cried Duff, sweeping his hand toward the deck.  "You would think this stuff was shot out of

the blower of a  threshing  machinesoldier's baggage, kits, quartermaster's  storesand this is  a military

organisation.  Good Lord!" 

"Lieutenant Duff!  Is Lieutenant Duff here?"  It was the O. C.'s  voice. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 89



Top




Page No 92


"Yes, sir," said Duff, going forward and saluting. 

"Mr. Duff, I wish you to take charge of the Transport for the  present.  Lieutenant Bonner is quite

uselesshelpless, I mean.  You  will find Sergeant Mackay a reliable man.  Sorry I couldn't  give you  longer

notice.  I think, however, you are the man for the  job." 

"I'll do my best, sir," said Duff, saluting, as the O. C. turned  away. 

"What did I tell you, Duff?" said Barry.  "You certainly are in for  it, and you have my sympathy." 

"Sympathy!  Don't you worry about me," said Duff.  "This is just  the kind of thing I like.  I haven't run a gang

of navvies in the  Crow's Nest Pass for nothing.  You watch my smoke.  But, one word,  Pilot!  When you see

me bearing down, full steam ahead, give me  room!  I'll make this go or bust something."  Then in a burst of

confidence,  he took Barry by the arm, and added in a low voice:  "And if I live,  Pilot, I'll be running

something in this war bigger  than the Transport  of a battalion before I'm done." 

Barry let his eyes run over the powerful figure, the rugged,  passionate face, lit up now with gleaming eyes,

and said: 

"I believe you, Duff.  Meantime, I'll watch your smoke." 

"Do!" replied Duff with superb selfconfidence.  And it was worth  while during the next hour to watch Duff

evolve order out of chaos.  First of all he put into his men and into his sergeant the fear of  death.  But he did

more than that.  He breathed into them something  of his own spirit of invincible determination.  He had them

springing  at his snappy orders with an eagerness that was in itself  the larger  half of obedience, and as they

obeyed they became  conscious that they  were working under the direction of a brain  that had a perfected plan

of action, and that held its details  firmly in its grasp. 

Not only did Duff show himself a master of organisation and  control, but in a critical moment he himself

leaped into the  breach,  and did the thing that balked his men.  Did a heavy  transport wagon  jamb at the

gangway, holding up the traffic, with a  spring, Duff was  at the wheel.  A heave of his mighty shoulders,  and

the wagon went  roaring down the gangway.  Did a horse, stupid  with terror, from its  unusual surroundings,

balk, Duff had a  "twitch" on its upper lip, and  before it knew what awful thing had  gripped it, the horse was

lifted  clear out of its tracks, and was  on its way to the dock. 

Before he had cleared the ship, Duff had a circle of admirers about  him, gazing as if at a circus. 

"An energetic officer you have there," said the brass hat standing  beside the colonel. 

"A new man.  This is his first time on the transport," replied the  colonel. 

"Quite remarkable!  Quite remarkable!" exclaimed the brass hat.  "That unloading must have been done in

record time, and in spite of  quite unusual conditions." 

The boat being clear and the loads made up, Duff approached the  Commanding Officer. 

"All ready, sir," he announced.  "Shall we move off?  I should like  to get a start.  The roads will be almost

impassable, I'm afraid." 

"Do you know the route?" asked the Commanding Officer. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 90



Top




Page No 93


"Yes, sir, I have it here." 

"All right, go ahead, Duff.  A mighty good piece of work you have  done there." 

"Thank you, sir," said Duff, saluting and turning away. 

"Move off, there," he shouted to the leading team. 

The driver started the team but they slipped, plunged and fell  heavily.  Duff was at their heads before any

other man could move. 

"Get hold here, men," he yelled.  "Take hold of that horse.  What  are you afraid of?" he cried to a groom who

was gingerly approaching  the struggling animal.  "Now then, all together!" 

When he had the team on their feet again, he said to the grooms  standing at their heads, "Jump up on the

horses' backs; that will  help the them to hold their footing." 

There was some slight hesitation on the part of the grooms. 

"Come on!" he roared, and striding to the horse nearest him, he  flung himself upon its back. 

A groom mounted the other, and once more a start was made, but they  had not gone more than a few steps,

when the groom's horse fell  heavily, and rolled over on its side, pinning the unfortunate man  beneath him. 

There was a shriek of agony.  In an instant Duff was off his horse  and at the head of the fallen animal. 

"Medical officer here!" he shouted.  "Now then, two of you men.  One of you pull out that man while we lift." 

The horse's head and shoulders were lifted clear, and the injured  man was pulled out of danger. 

"Take him out of the way, please, doctor," said Duff, to the M. O.,  who was examining the groom. 

"Sergeant!" 

His sergeant literally sprang to his side. 

"Get me a dozen bags," he said. 

"Bags, sir?  I don't know where" 

"Bags," repeated Duff savagely.  "Canvas, anything to wrap around  these horses' feet." 

The sergeant without further words plunged into the darkness,  returning almost immediately with half a

dozen bags. 

"Thanks, sergeant; that's the way to move.  Now get some more!" 

Under Duff's directions the bags were tied about the feet of the  horses, thus enabling them to hold their

footing, and the transport  moved off in the darkness. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 91



Top




Page No 94


Returning from the disposing of the injured man, the M. O. found  Barry shivering with the cold, and weak

from his recent attack of  seasickness. 

"There will be no end of a sick parade tomorrow morning, and  you'll be one of them," grumbled the M. O.

"If they don't move  them  out of here soon they'll take them away in ambulances.  There  are a  hundred men at

this moment fit to go to hospital, but the  O. C. won't  hear of it." 

"Doc, they ought to have something hot.  The kitchens are left  behind, I understand.  Let me have a couple of

your men, and let me  see what I can do." 

"It's no use, I've tried all the hotels about here.  They're full  up." 

"No harm trying, doc," said Barry, and off he went. 

But he found the hotels full up, as the doctor had said.  After  much inquiry, he found his way to the Y. M. C.

A.  A cheerful but  sleepy secretary, half dead with the fatigue of a heavy day  ministering to soldiers "going up

the line," could offer him no  help  at all. 

"Do you mean to say that there is no place in this town," said  Barry desperately, "where a sick man can get a

dish of coffee?" 

"Sick man!" cried the secretary.  "Why, certainly!  Why not try the  R. A. M. C.?  They've a hospital half a mile

up the street.  They  will certainly help you out.  I'll come with you." 

"No, you don't," said Barry.  "You go back to bed.  I'll find the  place." 

Half a mile up the street, as the secretary had said, Barry came  upon the flaring lantern of the R. A. M. C., at

the entrance to a  huge warehouse, the gate of which stood wide open. 

Entering the courtyard, Barry found a group of men about a blazing  fire. 

"May I see the officer in charge?" he asked, approaching the group. 

The men glanced at his rank badges. 

"Yes, sir," said a sergeant, clicking his heels smartly.  "Can I do  anything for you, sir?" 

"Thank you," said Barry, and told him his wants. 

"We have plenty of biscuits," said the sergeant, "and coffee, too.  You are welcome to all you can carry, but I

don't see how we can do  any more for you.  But would you like to see the officer in charge,  sir?" 

"Thank you," said Barry, and together they passed into another  room. 

But the officer was engaged elsewhere.  While they were discussing  the matter, a door opened, and a young

girl dressed in the uniform  of  a V. A. D. (Voluntary Aid Detachment) appeared. 

"What is it, sergeant?" she inquired, in a soft but rather tired  voice. 

The sergeant explained, while she listened with mild interest.  Then Barry took up the tale, and proceeded to

dilate upon the  wretched condition of his comrades, out in the icy rain.  But his  story moved the V. A. D. not


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 92



Top




Page No 95


at all.  She had seen too much of the  real misery and horrors of war.  Barry began to feel discouraged,  and

indeed a little ashamed of himself. 

"You see, we have just come over," he said in an apologetic tone,  "and we don't know much about war yet." 

"You are Canadians?" cried the girl, a new interest dawning in her  eyes.  As she came into the light, Barry

noticed that they were  brown, and that they were very lustrous. 

"I love the Canadians," she exclaimed.  "My brother was a liaison  artillery officer at Ypres; with them, at the

time of the gas, you  know.  He liked them immensely."  Her voice was soft and sad. 

Unconsciously Barry let his eyes fall to the black band on her arm. 

"He was with the Canadians, too, when he was killed at Armentieres,  three months ago." 

"Killed!" exclaimed Barry.  "Oh, I am so sorry for you." 

"I had two brothers," she went on, in her gentle even tone.  "One  was killed at Landrecies, on the retreat from

Mons, you know." 

"No," said Barry, "I'm afraid I don't know about it.  Tell me!" 

"It was a great fight," said the girl.  "Oh, a splendid fight!"  A  ring came into her voice and a little colour into

her cheek.  "They  tried to rush our men, but they couldn't.  My oldest brother was  there in charge of a machine

gun section.  The machine guns did  wonderful work.  The colonel came to tell us about it.  He said it  was very

fine."  There was no sign of tears in her eyes, nor tremor  in her voice, only tenderness and pride. 

"And your mother is alone now?" inquired Barry. 

"Oh, we gave up our house to the government for a hospital.  You  see, father was in munitions.  He's too old

for active service, and  mother is matron in the hospital.  She was very unwilling that I  should come over here.

She said I was far too young, but of course  that's quite nonsense.  So you see, we are all in it." 

"It is perfectly amazing," said Barry.  "You British women are  wonderful!" 

The brown eyes opened a little wider. 

"Wonderful?  Why, what else could we do?  But the Canadians!  I  think they're wonderful, coming all this way

to fight." 

"I can't see that," said Barry.  "That's what that old naval boy at  Devonport said, but I can't see that it's

anything wonderful that  we  should fight for our Empire." 

"Devonport!  A naval officer!"  The girl lost her calm.  She became  excited.  "What was his name?" 

"I have his card here," said Barry, taking out his pocket book and  handing her the card. 

"My uncle!" she cried.  "Why, how perfectly splendid!" offering  Barry her hand.  "Why, we're really

introduced.  Then you're the  man  that Uncle Howard"  She stopped abruptly, a flush on her  cheek.  Then she

turned to the N. C. O.  "Yes, sergeant, that will  do," as  the man brought half a dozen large biscuit cans and as

many  large  bottles of prepared coffee. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 93



Top




Page No 96


As Barry's eyes fell upon the biscuit cans an idea came to him. 

"Will these cans hold water?" he inquired. 

"Yes, sir," replied the sergeant. 

"Then, we're fixed," cried Barry, in high delight.  "This is  perfectly fine." 

"What do you mean?" asked the girl. 

"We'll dump the biscuits, and boil the coffee in the cans.  I  haven't camped on the Athabasca for nothing.  Now

we're all right  and  I suppose we must go." 

The V. A. D. hesitated a moment, then she took the sergeant to one  side, and entered into earnest and

persuasive talk with him. 

"It's against regulations, miss," Barry heard him say, "and  besides, you know, we're expecting a hospital train

any minute, and  every car will be needed." 

"Then I'll take my own car," she said.  "It's all ready and has the  chains on, sergeant, I think." 

"Yes, it's quite ready, but you will get me into trouble, miss." 

"Then, I'll get you out again.  Load those things in, while I run  and change  I'm going to drive you out to

your camp," she said to  Barry as she hurried away. 

The sergeant shook his head as he looked after her. 

"She's a thoroughbred, sir," he said.  "We jump when she asks us  for anything.  She's a real blooded one; not

like some, sirlike  some of them fullrigged ones.  They keep 'er 'oppin'." 

"Fullrigged ones?" inquired Barry. 

"Them nurses, I mean, sir.  They loves to 'awe themthem young  'Vaddies,' as we call themV. A. D., you

know, sir.  They keeps  'em  a 'oppin' properscrubbin' floors, runnin' messages, but Miss  Vincent, she mostly

drives a car." 

While the sergeant was dilating upon the virtues and excellences of  the young V. A. D., his men ran out her

car, and packed into it the  biscuit tins and coffee.  By the time the sergeant was ready she  was  back, dressed in

a chauffeur's uniform. 

Barry had thought her charming in her V. A. D. dress, but in her  uniform she was bewitching.  He noticed that

her hair clustered in  tiny ringlets about her natty little cap, in quite a maddening way.  One vagrant curl over

her ear had a particular fascination for his  eyes.  He felt it ought to be tucked in just a shade.  He was

conscious of an almost irresistible desire to do the tucking in.  What  would happen if 

"Well, are you ready?" inquired the girl in a quick, businesslike  tone. 

"What?  Oh, yes," said Barry, recalled to the business of the  moment. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 94



Top




Page No 97


During the drive the girl gave her whole attention to her wheel, as  indeed was necessary, for the road was

dangerously slippery, and  she  drove without lights through the black night.  Barry kept up an  endless stream

of talk, set going by her command, as she took her  place at the wheel.  "Now tell me about Canada.  I can

listen, but  I  can't talk." 

In the full tide of his most eloquent passages, Barry found himself  growing incoherent at times, for his mind

was in a state of  oscillation between the wonderful and lustrous qualities of the  brown  eyes that he

remembered flashing upon him in the light of the  fire,  and that maddening little curl over the girl's ear. 

In an unbelievably short time, so it seemed to him, they came upon  the rear of a marching column. 

"These are your men, I fancy," she said, "and this will be your  camp on the left; I know it well.  I've often

been here." 

She swung the car off the road into an open field, set out with  tents, and brought the car to a stop beside an

old ruined factory. 

"This, I believe, will be the best place for your purpose," she  said, and sprang from her seat, and ran to the

ruin, flashing her  torchlight before her.  "Here you are," she said.  "This will be  just  the thing." 

Barry followed her a few steps down into the long, stoneflagged  cellar. 

"Splendid!  This is the very thing," he cried enthusiastically.  "You are really the most wonderful person." 

"Now get your stuff in here," she ordered.  "But what will you do  for wood?  There is always water," she

added, "in some tanks  further  on.  Come, I'll show you." 

Barry followed her in growing amazement and admiration at her  prompt efficiency. 

"Now then, there are your tanks," she said.  "As for wood, I don't  know what you will do, but there is a garden

paling a little  further  on, and, of course" 

"Don't worry about that," said Barry. 

"I won't," with a gay laugh; "I know you Canadians, you see." 

Together they returned to the car. 

Before she mounted to her seat she turned to Barry, and offered him  her hand and said:  "I think it is perfectly

ripping that we were  introduced in this way.  Though I don't know your name yet," she  added shyly. 

"Awfully stupid of me," said Barry, and he gave her his name,  adding that of the regiment, and his rank. 

"Goodbye, then," she said, climbing into her car, and starting her  engine. 

"But," said Barry, "I must see you safely back." 

She laughed a scornful but, as Barry thought, a most delicious  little laugh. 

"Nonsense!  We don't do that sort of thing here, you know.  We're  on our own." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 95



Top




Page No 98


A little silence fell between them. 

"When does your battalion march?" she asked abruptly. 

"Perhaps tomorrow.  I don't know." 

"If you do go then," she said, with again that little touch of  shyness, "I suppose I won't see you again." 

"See you again," exclaimed Barry, his tone indicating that the  possibility of such a calamity was unthinkable,

"why, of course I  shall see you again.  I must see you againIII just must see  you  again." 

"Good night, then," she said in a soft, hurried voice, throwing in  her clutch. 

Barry stood listening in the dark to the hum of her engine, growing  more faint every moment. 

"Some girl, eh?" said a voice.  At his side he saw Harry Hobbs.  Barry turned sharply upon him. 

"Now then, Hobbs, some wood and we will get a fire going and look  lively!  And, Hobbs, I believe there's a

fence about fifty yards  down  there, which you might find useful.  Now move.  Quick!"  Unconsciously  he tried

to reproduce, in uttering the last word,  Duff's tone and  manner.  The effect was evident immediately. 

Hobbs without further words departed in the darkness.  Again Barry  stood listening to the hum of the engine,

until he could no longer  hear it in the noise and confusion of the camp, but in his heart  Harry's words made

music. 

"Some girl, eh?" 

As he stood there in the darkness, hearing that music in his heart,  a voice broke in, swearing hard and deep

oaths.  It was the M. O. 

"Hello, doc, my boy; come here," cried Barry. 

The M. O. approached.  He was in a state of rage that rendered  coherent speech impossible. 

"Oh, quit it, doc.  Let me show you something." 

He led him into the ruin, where his spoils were cached. 

"Biscuits, my boy, and coffee.  Hold on!  Listen!  I'm going to get  a fire going here and in twenty minutes

there'll be six cans of  fragrant delicious coffee, boiling hot." 

"Why, how the" 

"Doc, don't talk!  Listen to me!  You round up your sick men, and  bring them quietly over here.  I don't know

how many I can supply,  but at least, I think, a hundred." 

"Why, how the devil?" 

"Go on; I haven't time to talk to you.  Get busy!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 96



Top




Page No 99


Working by flashlight, the men cut open the tins, dumped the  biscuits on a blanket spread in a corner of the

cellar, while Barry  made preparations for a fire. 

"Here, Hobbs, you punch two holes in these cans, just an inch from  the top." 

Soon the fire was blazing cheerily.  In its light Barry was  searching through the ruin. 

"By Jove," he shouted, "the very thing.  Just made for us." 

He pulled out a long steel rod from a heap of rubbish and ran with  it to the fire. 

"Here, boys, punch a hole in this wall.  Now then, for the cans.  String them on this rod." 

In twenty minutes the coffee was ready. 

"How is it?" he inquired anxiously, handing a mess tin full to one  of his men. 

The boy tasted it. 

"Like mother made," he said, with a grin.  "Gee, but it's good." 

At that moment the doctor appeared at the cellar door. 

"I say, old chap," he said, "there will be a riot here in fifteen  minutes.  That coffee smells the whole camp." 

"Bring 'em along, doc.  The sick chaps first.  By Jove, here's the  sergeant major himself." 

"What's all this?" inquired the sergeant major in his gruffest  voice.  "Who's responsible for this fire?" 

"Coffee, sergeant major?" answered Barry, handing him a tin full. 

"But what?" 

"Drink it first, sergeant major." 

The sergeant major took the mess tin and tasted the coffee. 

"Well, this IS fine," he declared, "and it's what the boys want.  But this fire is against orders, sir.  I ought to

have it put out." 

"You will have it put out over my dead body, sergeant major," cried  the M. O. 

"And mine," added Barry. 

"By gad, we'll chance the zeps, sir," said the sergeant major.  "This freezin' rain will kill more men than a

bomb.  Bring in your  men, sir," he added to the M. O.  "But I must see the O. C." 

The sergeant major's devotion to military discipline was struggling  hard with his humanity, which, under his

rugged exterior, beat warm  in his heart. 

"Why bother with the O. C.?" said the M. D. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 97



Top




Page No 100


"But I must see him," insisted the sergeant major. 

He had not far to go to attain his purpose. 

"Hello!  What the devil is this?" exclaimed a loud voice at the  door. 

"By gad, it's the old man himself," muttered the M. O. to Barry.  "Now look out for ructions." 

In came the O. C., followed by a brass hat.  Barry went forward  with a steaming tin of coffee. 

"Sorry our china hasn't arrived yet, sir," he said cheerfully, "but  the coffee isn't bad, the boys say." 

"Why, it's you, Dunbar," said the colonel, peering into his face,  and shaking the rain drops from his coat.  "I

might have guessed  that  you'd be in it.  Where there's any trouble," he continued,  turning to  the brass hat at his

side, "you may be quite sure that  the Pilot or  the M. O. here will be in it.  By Jove, this coffee  goes to the right

spot.  Have a cup, major?" he said as Barry  brought a second tin. 

"It's against regulations, you know," said the major, taking the  mess tin gingerly.  "Fires are quite forbidden.

Air raids, and  that  sort of thing, don't you know." 

"Oh, hang it all, major," cried the O. C.  "The coffee is fine, and  my men will be a lot better for it.  This camp

of yours, anyway, is  no place for human beings, and especially for men straight off the  boat.  As for me, I'm

devilish glad to get this coffee.  Give me  another tin, Pilot." 

"It's quite irregular," murmured the major, still drinking his  coffee.  "It's quite irregular!  But I see the door is

fairly well  guarded against light, and perhaps" 

"I think we'll just carry on," said the colonel.  "If there is any  trouble, I'll assume the responsibility for it.

Thank you, Pilot.  Just keep guard on the light here, sergeant major." 

"All right, sir.  Very good, sir, we will hang up a blanket." 

Meanwhile the news had spread throughout the camp, and before many  minutes had passed the cellar was

jammed with a crowd of men that  reached through the door and out into the night.  The crowd was  becoming

noisy and there was danger of confusion.  Then the pilot  climbed up on a heap of rubbish and made a little

speech. 

"Men," he called out, "this coffee is intended first of all for the  sick men in this battalion.  Those sick men

must first be cared  for.  After that we shall distribute the coffee as far as it will  go.  There is plenty of water

outside, and I think I have plenty of  coffee.  Sergeant major, I suggest that you round up these men in  some

sort of order." 

A few sharp words of command from the sergeant major brought order  out of confusion, and for two hours

there filed through the cellar  a  continuous stream of men, each bringing an empty mess tin, and  carrying it

away full of hot and fragrant coffee. 

By the time the men had been supplied the officers were finished  with their duties, and having got word of

the Pilot's coffee stall,  came crowding in.  One and all they were vociferous in their praise  of the chaplain,

voting him a "good fellow" and a "lifesaver" of  the  highest order.  But it was felt by all that Corporal Thom

expressed  the general consensus of opinion to his friend Timms.  "That Pilot of  ours," he declared, "runs a

little to the narrow  gauge, but in that  last round up he was telling us about last  Sunday there won't be the  goat


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER X. FRANCE 98



Top




Page No 101


run for him.  It's him for the baa  baas, sure enough." 

And though in the vernacular the corporal's words did not sound  quite reverent, it was agreed that they

expressed in an entirely  satisfactory manner the general opinion of the battalion. 

An hour later, wearied as he was, Barry crawled into his icy  blankets, but with a warmer feeling in his heart

than he had known  since he joined the battalion.  But before he had gone to sleep,  there came into his mind a

thought that brought him up wide awake.  He  had quite forgotten all about his duty as chaplain.  "What a

chance  you had there," insisted his chaplain's conscience, "for a  word that  would really hearten your men.

This is their first night  in France.  Tomorrow they march up to danger and death.  What a  chance!  And you

missed it." 

Barry was too weary to discuss the matter further, but as he fell  asleep he said to himself, "At any rate, the

boys are feeling a lot  better," and in spite of his sense of failure, that thought brought  him no small comfort. 

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE

"I think," said Barry, to the M. O., "I really ought to ride down  to the R. A. M. C. hospital, and tell them how

the boys enjoyed the  coffee last night."  His face was slightly flushed, but the flush  might have been due to the

fact that he had been busily engaged in  tying up the thongs of his bedroll, an awkward job at times. 

"Sure thing," agreed the M. O. heartily.  "Indeed it's absolutely  essential, and say, old chap, you might tell her

how I enjoyed my  coffee.  She will be glad to hear about me." 

Barry heaved his bedroll at the doctor and departed. 

At the R. A. M. C. Hospital the Officer Commanding, to whom he had  sent in his card, gave him a cordial

greeting. 

"I am glad to know you, sir.  We have quite a lot of your chaps  here now and then, and fine fellows they seem

to be.  We expect a  hospital train this morning, and I understand there are some  Canadians among them.

Rather a bad go a few days ago at St. Eloi.  Heavy casualty list.  Clearing stations all crowded, and so they  are

sending a lot down the line." 

"Canadians?" asked Barry, thinking of his father.  "You have not  heard what unit, sir?" 

"No, we only get the numbers and the character of the casualties  and that sort of thing.  Well, I must be off.

Would you care to  look  around?" 

"Thank you, no.  We are also on the march.  I simply came to tell  you how very greatly our men appreciated

your help last night." 

"Oh, that's perfectly all right.  Glad the sergeant had sense  enough to do the right thing." 

Barry hesitated. 

"May I seeahthe sergeant?" 

"The sergeant?  Why, certainly, but it's not necessary at all." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 99



Top




Page No 102


The sergeant was called and duly thanked.  The R. A. M. C. officer  was obviously anxious to be rid of his

visitor and to get off to  his  duty. 

Still Barry lingered. 

"There was also a young lady, sir, last night," he said at length. 

"A young lady?" 

"Sister Vincent, sir," interjected the sergeant.  "She ran them up  to the camp in her car, sir.  The ambulances

and cars were all  under  orders." 

"Ah!  Ran you up to the camp, eh?" 

"Yes, she ran us up with the biscuits and coffee.  It was awfully  kind of her." 

"Ah!Um!Very good!  Very good!  Sergeant, call her," said the  O. C. abruptly. 

"I'm afraid she'd be asleep now, sir.  She was on night duty, sir." 

"Oh, then," said Barry, "please don't disturb her.  I wouldn't  think of it.  If you will be kind enough, sir, to

convey the thanks  of the men and of myself to her." 

"Surely, surely!  Well, I really must be going.  Goodbye!  Good  luck!" 

He turned to his motor car.  "I won't forget, sir," he said to  Barry.  "Oh, I'll be sure to tell her," he added with a

significant  smile. 

As Barry was mounting his horse, the strains of the battalion band  were heard floating down the street.  He

drew up his horse beside  the  entrance and waited.  Down the winding hill they came, tall,  lean,  hardlooking

men, striding with the free, easy swing of the  men of the  foothills.  Barry felt his heart fill with pride in his

comrades. 

"By Jove," he said to himself, "the boys are all right." 

"Fine body of men, sir," said the sergeant, who with his comrades  had gathered about the gateway. 

"Not too bad, eh, sergeant?" said Barry, with modest pride. 

"Sir," said the sergeant in a low voice, "the young lady is up at  the window to your left." 

"Sergeant, you're a brick!  Thank you," said Barry.  He turned in  his saddle, and saw above him a window

filled with smiling nurses  looking down at the marching column, and among them his friend of  the  night

before.  Her face was turned away from him, and her eyes  were  upon the column, eagerly searching the ranks

of the marching  men. 

"Sergeant," said Barry, "your Commanding Officer is a very busy  man, and has a great many things to

occupy his attention.  Don't  you  think it is quite possible that that message of mine might  escape his  memory,

and don't you think it would be really more  satisfactory if I  could deliver that message in person?" 

The sergeant tilted his hat over one eye, and scratched his head. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 100



Top




Page No 103


"Well, sir, the Commanding Officer does 'ave a lot of things to  think about, and though he doesn't often

forget, he might.  Besides, I  really think the young lady would like to know just how  the coffee  went." 

"Sergeant, you are a man of discernment.  I'll just wait here until  the battalion passes." 

He moved his horse a few steps out from the gateway, and swung him  around so that he stood facing the

window.  The movement caught the  attention of the V. A. D. in the window.  She glanced down, saw  him,  and,

leaning far out, waved her hand in eager greeting and  with a  smile of warm friendliness. 

He had only time to wave his hand in reply, when the head of the  column drew opposite the gateway, forcing

him to turn his back to  the  window and stand at salute. 

The Commanding Officer acknowledged the salute, glanced up at the  window, waved his hand to the group

of nurses there gathered, then  glanced back at Barry, with a smile full of meaning, and rode on. 

After the band had passed the entrance, it ceased playing, and the  men, catching sight of Barry and the

smiling group at the window  above him, broke softly into a rather suggestive music hall ditty,  at  that time

popular with the soldiers: 

"Hello!  Hello!  Who's your lady friend;  Who's the little blossom  by your side;  I saw you, with a girl or two,

Oh! Oh! Oh! Oh! I'm  surprised at you." 

Down the length of the column the refrain passed, gradually gaining  in strength and volume, until by the time

the rear came opposite  the  entrance, the men were shouting with wide open throats: 

"Oh! Oh! Oh! Oh! I'm surprised at you," 

with a growing emphasis and meaning upon every successive "Oh!" 

Barry's face was aflame and his heart hot with furious indignation.  She was not that kind of a girl.  She would

be humiliated before  her  associates.  He glanced up at the window but she was gone.  The  battalion marched

on but Barry still remained, his eyes following  the  swinging column, his face still flaming, and his heart hot

with  indignation. 

"Good morning, Captain Dunbar!" 

He swung off his horse, and there smiling at him with warm  friendliness was the little V. A. D. 

"I'm awfully sorry," began Barry, thinking of the impudent song of  his comrades.  "I mean I'm very glad to see

you.  I just ran in to  tell you how splendidly the coffee went last night.  There are a  hundred fellows marching

along there that are fine and fit just  because of your kindness, and I'm here to give you their thanks." 

Barry felt that he was cutting a rather poor figure.  His words  came haltingly and stumblingly.  The suggestive

music hall ditty  was  still in his mind. 

"What a splendid band you have," she said, "and how splendidly the  men sing." 

"Sing!" cried Barry indignantly.  "Oh, yes, they do sing rather  well, don't they?" he added, greatly relieved.  "I

have only a  minute," he added hurriedly, "but I wanted to see you again, and I  wonder if I may drop you a

little note now and then, just towell,  hang it alljust to keep in touch with you.  I don't want you to  quite

forget me." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 101



Top




Page No 104


"Oh, I won't forget you," she said.  The brown eyes looked straight  at him.  "You see, after all, my uncle

knows you so well.  Indeed,  he  told me about you.  You see, we really are friends, in a way,  aren't  we?" 

"We are indeed, and you are awfully good.  Goodbye!" 

"Goodbye," she said, "and if I leave here soon, I promise to let  you know." 

And Barry rode away, his heart in such a turmoil as he had never  known.  In his ears lingered the music of

that soft voice, and his  eyes saw a bewildering complexity of dancing ringlets and lustrous  glances, until he

drew up at the rear of the column and found  himself  riding once more beside his friend, the M. O. 

"Congratulations, old man," said the doctor.  "She's a blossom, all  right.  Cheer up; you may find her bending

over your white face  some  day, holding your hand, or smoothing your brow, in the  approved V. A.  D.

manner." 

"Oh, shut up, doc," said Barry with quite unusual curtness.  "She's  not that kind of a girl." 

"Ah, who knows!" said the doctor.  "Who knows!" 

At the railway station, the battalion was halted, awaiting the  making up of their train, the departure of which

was delayed by the  incoming hospital train from up the line.  They had not long to  wait. 

"Here she is, boys!" called out a soldier.  And into the station  slowly rolled that hospital train, with its freight

of wounded men,  mutilated, maimed, broken.  Its windows were crowded with faces,  white as their swathings,

worn, spent, deeplined, from which  looked  forth eyes, indifferent, staring, but undaunted and  indomitable. 

Gradually, with stately movement, as befitted its noble burden, the  train came to rest immediately opposite

the battalion.  With grave,  fascinated, horrorstricken faces the men of the battalion stood  rigid and voiceless

gazing at that deeply moving spectacle.  Before  their eyes were being paraded the tragic, pathetic remnants of

a  gallant regiment, which but a few weeks before had stood where they  now stood, vital with life, tingling

with courage.  At their  country's bidding they had ascended that Holy Mount of Sacrifice,  to  offer upon the

altar of the world's freedom their bodies as a  living  sacrifice unto God, holy and acceptable.  Now, their

offering being  made, they were being borne back helpless, bruised,  shattered but  unconquered and eternally

glorious. 

Silently the two companies gazed at each other across the  intervening space.  Then from the window of the

train a soldier  thrust a bandaged head and bandaged arm. 

"Hello there, Canada!" he cried, waving the arm.  Instantly, as if  he had touched a hidden spring, from the

battalion's thousand  throats  there broke a roar of cheers that seemed to rock the  rafters of the  station building. 

Again, again, and yet again!  As if they could never exhaust the  burden of their swelling emotions, they roared

forth their cheers,  waving caps and rifles high in the air, while down their cheeks  poured, unheeded and

unhindered, a rain of tears. 

"Canada!  Canada!  Canada!" they cried.  "Oh, you Canadians!  Alberta!  Alberta!" 

Feebly came the answering cheers, awkwardly waved the bandaged  hands and arms. 

Then the battalion broke ranks and flinging rifles and kitbags to  the ground, they rushed across the tracks,

eager to bring their  tribute of pride and love to their brothers from their own country,  far across the sea. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 102



Top




Page No 105


"Malcolm!  Hello, Malcolm!" cried a voice from a window of the  train, as the noise had somewhat subsided.

"Hey, Malcolm, here you  are!" cried a wounded man, raising himself from his cot to the  window. 

Malcolm Innes turned, scanned the train, then rushed across the  tracks to the window and clung fast to it. 

It was his brother, Ewen. 

"Is it yourself, Ewen, and are you hurted bad?" cried the boy, all  unconscious of his breaking voice and

falling tears.  They clung  together for some little time in silence. 

"Are you much hurted, Ewen?  Tell me the God's truth," again said  Malcolm. 

"Not much," said Ewen.  "True as death, I'm tellin' you.  My arm is  broke, that's all.  We had a bad time of it,

but, man, we gave them  hell, you bet.  Oh, it was great!" 

Then again the silence fell between them.  There seemed to be  nothing to say. 

"Here, stand back there!  You must get back, you know, men!" 

An N. C. O. of the R. A. M. C. tried to push Malcolm back from the  window. 

"Here, you go to hell," cried Malcolm fiercely.  "It's my brother  I've got." 

The N. C. O., widely experienced in these tragic scenes, hesitated  a moment.  An officer, coming up behind

him, with a single glance  took in the situation. 

"My boy," he said kindly, placing his hand on Malcolm's arm, "we  want to get these poor chaps as soon as

possible where they will be  comfortable." 

Malcolm sprang back at once, saluting. 

"Yes, sir," he said.  "Certainly, sir."  And backing across the  tracks, stood looking across at the window from

which his brother,  wearied with his effort, had disappeared. 

Meantime the R. A. M. C. were busy with their work.  With  marvellous  rapidity and speed the train was

unloaded of its pathetic  freight,  the carrying cases into ambulances and the walking cases into  cars  and

wagons. 

"Goodbye, Mac," called a voice as a car was driving off.  It was  Ewen again.  The wounded man spoke to the

driver, who immediately  pulled up and swung over to the platform where Malcolm was  standing. 

"Oh, are you sure, Ewen, you are goin' to be all right?  Man, you  look awful white." 

"All right, Mac.  You bet I will.  It's only my arm," said Ewen,  his brave, bright words in pathetic contrast to

his white face. 

At this point Barry came rushing along. 

"Why, Ewen!  My poor fellow!" he cried, throwing his arm about the  wounded man's shoulder.  "What is it?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 103



Top




Page No 106


"My arm, sir," said the boy, adding some words in a low tone.  "But  I'm all right," he said brightly.  "You'll

write my mother, sir,  and  tell her?  You'll know what to say." 

"Surely I will.  You'll be all right, old boy, God bless you!  Good  luck, Ewen!" 

Then leaning over the boy, he added in a low voice, "Remember you  are not all alone.  God is with you.  You

won't forget that!" 

"I won't, sir.  I know it well," said Ewen earnestly. 

Most of the stretcher cases had been hurried away.  Only a few of  the more seriously wounded remained.  As

Barry turned away from the  car, he saw the medical officer and sergeant major approaching him. 

"A terrible business," said Barry, in a horrorstricken voice.  "Splendid chaps.  How plucky they are!" 

The M. O. made no reply, but coming close to Barry, he put his arm  through his, the sergeant major taking

him by the other arm. 

"I say, Barry, old chap," said the M. O. in a grave voice, calling  him for the first time by his first name.

"There is some one here  that you know well." 

"Some one I know," said Barry, standing still and looking from one  to the other. 

"Ay, sir.  Some one we all know and greatly respect," replied the  sergeant major. 

"Notnotoh, not my father!" 

The M. O. nodded. 

"Bad, doctor?  Not dying, doctor?"  His face was white even in  spite of his tan.  His hands closed about the

doctor's arm in a  grip  that reached to the bone. 

"No, not dying, Barry, but in a bad way, I fear." 

"Take me," muttered Barry, in a dazed way, and they moved together  rapidly across the platform. 

"Wait a moment, doctor," said Barry, breathing hard. 

They stood still, a silent and sympathetic group of soldiers about  them.  Barry turned from them, walked a few

steps, his clasped  hands  writhing before him, then stood with his face uplifted to the  sky for  a few moments. 

"All right, doctor, I'll follow," he said, coming quietly back.  "Will he know me?" 

"Sure thing, sir," said the sergeant major cheerily.  "He was  asking for you." 

On a stretcher, waiting to be lifted into the ambulance, he found  his father, lying white and still. 

"Dad!" cried Barry, dropping to his knees beside him.  He put his  arms around him on the stretcher, and

kissed him on both cheeks and  on the lips.  They all drew back from the stretcher and turned  their  backs upon

the two. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 104



Top




Page No 107


"Barry, my boy.  Thank the good God!  I feared I would not see you.  It's all right now.  Everything is all right

now.  I can't put my  arms around you, boy.  I haven't any left." 

Barry's shudder shook the stretcher. 

"Dad, dad, oh, dad!" he whispered, over and over again. 

"It's all right," whispered his father.  "We must not forget we're  soldiers.  Help me to keep up, boy.  I'm not

very strong." 

That pitiful word did for Barry what nothing else could do.  He  lifted his head, stood up and drew a deep

breath. 

"Sure thing, dad," he said, in a clear, steady voice.  "I mustn't  keep you." 

He motioned to the bearers.  Then suddenly recollecting that his  duty would call him away from his father, he

turned to the M. O.,  an  agony of supplication in his voice. 

"Oh, doctor, must I leave him here?" he asked in a low tone. 

Just then an orderly came running up to him, and, saluting, said: 

"Sir, the Commanding Officer says you are to remain behind with  your fathertilltill" 

"Until you are sent for," said the M. O.  "I will see to that." 

"Where's the Commanding Officer?" cried Barry, starting forward. 

"He has gone off somewheres, sir.  He was sorry he couldn't come  himself, but he was called away.  He sent

that message to you." 

"Doctor, will you remember to thank the Commanding Officer for  me?" he said briefly, and turned to follow

his father into the  ambulance, which he discovered to be in charge of his friend, the  sergeant of the R. A. M.

C. 

At the hospital he was received with every mark of solicitous care.  He was made to feel that he was among

friends. 

"How long, doctor?" he asked, after the doctor had finished his  examination. 

"Not long, I'm afraid.  A few hours, perhaps a day.  He will not  suffer though," said the doctor.  "But," he

added, taking Barry by  the arm, "he is very weak, remember, and must not be excited." 

"I know, doctor," said Barry, quietly.  "I won't worry him." 

Through the morning Barry sat by his father's cot, giving him,  under the directions of the nurse, such

stimulants as he needed,  now  and then speaking a quiet, cheery word. 

Often his father opened his eyes and smiled at him. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 105



Top




Page No 108


"Good to see you there, my boy.  That was my only grief.  I feared  I might not see you again.  Thank the good

God that he allowed me  to  see you." 

"He is good, dad, isn't He?  Good to me; good to us both." 

"Yes, He is good," said his father, and fell asleep.  For almost  two hours he slept, a sleep of exhaustion, due to

the terrific  strain  of the past fortyeight hours, and woke refreshed, calm and  strong. 

"You are a lot better, dad," said Barry.  "I believe you are going  to pull through, eh!" 

"A lot better, Barry," said his father, "but, my boy, we are  soldiers, you and I.  I shall not be long, but

remember, we are  soldiers." 

"All right, dad.  I'll try to play the game." 

"That's the word, Barry.  We must play the game, and by God's grace  we will, you and Iour last game

together." 

Through the afternoon they talked, between intervals of sleep,  resolved each to help the other in playing to

the end, in the  manner  of British soldiers, that last, great game. 

They talked, of course, of home and their happy days together,  going far back into the earlier years of

struggle on the ranch. 

"Hard days, Barry, they were, but your mother never failed me.  Wonderful courage she had, and if we were

all right, you and I,  Barry, she was always happy.  Do you remember her?" 

"Yes, dad, quite well.  I remember her smiling always." 

"Smiling, my God!  Smiling through those days.  Yes, that's the way  she played the game, and that's the only

way, boy." 

"Yes, dad," said Barry, and his smile was brighter than ever, but  his knuckles showed white where he gripped

the chair. 

The nurse came and went, wondering at their bright faces and their  cheery voices.  They kept their minds

upon the old happy days.  They  recalled their canoe trips, their hunting experiences,  dwelling mostly  upon the

humorous incidents, playing the game.  Of  the war they spoke  little; not at all of what was to be afterthe

past, the golden,  happy past, rich in love and in comradeship, that  was their one theme. 

As night fell, the father grew weary, and his periods of sleep grew  longer, but ever as he woke he found his

son's face smiling down  upon  him. 

"Good boy, Barry," he said once, with an understanding look and an  answering smile.  "Don't try too hard, my

boy." 

"It's all right, dad.  I assure you it's all right.  You know it  is." 

"I know, I know, my boy," he said, and fell asleep again. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 106



Top




Page No 109


As the midnight hour drew on, Barry's head, from sheer weariness,  sunk upon his breast.  In his sleep he

became aware of some one  near  him.  He sat up, dazed and stupid from his exhaustion and his  grief,  and

found a nurse at his side. 

"Take this," she said softly.  "You will need it."  She set a tray  at his side. 

"Oh, thank you, no!" he said.  "I can't eat.  I can't touch  anything." 

"You need it," said the nurse.  "You must take it, for his sake,  you know.  He will need you." 

Her voice aroused him.  He glanced at her face. 

"Oh, it's you!" he cried. 

It was the little V. A. D. 

"Don't rise," she said, putting her hand on his shoulder, and  pointing to his father.  "Drink this first."  She

handed him an  eggnog.  "Now take your tea."  There was a quiet authority about  her  that compelled obedience.

He ate in silence while she stood  beside  him.  He was too weary and too sick at heart to talk, but he  gradually

became aware that the overpowering sense of loneliness  that had been  with him all day was gone. 

When he had finished his slight meal, he whispered to her: 

"I wish I could thank you, but I can't.  I did need it.  You have  helped me greatly." 

"You are better now," she said softly.  "It's very, very hard for  you, so far from home, and from all your

friends." 

"There is no one else," said Barry simply.  "We have no one but  just ourselves." 

At this point his father opened his eyes bright and very wide  awake. 

The V. A. D. began to gather up the tea things.  Barry put out his  hand and touched her arm. 

"Dad, this is your night nurse.  She was very kind to me last  night, and again tonight.  This is Miss Vincent." 

The brightness of the V. A. D.'s smile outshone his own. 

"I'm not a real nurse," she said.  "I'm only a V. A. D., you know.  They use me to wash the floors and dishes,

and for all sorts of odd  jobs.  Tonight they are shorthanded, and have put me on this  duty." 

While she was speaking, she continued to smile, a smile of radiant  cheer and courage. 

The wounded man listened gravely to her, his eyes searching her  face, her eyes, her very soul, it seemed to

her.  In spite of her  experience and her selfcontrol, she felt her face flushing under  his  searching gaze. 

"My dear," he said at length, "I am glad to meet you.  You are a  good and brave girl, I know."  His eyes fell

upon the black band  upon  her arm.  "I see you are wearing the badge of heroism.  My  dear,  pardon me, you

have the same lookBarry, she has your dear  mother's  look, not so beautifulyou will forgive me, my

dearbut  the same  look.  She thinks of others and she has courage to suffer.  My dear, I  cannot take your

hands in mine,"he glanced with a  pathetic smile at  his bandaged arms, but with a swift movement of


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 107



Top




Page No 110


indescribable grace  the girl stooped and kissed him on the  forehead. 

"Barry," he said, turning to his son, "that was a fine courtesy.  I  count it an honour to have known you, Miss

Vincent." 

He paused a moment or two, his searching eyes still upon her face. 

"You will befriend my boy, afterafter" 

"I will try my best, sir," said the girl, the colour deepening in  her cheeks the while.  "Good night, sir," she

said.  "I shall be  near  at hand if I am wanted." 

"Barry," said his father, after the girl had gone, "that is a very  charming and a very superior young lady, one

you will be glad to  know." 

"Yes, dad, I am sure she is," said Barry, and then he told his  father of the events of the previous night. 

For some moments after he had finished his father lay with his eyes  shut, and quite still, and Barry, thinking

he slept, sat watching,  his eyes intent upon the face he loved best in all the world. 

But his father was not asleep. 

"Yes, Barry," he said, "she is like your dear mother, and now," he  added hurriedly, "I hope you will not think

I am taking a liberty" 

"Oh, dad, I implore you!" said Barry. 

"Barry, I would like to speak to you about your work." 

Barry shook his head sadly. 

"I'm not much good, dad," he said, "but I'm not going to quit," he  added quickly, noting a shadow on his

father's face. 

"Barry, I'm going to say something to you which I do hope will not  hurt you.  I know the common soldier

better than you do, boy.  Our  Canadian soldiers do not like to be rebuked, criticised or even  watched too

closely.  Forgive me this, my boy." 

"Oh, dad, please tell me all that is in your heart!" 

"Thank you, Barry.  They don't like the chaplain to be a censor  over their words." 

"I loathe it," said Barry passionately. 

"Believe me, they are good chaps in their hearts.  They swear and  all that, but that is merely a habit or a mere

expression of high  emotion.  You ought to hear them as they 'go over.'  Barry, let all  that pass and remember

that these boys are giving their lives  their  lives, Barry, for right, for conscience, and ultimately,  though it

may  be unconsciously, for God.  Barry, a man that is  giving his life for  God may say what he likes.  Don't be

too hard  on them, but recall to  mind, Barry, that when they go up the line  they feel terribly lonely  and terribly

afraid, and that is a truly  awful experience." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 108



Top




Page No 111


He paused a moment or two, and then lowered his voice and  continued:  "Barry, you won't be ashamed of me.

I was terribly afraid,  myself." 

Barry choked back a convulsive sob. 

"You, dad, you!"  He laughed scornfully. 

"I didn't run, Barry, thank God!  But the boysmy boysthey are  only lads, many of themlonely and

afraidand they must go on.  They  must go on.  Oh, Barry, in that hour they need some one to go  with  them.

They need God." 

His son was listening with his heart in his eyes.  He was getting a  new view of the soldier and of the soldier's

needs. 

"Unhappily," continued his father, "God is at best a shadowy being,  to many of them a stranger, to some a

terror.  Barry," he said,  "they  need some one to tell them the truth about God.  It's not  fair to God,  you know."

Here again his father paused and then said  very humbly:  "I think I may say, Barry, I know God now, as I did

not before.  And  you helped me, boy, to know him." 

"Oh, dad," cried Barry, passionately.  "Not I!  I don't know Him at  all!" 

"Let me tell you how you helped me, Barry.  Before I went up the  last time, I wanted" 

He paused abruptly, his face working and his lip quivering. 

"Forgive me, my boy.  I'm a little weak." 

A few moments of silence and then he continued quietly: 

"I wanted you, Barry." 

The boy's hands were writhing under his knees, but his face and  eyes were quite steady. 

"I was terribly lonely.  I thought of that strange, dear bond that  held us together, and then like a flash out of

the sky came those  great words:  'Like as a father pitieth his children,' and oh, boy,  boy!  It came to me then

that as I feel toward my boy God feels  toward me.  Barry, listen"  His voice fell to a whisper.  "I am  God's

son, as you are mine.  There was no more fear, and I was not  nearly so lonely.  Tell the boystell the boys the

truth about  God." 

He lay a long time silent, with his eyes closed, and as Barry  watched he saw two tears fall down the white

cheeks.  It was to him  a  terrible sight.  Never, not even at his mother's grave, had he  seen  his father's tears.  It

was more than he could endure.  He put  his  face down beside his father's on the pillow. 

"Dad, I understand," he whispered.  "I know now what God is like.  He is like you, dad.  He gave himself for

us, as you, dad, have  given  yourself all these years for me." 

He was sobbing, but very quietly. 

"Forgive me, dad; I'm not crying.  I'm just thinking about God and  you.  Oh, dad, you are both wonderful!

Wonderful!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 109



Top




Page No 112


"Barry, my boy, tell them.  Don't worry yourself about them.  Just  tell them about God.  He is responsible for

them, not you." 

"Oh, I will, dad; I promise you I will.  I've been all wrong, but  I'll tell them.  I'll tell them." 

"Thank God, my boy," said his father, with a deep sigh.  "Now I'm  tired.  Say 'Our Father.'" 

Together they whispered those greatest of words in human speech,  those words that have bound heaven to

earth in yearning and in hope  for these two thousand years. 

"Don't move, Barry," whispered his father.  "I like you there." 

With their faces thus together they fell asleep. 

Barry was awakened by his father's voice, clear and strong. 

"Are you there, Barry?" it said. 

"Here, dad, right here!" 

"Good boy.  Good boy.  You won't leave me, Barry.  I mean you don't  need to go?" 

"No, dad, I'll never leave you." 

"Good boy," again murmured his father softly.  "Always a good boy,  always, always" 

He was breathing heavily, long deep breaths. 

"Lift me up, Barry," he said. 

Barry sat on the bed, put his arm around his father's shoulders,  and lifted him up. 

"That's betterhold me closer, Barry  You won't hurt me  Oh,  it's goodto feelyour armsstrong

armsBarry." 

"You made them strong, dad," said Barry, in a clear, steady voice. 

The father nestled his head upon his son's shoulder. 

"Barry," he said in the low tone of one giving a confidence, "don't  ever forgetto thank Godfor these

eighteen yearstogether  You  saved mefrom despaireighteen years agowhen she went away

you  knowand you have beenall the world to memy son" 

"And you to me, dad," said his son in the same steady tone. 

"I've tried all my lifeto make you knowhow I love youbut  somehow I couldn't" 

"But I knew, dad," said Barry.  "All my life I have known." 

"Really?" asked his father.  "IwonderI don't thinkyou quite  know  Ahmy boymy boy  You

don'tknowyoucan't.  Barry,"  he said, "I thinkI'm going outI'm goingoutno, inyour


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE 110



Top




Page No 113


wordmy boyinehBarry?" 

"Yes, dad," said his son.  "Going in.  The inner circle, you know." 

"Theinnercircle" echoed his father.  "Warmthlightlove  NowI thinkI'll sleep  Good

nightBarry  Ohmy boy,you  don't quiteknow  Kiss meBarry" 

Barry kissed him on the lips. 

"So  Goodnight" 

A deep breath he took; anotherBarry waited for the next, but  there was not another. 

He laid his father down and looked into his quiet face, touched  even now with the noble stateliness of death.

He put his arms  about  the unresponsive form, and his face to the cheek still warm. 

"Dad, oh, dad," he whispered.  "Do you knowdo you know  Oh,  God, tell him how I love him.  Tell him!

Tell him!  I never  could." 

The little V. A. D. came softly and stood looking from a distance.  Then coming to the bedside, she laid her

hand upon the head and  then  the heart of the dead man.  Then she drew back, and beckoning  to an  orderly,

they placed a screen about the cot.  She let her  eyes rest  for a moment or two upon the kneeling boy, then

went  softly away. 

Death was to her an all too familiar thing.  She had often seen it  unmoved, but tonight, as she walked away,

the brown eyes could not  hold their tears. 

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD

Barry was standing beside his father's grave, in a little plot in  the Boulogne cemetery set apart for British

officers.  They had,  one  by one, gone away and left him until, alone, he stood looking  down on  the simple

wooden cross on which were recorded the name,  age, and unit  of the soldier with the date of his death, and

underneath the simple  legend, eloquent of heroic sacrifice, "Died  of wounds received in  action." 

Throughout the simple, beautiful burial service he had not been  acutely conscious of grief.  Even now he

wondered that he could  shed  no tears.  Rather did an exultant emotion fill his soul as  he looked  around upon

the little British plot, with its rows of  crosses, and he  was chiefly conscious of a solemn, tender pride  that he

was permitted  to share that glorious offering which his  Empire was making for the  saving of the world.  But,

in this  moment, as he stood there alone  close to his father's grave, and  surrounded by those examples of high

courage and devotion, he  became aware of a mighty change wrought in  him during these last  three days.  He

had experienced a veritable  emancipation of soul.  He was as if he had been born anew. 

The old sense of failure in his work, the feeling of unfitness for  it, and the old dread of it, had been lifted out

of his soul, and  not  only was he a new man, but he felt himself to be charged with a  new  mission, because he

had a new message for his men.  No longer  did he  conceive himself as a moral policeman or religious censor,

whose main  duty it was to stand in judgment over the faults and  sins of the men  of his battalion.  No more

would the burden of his  message be a stern  denunciation of these faults and sins.  Standing  there today, he

could only wonder at his former blindness and  stupidity and pride. 

"Who am I," he said in bitter selfhumiliation, "that I should  judge my comrades?  How little I knew myself." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 111



Top




Page No 114


"A man of God," his superintendent had said in his last letter to  him.  Yes, truly a man of God!  A MAN not

God!  A MAN not to sit in  God's place in judgment upon his fellow sinners, but to show them  God, their

Father. 

Barry thought of the frequent rebukes he had administered to the  officers and men for what he considered to

be their sins.  He  groaned  aloud. 

"God will forgive me, I know," he said.  "But will they?" 

He tried to recall what the burden of his message to his battalion  had been during these past months, but to

him there came no clear  and  distinct memory of aught but warnings and denunciations, with  reference to

what he judged to be faulty in their conduct.  Today  it  seemed to him both sad and terrible. 

How had he so failed and so misconceived the Master's plain  teaching?  He moved among sinners all His

days, not with  denunciations in His heart or voice, but only with pity and love. 

"Be not anxious," He had said.  "Consider the birds of the air.  Not one of them falleth to the ground without

your Father.  How  much  more precious are you than the birds." 

What a message for men going up to face the terrors and perils of  the front line.  "Be not anxious!" 

"I was afraid," his father had said to him.  That to him was  inconceivable.  That that gallant spirit should know

terror seemed  to  him impossible.  Yet even he had said, "I was afraid."  And for  the  loneliness, what a message

he now had.  In their loneliness men  cried  out for the presence of a friend, and the Master had said: 

"When ye pray, pray to your Father.  Your Father knoweth.  When ye  pray, say, 'Our Father'!"  And he had

missed all this.  What a mess  he had made of his work!  How sadly misread his Master's teaching  and

misinterpreted his Master's spirit! 

Barry looked down upon the grave at his feet. 

"But you knew, dad, you knew!" he whispered. 

For the first time since he had become a chaplain, he thought of  his work with gratitude and eagerness.  He

longed to see his men  again.  He had something to tell them.  It was this: that God to  them  was like their

fathers, their mothers, their brothers, their  friends;  only infinitely more loving, and without their faults. 

With his head high and his feet light upon the earth, he returned  to the R. A. M. C. Hospital, where he found

Harry Hobbs, with his  handbag and a letter from his O. C. 

"Take a few days off," said the O. C.  "We all sympathise with you.  We miss you and shall be glad to see you,

but take a few days now  for  yourself." 

Barry was greatly touched, but he had only one desire now, and that  was to return to his unit.  His batman

brought him also an order  from  the Assistant Director of Chaplain Service bidding him report  at the  earliest

moment. 

At Headquarters he learned that the A. D. C. S. had been in  Boulogne, but had gone to Etaples, some thirty or

forty miles  distant, to visit the large hospitals there.  He determined that  tomorrow he would go to Etaples

and report, after which he would  proceed to his battalion. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 112



Top




Page No 115


That evening, he visited the men in the hospital, coming upon many  Canadians whose joy in seeing a

chaplain from their own country  touched Barry to the heart.  He took their messages which he  promised  to

transmit to their folks at home, and left with them  something of  the serene and exultant peace that filled his

own  soul. 

From Ewen Innes and others of the Wapiti draft, he learned  something of his father's work and place in their

battalion.  Soldiers  are not eloquent in speech, but mostly in silence.  Their  words halted  when they came to

speak of their sergeant major's  soldierly  qualities,for his father had become the sergeant major  of the

battalionhis patience, his skill, his courage. 

"He knew his job, sir," said one of them.  "He was always onto it." 

"It was his care of his men that we thought most of," said Ewen,  who continued to relate incidents that had

come under his own  observation of this characteristic, tears the while flowing down  his  cheeks. 

"He never thought of himself, sir.  It was our comfort first.  He  was far more than our sergeant major.  He

watched us like a father;  that's what he did." 

As Barry listened to the soldiers telling of his father in broken  words, and with flowing tears, he almost

wondered at them for their  tears and wondered at himself that he had none.  Tears seemed to be  so much out

of place in telling such a tale as that. 

The train for Etaples leaving at an unearthly hour in the morning,  Barry went to take farewell of the V. A. D.

the night before. 

"That is an awfully early hour," she said, "and, oh, such a  wretched train."  There was in her voice an almost

maternal  solicitude for his comfort. 

"That's nothing," said Barry.  "When I see you here at your  unending work, it makes me feel more and more

like a slacker." 

"Wait for me here a moment," she said, and hurried away to return  shortly in such a glow of excitement as

even her wonted calm and  selfrestraint could not quite hide. 

"I'm going to drive you to Etaples tomorrow in my car.  I know the  matron and some of the nurses in the

American hospital there." 

"You don't mean it," said Barry, "but are you sure it's not a  terrible bore for you?  I am much afraid that I have

been a  nuisance  to you, and you have been so very, very good to me." 

"A bore!" she cried, and the brown eyes were wide open in surprise.  "A bore, and you a Canadian!  Why, you

are one of my brothers'  friends, and besides you seem to me a friend of our family.  My  uncle  Howard, you

know, told me all about you.  Besides," she added  in a  voice of great gentleness, "you remember, I promised." 

Barry caught her hand. 

"I wish I could tell you all I feel about it, but somehow I can't  get the words." 

She allowed her hand to remain in his for a moment or two; then  withdrawing it, said hurriedly, with a slight

colour showing in her  cheeks: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 113



Top




Page No 116


"I think I understand."  Then changing her tone abruptly, and  dropping into the businesslike manner of a V.

A. D., she said,  "So,  we'll go tomorrow.  It will he a splendid run, if the day is  fine.  We had better start by

nine o'clock to give us a long day."  Then, as  if forgetting she was a V. A. D., she added with a little  catch in

her  voice, "Oh, I shall love it!" 

The day proved to be fine,one of those golden days of spring that  have given to the land its name of

"sunny France."  It was a day  for  life and youth and hope.  A day on which war seemed more than  ever a  cruel

outrage upon humanity.  But across the sunniest days,  across the  shining face of France, and across their

spirits, too,  the war cast  its black shadow.  They both, however, seemed to have  resolved that  for that day at

least they would turn their eyes from  that shadow and  let them rest only where the sun was shining. 

The V. A. D. with her mind intent upon her wheel could only  contribute, as her share in the conversation,

descriptive and  somewhat desultory comments upon points of interest along the way.  Barry, because it

harmonised with his mood, talked about his father  and all their years together but ever without obtrusion of

his  grief.  The experiences of the past three days, which they had  shared, seemed  to have established between

them a sense of mutual  confidence and  comradeship such as in ordinary circumstances would  have demanded

years of companionship to effect.  This sense of  sympathy and of  perfect understanding on the part of the girl

at  his side, together  with the fascinating charm of her beauty, and  her sweetness, was to  Barry's stricken heart

like a healing balm to  an aching wound. 

They were in sight of Etaples before Barry imagined they could have  made more than half the journey. 

"Etaples, so soon!  It cannot be!" 

"But it is," said the girl, throwing a bright smile at him, "and  that's the hospital, on the hill yonder, where the

flag is flying." 

"Why," exclaimed Barry, "that's the American flag!  What's the  American flag doing there?" 

"It's flying over an American hospital," said the V. A. D.  "I  think it's such a beautiful flag.  In the breeze, it

seems to me  the  most beautiful of all the flags.  The stripes seem to flow out  from  the stars.  Of course," she

added hurriedly, "the Union Jack  with all  its historic meaning and its mingled crosses, is  splendidly glorious

and is more decorative, but I always think,  when I see those floating  stripes, that the Americans have the most

beautiful flag." 

"I admit," said Barry, "it's a beautiful flag, butwell, I'm a  Britisher, I suppose, and see it with British eyes.

But why is  that  flag flying here in France?  How do the authorities allow  that?  It's  a neutral flagawfully

neutral, too." 

"I understand they have permission from the French authorities to  fly that flag over every American

institution in France.  And you  know," continued the girl with rising enthusiasm, "if they are  neutral, they

have immensely helped us, too, haven't they?in  munitions and that sort of thing." 

"That's true enough," agreed Barry, "and it's all the more  wonderful when you think of the millions of

Germans that they have  in  their country.  I heard a very fine thing, not long ago, from a  friend  of mine.  A

Pittsburgh oil man about to close a deal, with a  traveller, with millions in it, suddenly discovered that his oil

was  to go to the Germans.  At once the deal was off, and, though  the price  was considerably raised, there was,

in his own words,  'Nothing  'doing!'  'No stuff of mine,' he said, 'shall go to help  an enemy of  the AngloSaxon

race.'  That's the way I believe the  real Americans  feel." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 114



Top




Page No 117


"This is a wonderful hospital," said the V. A. D.  "Whenever I see  it, I somehow feel my heart grow warm to

the American people for  the  splendid way in which they have helped poor France, for, you  know, in  the first

months of the war, the French hospitals were  perfectly  ghastly." 

"I know, I know!" cried Barry.  "And the Canadians, too, have  chipped in a bit.  We have a Canadian hospital

in Paris, for the  French, and others are being organised." 

They turned in at the gate and found themselves in a beautiful  quadrangle, set out with grass plots and

flowers and cement walks.  The building itself, an ancient royal palace, had been enlarged by  means of

sunparlours and porches which gave it an air of wonderful  cheeriness and brightness. 

"I will run in and see if any of my friends are about," said the  V. A. D.  "Wait here for me.  Unless you care to

come in," she added. 

"No, I will wait here.  I don't just feel like meeting strangers  but, if there are Canadians in the hospital, I

should like to see  them.  And perhaps you can discover where my chief can be found, if  you don't mind." 

Hardly had she passed within the door, when another car came  swiftly to the gate and drew up a little in front

of Barry's.  A  girl  leaped from the wheel and with a spring in her step, which  spoke of a  bounding vitality, ran

up the steps. 

What thought caught her it is difficult to say, but on the topmost  step she spun around and looked straight

into Barry's eyes. 

"Paula!" he shouted, and was out of the car and at the foot of the  steps, with hand outstretched, when, with a

single touch of her  foot  to the steps, she was at him, with both hands reaching for  his. 

"Barry, oh, Barry!  It can't be you!" she panted.  Her face went  red, then white, then red again.  "Oh, it's better

than a drink to  see you.  Whence, how, why, whither?  Oh, never mind answering,"  she  went on.  "It's enough

to see you." 

A step behind her diverted her attention from Barry.  Barry ran up  the steps, and taking the V. A. D. by the

hand, led her down. 

"I want you to meet a friend of mine," he said and introduced  Paula. 

Paula's eyes, keen as a knifepoint, were upon the V. A. D.'s face. 

"I'm glad to know you," she said frankly, offering her hand.  "Principally," she added, with a little laugh,

"because you know  Barry." 

The V. A. D. bowed with the slight reserve characteristic of her,  and took Paula's hand. 

"I, too, am pleased," she said, "to meet a friend of Captain  Dunbar."  Then she added with increased

cordiality, "and I'm glad  to  meet an American in France.  I know your matron, and some of the  nurses." 

"Good!" cried Paula.  "Now, then, you'll both of you take lunch  with me." 

The V. A. D. demurred. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 115



Top




Page No 118


"Of course you will," cried Paula.  "Oh, Barry, I'm just ready to  die from seeing you again.  Come along!" she

cried, impulsively,  catching the V. A. D. by the arm.  "Come along and park your  buzzwagon here beside

mine." 

She ran to her car, sprang in and whirled it into place before the  V. A. D. had hers well started. 

Barry waited where they had left him.  The sudden appearing of  Paula had stirred within him depths of feeling

that almost  overpowered him.  His mind was far away in Athabasca, once more he  was seeing the dark pool,

the swiftly flowing water, the campfire,  and his father bending over it.  His heart was quivering as if a  hand

had been rudely thrust into a raw wound in it. 

The V. A. D. held Paula a few moments beside her car, speaking  quickly and earnestly.  When they rejoined

Barry, Paula's eyes were  soft with unshed tears, and her voice was very gentle. 

"I know, Barry," she said.  "Miss Vincent just told me.  Oh, what  terrible changes this war brings to us all.  We

see so many sad  things here every day.  It's terribly sad for you, Barry." 

"Yes, it is sad, Paula, and it is going to be lonely.  You have  brought back to me that bright day on the

Athabasca.  But," he  added  earnestly, "after all, in this war everything personal is so  small.  Besides, he was so

splendid, you know, and the boys told me  he played  the game up there right to the end.  So I'm not going to

shame him; at  least, I'm trying not to." 

But bright as was Barry's smile, Paula caught the quivering of his  lips, and turned quickly away from him. 

After a moment or two of silence, she cried, with her old  impulsiveness, "Now you will both lunch with me.

I'm the  quartermaster of this outfit, and have a small parlour of my own.  We  shall have a lovely, cosy time,

just Miss Vincent, you and  myself  together." 

"But," replied the V. A. D., "I have just arranged with the matron  to lunch with her." 

"Oh, rubbish!  I'll cut that out, all right.  What's the use of  being quartermaster if I can't arrange a lunch party

to suit  myself?" 

Still the V. A. D. demurred.  With her, breaking an engagement for  lunch was a serious affairwas indeed

taking a liberty which no  English girl would think of doing. 

"Oh, that's nonsense!" cried Paula.  "I'll make it perfectly all  right.  Look here," she cried, wheeling upon the

V. A. D., "you  Britishers are so terribly correct.  I'll show you a little  shirtsleeve diplomacy.  Besides, if you

don't come in on this you  can  have the matron, and I'll take Barry," she said with a  threatening  smile.  "Watch

me!" she added, as she ran away. 

"What a splendid girl!" said the V. A. D.  "And that captivating  American way she has.  Perfectly ripping, I

call it.  I do hope we  shall be friends." 

In a short time Paula came rushing back into the room, announcing  triumphantly that arrangements had been

made according to her  programme, with the matron in hearty accord. 

"And she sends her love," she said to the V. A. D.  "She would not  have you on any account miss this party.

She is desperately  grieved  that she cannot accept my invitation to join us.  Of  course, I knew  the old dear

couldn't.  And we are to meet her  afterwards." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 116



Top




Page No 119


The little lunch party was, on the whole, a success.  To the  conversation Paula contributed the larger part,

Barry doing his  best  to second her.  But in spite of his heroic efforts, his mind  would  escape him, far away to

the sunny Athabasca plains, and the  gleaming  river and the smooth slipping canoe, and then with swift

transition to  the little British plot in the cemetery at Boulogne. 

At such times, Paula, reading his face, would momentarily falter in  her gay talk, only to begin again with

renewed vivacity.  On one  topic, however, she had no difficulty in holding Barry's attention.  It was when she

told of the organising and despatching of the  American Red Cross units to France, and more especially of her

own  unit, organised and financed by her father. 

"I am awfully sorry he is not here today.  He would have loved to  have seen you again, Barry." 

"And I to have seen him," said Barry.  "He is a big man, and it is  fine of him to do this thing.  It's just like the

big, generous  hearted Americansthey are so unstinted in their sympathies, and  they back them up for all

they are worth." 

"And how efficient they are," added the V. A. D. in warm  admiration.  "This hospital, you know," turning to

Barry, "is perfectly  wonderful.  Its equipment!  Its appliances!  I have often heard our O.  C. speak  in the most

rapturous envy of the Etaples American Red Cross  unit." 

"And why should not it be?" cried Paula.  "It's a question of money  after all.  We are not at war.  We put in a

few little hospitals  here  in France.  We have more money thrown at us than we can use.  And you  talk about

efficiency," she added, turning to the V. A. D.  "Good Lord!  My pater has just come back from London,

where he was  rubbering  around with lords and dukes and things in a disgustingly  unAmerican  way I told

him, and now he raves from morning until  night over the  efficiency of the British.  He's been allowed to see

some of their  munition works, you know.  I simply had to declaim  the American  Declaration of Independence

to him three times a day  to revive his  drooping Democratic sentiments, and I had to sew Old  Glory on to his

pajamas so that he might dream proper American  dreams.  No, to tell  you the truth," here Paula's voice took a

deeper note, "every last  American of us here in France is hot with  humiliation and rage at his  country's

attitude,monkeying with  those babykilling, womanraping  devils." 

As she ended, her voice shook with passion, her cheeks were pale,  and in her eyes shone two bright tears.

Impulsively the V. A. D.  rose from her place, ran around to Paula, and putting her arm  around  her neck, said: 

"Oh, I do thank you, and I love you for your words," while Barry  stood at attention, as if in the presence of

his superior officer.  "I  salute you," he said with grave earnestness.  "You worthily  represent  your brave and

generous people." 

"Oh, darn it all!" cried Paula, brushing away her tears.  "I'm a  fool, but you don't know how we Americans

feelreal Americans, I  mean, not the yellow hyphenated breed." 

After lunch, Barry went to look up his chief, the assistant  director of chaplain service, while Paula took

charge of the  V. A.  D., saying: 

"Run away, Barry, and see your Brass Hat.  I'll show Miss Vincent  how a quartermaster's department of a real

hospital should be run." 

His hour with the A. D. C. S. was a most stimulating experience for  Barry.  He found himself at once in touch

with not an official  thinking in terms of military regulations and etiquette, but a  soldier and a man.  For the A.

D. C. S. was both.  Through all the  terrible days at Ypres, where the Canadians, in that welter of gas  and fire

and blood, had won their imperishable fame as fighting  men,  he had been with them, sharing their dangers


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 117



Top




Page No 120


and ministering  to their  wants with his brother officers of the fighting line.  Physically an  unimpressive figure,

small and slight, yet he seemed  charged with  concentrated energy waiting release. 

As Barry listened to his words coming forth in snappy, jerking  phrases, he was fascinated by the bulldog jaw

and piercing eyes of  the little man.  In brief, comprehensive, vigorous sentences, he  set  forth his ideals for the

chaplain service in the Canadian army. 

"Three things," he said, "I tell my men, should mark the Canadian  chaplain service.  The first, Unityunity

among themselves, unity  with the other departments of the army.  Two words describe our

chaplainsChristian and Canadians.  I am an Anglican myself, but  on  this side of the channel there are no

Anglican, no Presbyterian,  no  Methodist chaplains, only Christian and Canadian chaplains.  I  have  had to

fight for this with high officials both in the army and  in the  church.  I have won out, and while I'm here this

will be  maintained.  The second thing is Spirituality.  The Chaplain must  be a Christian  man, living in touch

with the Divinealive toward  God.  Third,  Humanity.  He must be 'touched with the feeling of our  infirmity,'

sharing the experiences of the men, getting to know  their feelings,  their fears, their loneliness, their misery,

their  anxieties, and God  knows they have their anxieties for themselves  and for their folks at  home." 

As Barry listened, he heard again his father's voice.  "They need  you.  They are afraid.  They are lonely.  They

need God." 

"And remember," said the A. D. C. S., as he rose to close the  interview, "that I am at your back.  If you have

any difficulty,  let  me know.  If you are wrong, I promise to tell you.  If you are  right,  I'll back you up.  Now, let

us go and look over the  hospital.  There  are some of our fellows there.  If you feel like  saying anything in  the

convalescent ward, all right, but don't let  it worry you." 

As they went through the wards, Barry could not but notice how the  faces of the patients brightened as his

chief approached, and how  their eyes followed him after he had passed. 

They moved slowly through those long corridors, sanctified by the  sufferings and griefs and hidden tears of

homesick and homelonging  men, to many of whom it seemed that the best of life was past. 

When they had gone the length of the convalescent ward, the  A. D.  C. S. turned and, after getting permission

of the medical  superintendent, briefly introduced Barry to the wounded men, as "a  man from the wild and

woolly Canadian west, on his way up the line,  and therefore competent to tell us about the war, and especially

when  it will end." 

Beside them stood a piano, and on it lay a violin in its open case.  Barry took up the violin, fingered its strings

in an absentminded  way, and said: 

"I don't know anything about the war, men, but I do know when it  will end, and that is when we lick those

Huns good and plenty, as  our  American friends would say," bowing to the doctor at his side.  "I'm an  awfully

poor speaker, boys," he continued in a confidential  tone, "but  I can make this thing talk a bit." 

Without further preface he began to play.  He had not held a  violin in his hands since he had played with his

father at home.  Unconsciously his fingers wandered into the familiar notes of  Handel's Largo.  He found the

violin to possess an exceptionally  rich  and pure quality of tone. 

As he began to play, a door opened behind them, admitting Paula,  the V. A. D. and two or three young

doctors, who took their places  in  the corner about the piano. 

"Do you know this?" whispered Paula to the V. A. D., as she caught  the strains of the Largo. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 118



Top




Page No 121


"Yes.  I used to play it with my brother." 

"Go to it, then," said Paula. 

But the V. A. D. hesitated. 

"Go on!  Look at the boys, and look at his face." 

The V. A. D. glanced about the room at the lines of pale and  patient faces, which, in spite of the marks of

pain, were so  pathetically and resolutely bright.  Then she glanced at Barry's  face.  He had forgotten all about

his surroundings, and his face  was  illumined with the light from those hidden lamps that burn deep  in the  soul

of genius, a light enriched and warmed by the glow of a  heart in  sympathy with its kind. 

In obedience to Paula's command and a little push upon her  shoulder, the V. A. D. sat down at the piano and

touched the notes  softly, feeling for the key, then fell in with the violin. 

At the first note, Barry turned sharply about and as she found her  key and began to follow, he stepped back to

her side.  Immediately,  from his instrument, there seemed to flow a richer, fuller stream  of  melody.  From the

solemn and stately harmonies of the Largo, he  passed  to those old familiar airs, that never die and never lose

their power  over the human heart"Annie Laurie" and "Ben Bolt,"  and thence to a  rollicking French

chanson, which rather bowled over  his accompanist,  but only for the first time though, for she had  the rare

gift of  improvisation, and sympathetic accompaniment. 

Then with a full arm bowing, he swept them into the fiercely  majestic strains of the "Marseillaise," bringing

the bluecoated  orderlies about the door, and such patients as could stand, and the  group about the piano to

rigid attention.  From the "Marseillaise"  it  was easy to pass into the noble simplicity of his own national  song,

"Oh, Canada!" where again his accompanist was quite able to  follow,  and thence to the Empire's National

Anthem, which had for  a hundred  years or more lifted to their feet British soldiers and  sailors the  world over. 

As he drew his bow over the last chord, Paula stepped to his side,  and whispered in his ear: 

"Where's America in this thing?" 

Without an instant's break in the music, he dropped into a  whimsical and really humorous rendering of

"Yankee Doodle."  Quickly  the V. A. D. moved from the stool, caught Paula and thrust  her into  the vacant

place.  Then together the violin and piano  rattled into a  fantastic and brilliant variation of that famous and

trifling air.  Again, with a sudden change of mood, Barry swung  into that old song  of the homesick plantation

negro, "The Suwanee  River"a simple enough  air, but under the manipulations of a  master lending itself to

an  interpretation of the deep and tender  emotions which in that room and  in that company of French, British,

Canadian, American folk were  throbbing in a common longing for the  old home and the "old folks at  home."

Before he had played the air  once through, the greyhaired  American doctor was openly wiping his  eyes, and

his colleagues looking  away from each other, ashamed of  the tears that did them only honour. 

Paula's flushed face and flashing eyes were eloquent of her deep  emotion, while at her side the V. A. D. stood

quiet, controlled,  but  with a glow of tender feeling shining in her face and in her  soft  brown eyes. 

Not long did Barry linger amid those deeps of emotion, but  straightening his figure to its full height, and

throwing up his  head, he, in full octaves, played the opening bars of what has come  to be known as America's

national anthem, "The Star Spangled  Banner." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 119



Top




Page No 122


Instantly the A. D. C. S., the orderlies about the door, the  wounded French, British and Canadian soldiers that

could stand,  sprang to attention and so remained while the violin, with its  piano  accompaniment, throbbed

forth the sonorous chords.  With the  last bar,  Barry dropped his bow to his side, but held the violin  still at his

chin.  Not one of that company moved, but stood with  their eyes  fastened upon his face.  After a moment's

pause, he  quietly lifted his  bow again, and on the silence, still throbbing  to the strains of that  triumphant

martial air, there stole out  pure, sweet, as from some  ethereal source, the long drawn,  trembling notes of that

old sacred  melody, which, sounding over men  and women in their hours of terror  and anguish and despair,

has  lifted them to peace and comfort and  hope"Nearer, My God, to  Thee." 

The tension which had held the company was relaxed, the wounded  men sank to their seats, the A. D. C. S.

removed his hat, which,  according to military regulations, he had worn to this moment.  On all  sides, heads

dropped in an attitude of reverence, and so  continued  until Barry had drawn the last deep, vibrating note to  a

close. 

When he had laid his violin in its case, the old American doctor  came forward, with his hand extended. 

"Let me, as an American and a Christian, thank you, sir," he said. 

One by one the group of Americans came to shake hands with him, the  last being Paula, who held his hand a

moment and said softly: 

"Thank you, Barry.  I believe all that stuff now.  I have learned  it here." 

The last of all to come was the V. A. D.  Shyly, with a smile  radiant through her tears, she offered her hand,

saying:  "Thank  you!  He would have liked that, I know." 

"Captain Dunbar, where's your own violin?"  The abrupt tone of the  A. D. C. S. startled them all. 

"At home, sir.  I didn't think a chaplain would need one." 

"Whose violin in this?" asked the A. D. C. S. in his brusque  manner. 

"I rather think this is mine," said one of the doctors. 

"Will you sell it?  I'll buy it from you, at any price you say.  I  want it for him." 

"You can't buy it, colonel," said the doctor.  "It's his now.  I  never knew it had all that heart stuff in it." 

He took up the violin, and handed it to Barry.  But Barry drew back  in astonishment.  Then the old doctor

came forward. 

"No, Travis," he said, "we'll do better than that.  What did your  fiddle cost?" 

"A hundred and fifty dollars, I think." 

"Travis, this company of Americans, representing their country here  in France, as a token of their sympathy

with the allies and their  sacred cause, and of gratitude to you, sir," bowing to Barry, "will  buy this instrument

and present it to this young man, on condition  that he repeat in similar circumstances the service he has

rendered  this afternoon.  Am I right?" he asked, looking about him. 

"You bet you are!  Right you are!" said the doctors. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 120



Top




Page No 123


"Oh, doctor, you are a dear old thing!" exclaimed Paula. 

Barry stood holding the instrument in his hand, unable to find his  voice.  The A. D. C. S. came to his aid. 

"In the name of my chaplain, and in the name of thousands of  Canadian soldiers to whom I promise you he

will bring the blessing  that he has brought us this afternoon, I thank you for this very  beautiful and very

characteristic American act." 

"Well," said the old doctor, "I don't know how you folks feel, but  I feel as if I had been to church." 

"Now, sir," said the A. D. C. S. to Barry, in his military tone, "I  am organising a company of musicians who

will go through our camps  and help the boys as you have helped us today.  I would like you  to  be one of

them.  What do you say?" 

"Oh, sir," exclaimed Barry hastily, laying the violin upon the  piano and standing back from it, "don't make

that an order, sir.  I  want to stay with my men." 

His face was quivering with deep emotion.  The A. D. C. S. looked  into the quivering face. 

"All right, Dunbar," he said, with a little laugh, and putting his  hand on Barry's shoulder.  "I guess you are all

right." 

"Some boy!  What?" said the American doctor.  "Here I think you had  better take your fiddle along," handing

Barry the violin.  "It  doesn't belong to any one in this bunch." 

The burst of laughter that followed, all out of proportion to the  humour of the remark, revealed the tensity of

the strain through  which they had passed. 

Through the little town of Etaples they drove together in almost  complete silence, until they had emerged into

the country, lying  spread out about them in all the tender beauty of the soft spring  evening.  As the car moved

through the sweet silence of the open  fields, the V. A. D. said softly: 

"Oh, Captain Dunbar, I" 

"My name is Barry," he said gently. 

A quick flush came into the beautiful face and a soft light to the  brown eyes, as she answered: 

"And mine is Phyllis."  Then she hurried to add, "I was going to  say that you helped me this afternoon as

nothing has since my dear  brothers went." 

"Thank you, Phyllis.  What you have been to me through all these  days, I wish I could tell, but I can't find

words." 

Then they rode together in silence that was more eloquent than  any  words of theirs could be.  At length Barry

burst forth  enthusiastically: 

"Those Americans!  What a beautiful and gracious act of kindness  that was to me." 

"Oh," replied Phyllis, with answering enthusiasm, "aren't they  fine!  That was perfectly ripping of them." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD 121



Top




Page No 124


CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING

Barry's return to the battalion was like a coming home.  In the  mess there was no demonstration of sympathy

with him in his loss,  but  the officers took occasion to drop in casually with an  interesting bit  of news, seeking

to express, more or less  awkwardly, by their presence  what they found it impossible to  express in actual

words. 

It was to Barry an experience as new as it was delightful.  Hitherto, as far as any real fellowship was

concerned he had lived  a  life of comparative isolation among his fellow officers, and  while  they were careful

to preserve the conventions and courtesies  imposed  by their mutual relations, he had ever been made to feel

that in that  circle he was an outsider. 

Among the officers who came to call upon him, none surprised him  more than did Major Bayne.  While that

officer had always been  careful to maintain an attitude toward him, at once correct and  civil, there had never

been any approach to friendliness.  As a  matter of fact, Major Bayne was too entirely occupied with his own

interests to have either the leisure or the inclination for  anything  but a casual concern for the chaplain and his

affairs.  That was not to  be wondered at.  Life in the army, notwithstanding  all its loyalties  and its fine

unselfishnesses, is, in some of its  phases, a brutally  selfcentred form of existence.  Its routine  consists in the

continual  performance of "duties" under an  authority ruthless in its exactions  and relentless in its  penalties.

Only after months of experience of  its iron rigidity  does the civilian, accustomed as he is to

selfdetermination, with  a somewhat easygoing regard for the  conventions of his community,  arrive at the

state of mind in which  unconsciously and as a matter  of second nature he estimates the  quality of the most

trivial act  by its relation to the standard set by  the Military High Command.  Like a spectre does that solemn,

impalpable, often perfectly  unreasonable omniscient and omnipotent  entity lurk in the shadow  ready to reach

out a clutching hand, and for  some infraction of  regulations, wilful or inadvertent, hale the  luckless and

shivering  defaulter to judgment.  It therefore behooves a  man to take heed to  himself and to his ways, for, with

the best  intention, he may  discover that he has been guilty of an infraction,  not of a  regulation found in K. R.

O., with which he has painfully  made  himself familiar and which he has diligently exercised himself to

observe, but of one of those seventeen hundred and sixtynine  "instructions" and "informations" which from

time to time have  appeared in those sacred writings known as Army, Divisional,  Brigade,  or Battalion Orders. 

In consequence, an officer with a conscience toward his duty, or an  ambition for promotion, gives himself so

completely to the business  of "watching his step" that only by a definite exercise of his  altruistic faculties can

he indulge himself in the commendable  civilian luxury of caring for his neighbour. 

And so it came about that Major Bayne, possessing in a large  measure the quality of "canniness"

characteristic of his racea  quality which for the benefit of the uninitiated Saxon it may be  necessary to

define as being a judicious blending of shrewdness and  caution,and being as well, again after the manner

of his race,  ambitious for his own advancement, and, furthermore, being a man of  conscience, had been so

entirely engrossed in the absorbing  business  of "watching his step" that he had paid slight heed to the  affairs

of  any other officer, and least of all to those of the  chaplain, whose  functions in the battalion he had regarded,

it must  be confessed, as  more or less formal, if not merely decorative. 

But, in spite of all this, in the major the biggest thing was his  heart, which, however, true to his race type

again, he kept stored  in  the deepest recesses of his system.  To "touch" the major's  "heart"  was an operation of

more than ordinary difficulty.  It was  that very  thing, however, which the letter to the battalion  Commanding

Officer  from the A. D. C. S. had achieved.  The effect of  this letter upon the  members of the mess, and most

especially upon  the junior major in  regard to their relation to their chaplain, was  revolutionary.  Hence  the

major's visit to Barry upon the evening of  his return. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 122



Top




Page No 125


It was with an unusually cordial handshake that he greeted the  chaplain. 

"We are glad to have you back with us, Captain Dunbar," he said.  "We missed you, and we have discovered

that we need you.  Things  have  been moving while you were away.  This battalion is undergoing  a

transformation.  The O. C. is tightening down the screws of  discipline.  He sees, and we all are beginning to

see, that we are  up  against a different proposition from what we had imagined, and  right  here, Captain

Dunbar, I want to say for myself, and I believe  for the  rest of the boys, that we have not given you a square

deal." 

His attitude and his words astounded Barry. 

"Don't say that, major," he said, in a voice husky with emotion.  "Don't say that.  I have been all wrong.  I am

not going to talk  about it, but I am awfully glad to get a second chance." 

"If you need a second chance, Pilot," said the major, for the first  time using the friendly western sobriquet,

"believe me, you'll get  it." 

The major sat down, pulled out his pipe, and began to impart some  interesting bits of news. 

"Things are moving rather swiftly with us these days.  There are  many changes taking place.  Duff has gone

permanently to the  transport, and is in the way for a captaincy.  Hopeton has gone for  a  machine gun course.

Sally is to be company commander in his  place.  Booth takes charge of the bombers.  Your friend, Sergeant

Knight, is  slated for a commission.  He is doing awfully well with  the  signallers, and, by the way, there is

something I want to show  you  tomorrow, something quite unique and remarkable, our new  instructor  in

bayonet fighting.  Do you know we were rather stuck  on our bayonet  fighting, but he has made the boys feel

that they  didn't know anything  about bayonet fighting, or, for that matter,  about anything else.  I  think you will

enjoy him.  The boys are all  up on their toes.  There  is nothing like the scream of a live shell  'coming in' to

speed up the  training." 

When the major had departed, he left Barry in a maze of wonder and  gratitude.  That the battalion were glad

to have him back, that all  the old feeling of latent hostility of which he had been conscious  was gone, and that

they felt that they really needed him stirred in  his heart a profound sense of humility and gratitude. 

Late as it was he felt he must go out for a stroll about the camp  just to see the men and give them greeting. 

Wherever he went he was greeted with a new respect and a new  cordiality.  It was as if he had passed through

some mystic  initiation ceremony and had been admitted into a magic circle of  comradeship with the common

soldier, than which no privilege is  more  dearly coveted by the officers, from the colonel himself to  the

youngest sub, and which is indeed, in the last analysis, the  sine qua  non of effective leadership. 

As Barry was passing the sergeants' messroom the door opened and  there came out Sergeant Major

McFetteridge himself, with two others  of the mess. 

"Good evening, sergeant major," said Barry quietly passing on his  way. 

"Good evening, sir," said the sergeant major with his usual stiff  salute.  "Oh, it's you, sir," he cried as the light

fell upon  Barry's  face.  "We're glad to see you back, sir." 

"Thank you, sergeant major," replied Barry, offering his hand, "and  I'm glad to be back with you all again." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 123



Top




Page No 126


"Thank you, sir.  I assure you we're glad to have you.  Won't you  come in, sir?  The boys will all want to see

you," and so saying  the  sergeant major threw wide open the door. 

Nowhere is class privilege more appreciated and more jealously  guarded than in the sergeants' mess.  It is the

most enclusive of  all  military circles.  Realising this, Barry was glad to accept the  invitation.  The hut was

filled with sergeants in easy deshabille,  smoking, lounging, playing various games. 

"The chaplain, boys," announced the sergeant major, and instantly  every man was on his feet, and at

attention. 

"It's all right, boys," said the sergeant major.  "The chaplain has  just dropped in for a minute for a friendly

call, and we want you  to  feel, sir," he added, for the sergeant major loved a little  ceremonial, "that we

respectfully sympathise with you in your loss,  and that we consider ourselves honoured by your presence here

tonight." 

Barry was so deeply touched by the unexpected warmth of their  welcome, and by the reference to his recent

sorrow, that he could  not  trust himself to speak.  Without a word he passed around the  group,  shaking hands

with each man in turn.  By the time he had  finished the  round, he had his voice in control, and said: 

"Sergeant major, this is very kind of you.  I thank you for this  welcome, and I am grateful for your sympathy."

He hesitated a  moment  or two; then, as if he heard his father's voice, "Tell them!  Tell  them!  They don't know

Him," he added:  "And, sergeant major,  if you  will allow me, I have something I want to say to all the  men

when I  get a chance.  I cannot say it all tonight to the  sergeants, but this  much I would like to say:  That since

I saw  you, I believe I have got  a new idea of my work in the battalion.  I got it from a sergeant major  whose

men told me that he was a fine  soldier and a brave man, and more  than that, that he was 'like a  father to them.'

That, sergeant major,  was my own father.  From  him I learned that my job was not to jump on  men for their

faults,  but to help men to know God, who is our Father  in Heaven, and, men,  I think if I can do this, I shall

count myself  happy, for He is  worth knowing, and we all need Him." 

His words gripped them hard.  Then he added, "Before I say 'good  night,' may I have the privilege of leading

you to Him in words  that  you have all learned at your mother's knee?"  Then simply he  spoke the  words of

that immortal prayer, the men joining in low and  reverent  voices. 

After the prayer, he quietly said, "Good night!" and was passing  out of the hut.  He had not got to the door,

however, when the  sergeant major's voice arrested him. 

"Sir, on behalf of the sergeants, I thank you for coming in and I  thank you for your words.  You have done us

all good." 

The following morning, a sergeant from a neighbouring battalion,  visiting the transport lines, and observing

Barry passing along  with  Major Bayne on the battalion parade ground, took occasion to  remark: 

"That is your padre, ain't it?  He checks you fellows up rather  short, don't he?" 

"Yes, that is our padre, or Pilot, as we like to call him," was  Sergeant Mackay's answer, "but I want to tell

you that he can just  check us up until our heads touch the crupper, and it's nobody's  damned business but our

own." 

"Well, you needn't get so blasted hot over it.  I ain't said  nothing against your padre that I haven't heard from

your own  fellows." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 124



Top




Page No 127


"That's all right, sergeant.  That was before we got to the war.  I'm not huntin' for any trouble with anybody,

but if any one wants  to  start up anything with any one, sergeant, in this battalion, he  knows  how to do it." 

And this came to be recognised as an article in the creed of the  sergeant's mess. 

The bayonetfighting squad were engaged in some preliminary drill  of the more ordinary kind when Major

Bayne and the chaplain arrived  on the ground. 

"We'll just watch the little beggar a while from here and go up  later," said the major. 

As Barry watched the drill sergeant on his job, it seemed to him  that he had never seen a soldier work before.

In figure, in pose,  in  action there was a perfection about him that awakened at once  admiration and envy.

Below the average height, yet not  insignificant, erect, without exaggeration, precise in movement  without

angularity, swift in action without haste, he was indeed a  joy to behold. 

"Now, did you ever see anything like that?" enquired the major,  after their eyes had followed the evolutions

of the drill sergeant  for a time. 

"Never," said Barry, "nor do I hope to again.  He is aI was going  to say dream, but he's no dream.  He's

much too wide awake for  that.  He's a poem; that's what he is." 

Back and forth, about and around, stepped the little drill  sergeant, a finished example of precise, graceful

movement.  He was  explaining in clean cut, and evidently memorised speech the details  of the movements he

wished executed, but through his more formal  and  memorised vocabulary his native cockney would

occasionally  erupt,  adding vastly to the pungency and picturesqueness of his  speech. 

"He knows we are here all right," said the major, "but he would not  let on if it were King George himself.  I'll

bet you a month's pay,  though, that we can't get one foot beyond what he considers the  saluting point before

he comes to attention, and as for his salute,  there is nothing like it in the whole Canadian army.  Talk about a

poem, his salute has Shakespeare faded.  Now he's going to move  them  off.  Watch and listen!" 

"Yeaouw!" came the longdrawn cry, fiercely threatening,  representing in English speech the word

"squad."  Then followed an  expletive, "Yun!" which for explosive quality made a rifle crack  seem  a drawl,

and which appeared to release in the men a hidden  spring  drawn to its utmost tension.  The slack and sagging

line  leaped into a  rigid unit, of breathless, motionless humanity. 

"Aweouaw!" a prolonged vocalisation, expressive of an infinite  and gentle pity, and interpreted to the

initiated ear to mean "As  you  were!" released the rigid line to its former sagging state. 

"Naw then," said the voice in a semiundertone, slow and tense,  "this ain't no arter dinner bloomin' siester.

A little snapple  ease!"  The last word in a sharply rising inflection, tightening up  the spring again for the

explosive "Yeaouwyun!"  (Squad  attention.)  "Aweouryun!!!  Aweouryun!!!" 

Without warning came the commands, repeating "As you were!"  "Attention!"  He walked up and down before

the rigid line, looking  them over and remarking casually, 

"Might be a little worse," adding as an afterthought, "perhaps!"  After which, with a sharp right turn, and a

quick march, he himself  leading with a step of cleancut, easy grace, he moved them to the  bayonetfighting

ground. 

"By Jove!" breathed Barry.  "Did you ever imagine anything like  that?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 125



Top




Page No 128


"The result of ten years in the regular army," said the major. 

"It's almost worth it," answered Barry. 

Arriving at the bayonetfighting ground, the little sergeant major  put the squad through their manual as if

they had been recruits, to  a  running comment of biting pleasantries.  After bringing them to  attention, he

walked slowly down the line, then back again, and  remarked after due deliberation: 

"I have seen worsenot often"  Then, in a tone of resignation,  he gave the order: 

"Stanayeh!!!" 

The men "stood at ease," and then "stood easy." 

"Now, then," said the major, "we'll steal in on him, if we can."  They moved forward toward the little sergeant

major, who remained  studying the opposite horizon in calm abstraction until their toes  had reached a certain

line, when, like the crack of a whip, there  came once more the longdrawn cry with its explosive termination: 

"Yeaouw!Yun!!!" with the result that the line was again thrown  into instantaneous, breathless and

motionless rigidity. 

Toward the advancing officers the sergeant major threw himself into  a salute with one smooth, unbroken

movement of indescribable grace  and finish. 

"Good morning, sergeant major," said Major Bayne.  "Captain Dunbar,  this is Sergeant Major Hackett." 

Again came the salute, with a barely perceptible diminution of  snap, as befitted a less formal occasion. 

"Sergeant major," said Barry, "I would give a great deal to be able  to do that." 

"Wot's that, sir?" enquired the sergeant major. 

"That salute of yours." 

"Quite easy wen you knaow 'ow!" permitting himself a slight smile. 

"You are doing some bayonetfighting, I see, sergeant major," said  Major Bayne. 

"Yes, sir, goin' to do a bit, sir," replied the sergeant major. 

"Very well, carry on!" 

And the sergeant major "carried on," putting into his work and  into his every movement and utterance an

unbelievable amount of  concentrated and even vicious energy. 

On the bayonetfighting ground, the first line of the enemy was  represented by sacks stuffed with straw,

hung upon a frame, the  second by stuffed sacks deposited on the parapet of a trench.  In  bayonetfighting the

three points demanding special emphasis are  the  "guarding" of the enemy's attack, a swift bayonet thrust and

an  equally swift recovery, each operation, whether in case of a living  enemy or in the stuffed effigy, being

attended with considerable  difficulty.  Barry was much interested in the psychological element  introduced into

the exercises by the drill master. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 126



Top




Page No 129


"You must halways keep in mind that the henemy is before you.  It's  important that you should visualise your

foe.  The henemy is hever  before you.  Anything beind a British soldier won't trouble  anybody,  and you are

to remember that hit's either you or 'im." 

In moments of rapid action the sergeant major evidently had  difficulty with his aspirates. 

"The suspended sacks before you represent the henemy.  You are to  treat 'em so." 

Having got his line within striking distance of the swinging sacks,  the exercise was directed by two

commands, "On guard!" and "Point!"  the first of which was supposed to knock off the enemy's thrust,  and  the

second to drive the bayonet home into his vitals, after  which,  without command, there must be a swift

recovery. 

"Naw then, "Hngah!Pint!!!" 

For some moments, in response to these orders, the squad practised  "guarding" and "pointing," not, however,

to the complete satisfaction  of the sergeant. 

"Naw, then, number five, stick it hinto 'im.  Ye ain't 'andin' a  lidy an unbreller!" 

Another attempt by number five being still suggestive of the  amenities proper to a social function, the

sergeant major stepped  up  to the overgentle soldier. 

"Naw, then," he said, "hobserve!  There's my henemy.  See 'is hugly  mug.  Hngah!  Pint!!!" 

At the words of command, the sergeant major threw himself into his  guard and attacked with such appalling

ferocity as must have  paralysed an ordinary foe, sending his bayonet clean through to his  guard, and

recovering it with a clean, swift movement. 

Having secured a fairly satisfactory thrust, the sergeant major  devoted his attention to the recovery of the

bayonet. 

"Fetch it hout!" he cried fiercely.  "There's another man comin'.  Fetch it hout!  Ye may fetch 'is spinial column

with it.  No  matter,  'e won't need it." 

The final act in this gruesome drama was the attack upon the second  line represented by the sacks lying upon

the parapet of the trench  beyond.  The completed action thus included the guard, thrust,  recovery, the leap

forward past the swinging line of sacks, and a  second thrust at the figure prone upon the parapet, with a

second  recovery of the weapon, this second recovery being effected by  stamping the foot upon the transfixed

effigy, and jerking back the  bayonet with a violent upward movement. 

This last recovery appeared to cause number five again some  difficulty. 

"Now then, number five, put a little aight (hate) into it.  Stamp  your bleedin' 'obnyles (hobnails) on his fice,

and fetch it hout!  This wye!"  As he took the rifle from number five, the sergeant  major's face seemed to be

transformed into a living embodiment of  envenomed hate, his attack, thrust, recovery, gathering in  intensity

until with unimaginable fury he leaped upon the prostrate  figure,  drove his bayonet through to the hilt,

stamped his hobnails  upon the  transfixed enemy, jerked his weapon out, and stood  quivering, ready  for any

foe that dared to approach.  The savage  ferocity of his face,  the fierce energy in his every movement,

culminating in that last  vicious leap and stamp, altogether  constituted such a dramatic and  realistic

representation of actual  fighting that the whole line burst  into a very unsoldierly but very  hearty applause,


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING 127



Top




Page No 130


which, however, the  sergeant major immediately and  sternly checked. 

"What do you think of that?" enquired the major.  "Isn't he a  scream?" 

"He is perfectly magnificent," said Barry, "and, after all, he is  right in his psychology.  There is no possibility

of training men  to  fight, without putting the 'aight into it!'" 

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR

The period of intensive training was drawing to a close.  The  finishing touches in the various departments that

had come to be  considered necessary in modern warfare had been given.  With the  "putting on the lacquer" the

fighting spirit of the men had been  sharpened to its keenest edge.  They were all waiting impatiently  for  the

order to "go up."  The motives underlying that ardour of  spirit  varied with the temperament, disposition and

education of  the soldier.  There were those who were eager to "go up" to prove  themselves in  that deadly

struggle where their fellow Canadians had  already won  their right to stand as comrades in arms with the most

famous fighting  battalions of the British army.  Others, again,  there were in whose  heart burned a deep

passion to get into grips  with those hellish  fiends whose cruelties, practised upon  defenceless women and

children  in that very district where they  were camped, and upon wounded  Canadians, had stirred Canada

from  Vancouver to Halifax with a desire  for revenge. 

But, with the great majority there was little of the desire either  for military glory or for revenge.  Their country

had laid upon  them  a duty for the discharge of which they had been preparing  themselves  for many months,

and that duty they were ready to  perform.  More than  that, they were eager to get at it and get done  with it, no

matter at  what cost.  With all this, too, there was an  underlying curiosity as  to what the thing would be like

"up there."  Far down below all their  feelings there lay an unanswered  interrogation which no man dared to

put to his comrade, and which  indeed few men put to themselves.  That  interrogation was:  "How  shall I stand

up under the test?" 

The camp was overrun with rumours from returning battalions of the  appalling horrors of the front line.  Ever

since that fateful 22nd  of  April, 1915, that day of tragedy and of glory for the Canadian  army,  and for the

Canadian people, the Ypres salient, the point of  honour on  the western front from Dixmude to Verdun, had

been given  into the  keeping of the Canadian army.  During those long and  terrible months,  in the face of a

continued bombardment and of  successive  counterattacks, with the line growing thinner, week by  week,

hacked  up by woefully inadequate artillery, the Canadian army  had held on  with the grim tenacity of death

itself.  There was  nothing that they  could do but hold on.  To push the salient deeper  into the enemy lines

would only emphasise the difficulty and danger  of their position.  The  role assigned them was that of simply

holding steady with what  ultimate objective in view no one seemed  to know. 

Week by week, and month after month, the Canadian battalions had  moved up into the salient, had done their

"tours," building up  their  obliterated parapets, digging out their chokedup water  courses,  revetting their

crumbling trenches, and rebuilding their  flimsy  dugouts, and then returning to their reserve lines, always

leaving  behind them in hastily dug graves over the parados of their  trenches,  or in the little improvised

cemeteries by Hooge, or Maple  Copse or  Hill 60, a few more of their comrades, and ever sending  down the

line  their maimed and broken to be refitted for war or  discharged again to  civilian life.  It was altogether a

ghastly  business, a kind of  warfare calling for an endurance of the finest  temper and a courage of  the highest

quality. 

From this grim and endless test of endurance, the Canadians had  discovered a form of relief known as a

"trench raid," a special  development of trench warfare which later came to be adopted by  their  comrades of

the French and British armies.  It was a form of  sport,  grim enough, deadly enough, greatly enjoyed by the


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 128



Top




Page No 131


Canadian  soldiers;  and the battalion which had successfully pulled off a  trench raid  always returned to its

lines in a state of high  exaltation.  They had  been able to give Fritz a little of what  they had been receiving

during these weary months. 

While the battalion waited with evergrowing impatience for the  order that would send them "up the line," a

group of officers was  gathered in the senior major's hut for the purpose of studying in  detail some

photographs, secured by our aircraft, of the enemy  trenches immediately opposite their own sector of the

front line.  They had finished their study, and were engaged in the diverting  and  pleasant exercise of ragging

each other.  The particular  subject of  that discussion was their various sprinting abilities,  and the  comparative

usefulness of various kinds of funkholes as a  protection  against "J.J.s" (Jack Johnsons), "whizzbangs," or

the  uncertain and  wobbling "minniewafers." 

Seldom had Barry found occasion to call upon Major Bustead, with  whom he had been unable to establish

anything more than purely  formal  relations.  A message, however, from the orderly room to  Lieutenant

Cameron, which he undertook to deliver, brought him to  the senior  major's hut. 

"Come in, padre," said the major, who of late had become more  genial, "and tell us the best kind of a

funkhole for a  'minniewafer.'" 

"The deepest and the closest for me, major, I should say," said  Barry, "from what I have heard of those

uncertain and wobbling  beasts." 

"I understand that chaplains do not accompany their battalions to  the front line, but stay back at the casualty

clearing stations,"  suggested the major.  "Wise old birds, they are, too."  The major  had  an unpleasant laugh. 

"I suppose they go where they are ordered, sir," replied Barry,  "but if you will excuse me, I have here a chit

for Lieutenant  Cameron, sir, which has just come in," and Barry handed Cameron his  message. 

"Will you allow me, sir?" said Cameron. 

"Certainly, go on, read it," said the major. 

Cameron read the message, and on his face there appeared a grave  and anxious look. 

"It's from the casualty clearing station, sir.  One of our chaps  from Edmonton is there dangerously wounded,

and wants to see me.  I'd  like to go, sir, if I might." 

"Oh, certainly.  I'll make it all right with the O. C.  Get a horse  from the transport.  Which casualty clearing

station is it?" 

Cameron looked at his message. 

"Menin Mill, sir." 

"Menin Mill!  By gad, I thought it was Brandthoek, but Menin Mill,  good Lord, that's a different proposition.

That's way beyond  Ypres,  you know.  Right up on the line.  You can't take a horse  there.  Do  you think you

ought to go up at all?" 

"I think I should like to go, sir," replied Cameron.  "I know the  chap well.  Went to school and college with

him." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 129



Top




Page No 132


"Then," said the major, "you had better hurry up and attach  yourself to one of the transports going in.  You

will barely be in  time." 

"Thank you, sir," said Cameron, and left the room. 

Barry went out with him.  "Who is it, Cameron?" he said.  "Do I  know him?" 

"I don't know, sir, whether you do or not.  It's young McPherson of  Edmonton, an awfully decent chap, and

my very best friend." 

"May I go up with you, Duncan?  I know Colonel Tait and Captain  Gregg, who are at the Mill, I understand." 

"I would be awfully glad if you would, but I hardly liked to ask  you.  It hasn't the reputation of being a very

healthy place, I  hear." 

"All right, Cameron.  I'm going up," said Barry. 

Upon enquiry they found that they were too late for the transports,  and again the question arose as to whether,

in view of the major's  order, they should make the attempt by themselves. 

"It was not really an order, I think, sir," said Cameron.  "It was  more in the way of a suggestion.  I think I'll go.

The note said,  'dangerously wounded,' and he sent for me." 

"All right," said Barry, "we'll go on, and we'll almost certainly  pick up some one who will be able to direct us

to the Mill." 

Their road, which took them to Vlammertinghe, led through level  fields, lying waste and desolate with rank,

overgrowing weeds.  As  they approached that historic village, they saw on every hand the  cruel marks of war.

On either side of the road were roofless and  shattered cottages, grown around with nettles and briars.  Among

these ruins, as they found on a later day, were the old garden  flowers, pansies and daisies, bravely trying to

hold their own.  Among  the rank weeds was to be seen the halfhidden debris of  broken farm  gear.  Here and

there stood the ruins of what had been  a thrifty  homestead, with its stoneflagged courtyard, around which

clustered  its stables.  Now nettles and briars grew around the  broken walls and  shattered, staring windows.  At

rare intervals, a  great house  appeared, with pretentious gateway, and grassgrown  drive winding up  between

stately and mutilated trees.  Over the  whole countryside hung  a melancholy and weird desolation, cottages,

homesteads, fields, the  very trees crying aloud to high heaven for  pity and vengeance. 

At Vlammertinghe, itself, the church tower still stood whole, but  the church itself was wrecked, as were most

of the village shops  and  dwellings.  In the village was to be seen no living thing  except some  soldiers, who in

the broken cellars were making their  bivouacs.  The  village stood deserted of its inhabitants, ever  since the

terrific  onslaught of the Huns, on the 22nd of April,  1915, which had driven  them forth from their homes, a

panic  stricken, terrorhunted crowd of  old men, women and little babes,  while over them broke, with a

continuous and appalling roar, a  pitiless rain of shells. 

At the crossroads stood a mounted officer, directing the traffic,  which here tended to congestion.  As they

entered the village, the  sentry halted them to enquire as to their bona fides.  Having  satisfied him, they

enquired their way to the Menin Mill. 

"Menin!"  The rising inflection of the sentry's voice expressed a  mild surprise.  "The old Mill!  Are you going

there?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 130



Top




Page No 133


"Yes," said Barry, answering his inflection.  "Why not?" 

"Well, sir, you know, it's rather a bad road.  Warm bit of country  up there, but"  He shrugged his shoulders

in quite a French  manner  as if to say it was no business of his.  "If you are going  to Menin,  you keep this road

straight through past Wipers past the  Cloth Hall,  out by the Menin Gate.  A hot place, that, sir.  Then  straight

on,  taking the right incline for about a mile and a half.  You will see a  big cemetery on your left.  The Mill

stands near a  big school on your  right.  But why not drop into the dressing  station, here, sir, right  here in this

old mill, which stands at  the crossroads?  You may catch  an ambulance going straight up to  the Mill." 

"Thank you very much," said Barry.  "We'll do that very thing." 

"Good luck, sir," said the sentry, saluting. 

They found an ambulance about to start, and asked for a lift. 

"All right, sir," said the driver, "but you'd better step in and  ask the officer." 

They passed into a large and highvaulted stone building, which in  peace days had been a mill.  The

oldfashioned, massive machinery  was  still standing intact.  Obtaining permission from the officer,  they  took

their places beside the driver of the ambulance, and were  soon on  their way. 

It was already growing dark, but, although the surface of the stone  pave was frequently broken with

shellholes, the ambulance, dodging  round the holes, rushed without pause along at a high rate of  speed. 

"You don't use your lights?" asked Barry. 

"No, not lately, sir," said the driver.  "That's the newest order,"  he added in a tone of disgust. 

The road lay between double rows of once noble trees, centuries  old, with the first delicate green of spring

softening their bare  outlines.  Now, splintered, twisted, broken, their wounds showing  white in the darkening

light through the delicate green, they stood  silently eloquent of the terrific force of the H. E. shell. 

As they went speeding along the shellmarked road they came upon a  huge trunk of a mighty elm, broken

clear from its stump, lying  partially cross their track, which soldiers were already busy  clearing away.

Without an instant's pause, the driver wheeled his  car off the 'pave', crashed through the broken treetops, and

continued on his way. 

Barry looked upon the huge trunk with amazement. 

"Did a single shell break that tree off like that?" he asked. 

"You bet," was the reply, "and all these you see along here.  It's  the great transport road for our front line, and

the boches shell  it  regularly.  Here comes one now," he added, casually. 

There was a soft woolly "whoof" far away, a high, thin whine, as  from a vicious insect overhead, with every

fractional second coming  nearer and yet nearer, ever deepening in tone, ever increasing in  volume, until, like

an express train, with an overwhelming sense of  speed and power, and with an appalling roar, it crashed upon

them.  In  the field on their left, there leaped fifty yards into the air a  huge  mass of earth and smoke.  Then a

stunning detonation. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 131



Top




Page No 134


Insensibly Barry and Cameron both crouched down in the car, but the  driver held his wheel, without the

apparent quiver of a muscle. 

"There'll be three more, presently, I guess," he said, putting on  full speed. 

His guess proved right.  Again that distant woolly "whoof," the  longdrawn whine, deepening to a scream, the

appalling roar and  crash, and a second shell fell in the road behind them. 

"Two," said the driver coolly.  "There will be a couple more." 

Again and yet again, each time the terror growing deeper in their  souls, came the two other shells, but they

fell far behind. 

"Oh, Fritzie," remonstrated the driver, "that's rotten bad work.  You'll have to do better than that." 

Again and again, in groups of four, the shells came roaring in, but  the car had passed out of that particular

zone of danger, and sped  safely on its way. 

"Do you have this sort of thing every night?" enquired Barry. 

"Oh, no," cheerfully replied the driver.  "Fritzie makes a lot  better practice than that, at times.  Do you see

this?"  He put his  finger upon a triangular hole a few inches above his head.  "I got  that last week.  We don't

mind so much going up, but it's rather  annoying when you're bringing down your load of wounded." 

As they approached Ypres, the road became more and more congested,  until at length they had to thread their

way between two continuous  streams of traffic up and down, consisting of marching battalions,  transports,

artillery wagons, ambulances, with now and then a motor  or a big gun. 

About a mile from the city, they came to a large red brick  building, with pretentious towers and surrounded

by a high brick  wall. 

"An asylum," explained the driver.  "Now used as a dressing  station.  We'll just run in for orders." 

At what seemed to Barry reckless speed, he whirled in between the  brick posts, and turned into a courtyard,

on one side of which he  parked his ambulance. 

"Better come inside, sir," said the driver.  "They sometimes throw  a few in here, seeing it's a hospital." 

They passed down the wide stairs, the centre of which had been  converted into a gangway for the passage of

wheeled stretchers,  into  a large basement, with concrete floors and massive pillars,  lit by  flaring gasjets.

Along the sides of the outer room were  rows of  wounded soldiers, their bandaged heads and arms no whiter

than their  faces, a patient and pathetic group, waiting without  complaint for an  ambulance to carry them down

the line. 

In an inner and operating room, Barry found two or three medical  officers, with assistants and orderlies,

intent upon their work.  While waiting there for their driver, they heard overhead again  that  ominous and

terrifying whine, this time, however, not long  drawn, but  coming in with terrific speed, and ending with a

sharp  and shattering  crash.  Again and again and again, with hardly a  second between, there  came the shells.  It

seemed to Barry as if  every crash was fair upon  the roof of the building, but no man  either of the medical

attendants  or of the waiting wounded paid the  slightest heed. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 132



Top




Page No 135


At length there came a crash that seemed to break within the very  room in which they were gathered.  The

lights flickered, some of  them  went out, there was a sound as if a tower had crashed down  upon the  roof.  Dust

and smoke filled the room. 

"Light up that gas," said the Officer Commanding.  An orderly  sprang to obey.  The gasjets were once more

lighted and the work  went  on. 

"Rather near, wasn't that one?" asked Barry of a wounded man at his  side. 

"Yes," he replied casually, "they got a piece that time," and again  he sunk into apathetic silence. 

In a few moments the driver had obtained his orders and was ready  to set forth. 

"Better wait a bit," said the sergeant at the door, "until their  Evening Hate is over." 

"Oh, that's all right," said the driver.  "I guess Fritz is pretty  well through.  They are rather crowded there at the

mill, and I  guess  we'll go on." 

In his heart, Barry earnestly hoped that the sergeant would  interpose with a more definite command, but,

inasmuch as the  bombardment had apparently ceased, and as if it were all in a day's  work, the driver,

buttoning up his coat, said: 

"We'll go, sir, if you are ready." 

A few minutes' run brought them to the gate of the ruined city.  As  the car felt its way through the ghostly

town, Barry was only  vaguely  conscious in the darkness of its ghostly skeletonlike  ruins.  Fifteen  minutes

brought them to the Menin gate. 

"Sounds rather hot out there," remarked the driver.  "Well,  Fritzie, I guess we won't join your party this time.

We prefer to  wait, if you don't mind, really." 

He ran the car into the lee of the ramparts, by the side of the  gateway, waited there half an hour or so, until

the "Evening Hate"  was past; then onward again to the Menin Mill. 

They lifted the blanket covering the sandbagged entrance, passed  through a dark corridor and came into a

cellar, lit by lanterns,  swinging from the roof, and by candles everywhere upon ledges or  upon  improvised

candlesticks. 

No sooner had they come into the light, than Barry saw across the  room his friend, Dr. Gregg, his coat off,

and his shirtsleeves  rolled  to his elbows. 

"Hello, Dunbar," said the doctor, coming forward.  "I guess I won't  shake hands just now.  Sit down.  Won't

you have a cup of coffee?  Jim," turning to an orderly, "give Captain Dunbar a cup of coffee." 

Barry presented Cameron to his friend, and together they sat down  and waited.  When the doctor was through

with his patient, he came  and sat down with them. 

"We came up to see a young chap named McPherson.  I think you sent  a note down about him today." 

"McPherson," said the doctor.  "I don't remember, but I will see." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 133



Top




Page No 136


He turned to a desk and turning over the pages of a record,  apparently found the name, and returned to Barry. 

"I am sorry to say that McPherson died this afternoon," he said. 

"Dead," said Barry.  He turned to Cameron.  "I'm awfully sorry,  Duncan." 

"Was there anybody with him?" he enquired of the doctor.  "He was  Lieutenant Cameron's very close friend,

and college companion." 

"Oh, awfully sorry," replied the doctor.  "Yes, I think Captain  Winter, the chaplain of the th, was with him

at the last.  He's  not  here just now.  I can tell you where to get him.  Tomorrow is  his day  here." 

"Isisis his body still here?" enquired Cameron, after a few  moments' silence. 

"Yes, it's in the next room.  Do you want to see it?  He was pretty  badly smashed up, I'm afraid." 

"I think I should like to see him," said Cameron.  "I know his  people, you see, and I would like to tell them

that I saw him." 

"Oh, all right," said the doctor.  He called an orderly. 

"Come this way, sir," said the orderly. 

Together they followed the orderly into the next room, apparently a  storehouse for grain.  There lying upon

the floor they saw three  silent shapes, wrapped in grey blankets. 

"This is Mcpherson, sir," said the orderly, looking at the card  attached to the blanket. 

He stooped, drew down the blanket from the face and stepped back.  In civil life, both Barry and Cameron had

seen the faces of the  dead,  but only in the coffin, after having been prepared for burial  by those  whose office

it is to soften by their art death's grim  austerities. 

Cameron gave one swift glance at the shapeless, bloody mass, out of  which stared up at him wideopen

glassy eyes. 

"Oh, my God, my God!" he gasped, gripping Barry by the arm, and  staggering back as if he had received a

blow.  He turned to the  door  as if to make his escape, but Barry, himself white and shaken,  held  him firmly. 

"Steady, old boy," he said.  "Steady, Duncan!" 

"Oh, let me go!  Let me get out of here!" 

"Duncan, there are a lot of wounded chaps out there." 

The boyhe was only nineteenwas halted at the word, stood  motionless and then muttered: 

"You are right, sir.  I was forgetting." 

"And, Duncan, remember," said Barry, in a quiet and solemn voice,  "there's more than that to McPherson.

That fine young chap whom  you  knew and loved is not that poor and battered piece of clay.  Your  friend has

escaped from death and all its horrors." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 134



Top




Page No 137


"Yes, yes, I know," whispered Cameron, still shaking.  "We'll go  out now, sir.  I'll be all right.  I assure you I'm

all right." 

They passed out into the dressingroom again, where the wounded  were continuing to arrive.  Cameron was

for departing at once, but  Barry held him back, unwilling that the lad should be driven away  beaten and

unnerved by what he had seen. 

"I say, Duncan, let's see some of these boys.  We can perhaps cheer  them up a bit.  They need it badly enough,

God knows." 

"All right," muttered Cameron, sitting down upon a bench in the  shadow.  They waited there till Dr. Gregg

came along. 

"Hello, Dunbar, you are looking seedy.  Feeling rotten, eh?" said  the doctor, eying him critically for a few

moments. 

"Oh, I'm all right," said Barry.  "The truth is, I've just been in  there with young Cameron.  Rather a ghastly

sight.  Cameron's badly  knocked up.  Can you do anything for him?" 

"Sure thing," said the doctor cheerfully.  "Stay right there where  you are.  I'll bring you something in a moment

or two.  Now sit  right  there, do you hear?  Don't move." 

In a few moments he returned, bringing hot coffee for them both. 

"There," he said in a cheerful matteroffact voice, "drink that." 

Barry gulped it down, Cameron taking his more slowly, and with  evident distaste.  The doctor continued to

converse with them in  tones of cheerful and, as Barry thought, of almost careless  indifference. 

"Now, I must leave you," said the doctor.  "I see there's a case of  shell shock.  We didn't know how to handle

that for a while.  The  British R. A. M. C. for some months declined to recognise it as  requiring treatment at

all.  You might care to look at this chap.  Poor devil!" 

Barry had been looking at the man ever since he had come into the  room, supported by two of his comrades.

He was indeed an object of  pity.  Of splendid physique, six feet and powerfully built, with  the  fine intelligent

face of an educated man, he stood there white,  twitching in every muscle, in a state of complete

nervecollapse. 

Colonel Tait, who had been observing him keenly ever since his  entering the room, now approached him,

greeted him with a cheerful  "Hello!" took him by the hand and felt his pulse. 

"How are you, old chap?  Feeling a little better than you were,  aren't you?" 

"Yesdoctor.  Ratherrottenthough  Be all  righttomorrow" 

"Sure you will!  Still a little rest won't do you any harm.  We'll  send you down for a couple of weeks, and then

you will be fit  enough  to have another go at the boche." 

So saying he turned him over to an assistant, and went on with his  work.  At this point Cameron, from whose

eyes the look of horror  had  not yet faded, leaned over to Barry and whispered: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 135



Top




Page No 138


"Let's get out of this.  For Heaven's sake, this thing is getting  me."  He glanced at Barry.  "What, are you ill,

too?" 

"Ill," answered Barry between his clenched teeth.  "Ill?  No, why  should I be ill?  Look at these boys.  I see

myself ill.  By Jove!"  he added under his breath, "here's another shell shock.  Sit down,  Cameron!"  His voice

took on a sterner tone.  "Sit down.  Don't be  an  ass!" 

Once more Colonel Tait took in hand the shellshock man.  This  second was a stretcher case.  The man was

very violent, requiring  two  men to hold him on his stretcher. 

"Oh, let him go!  Let him go!" said Colonel Tait.  "What's wrong  with you?" he said to the man.  "Have you

any wounds?" 

"No, sir," chattered the man miserably.  "Shellshock,sir.  Buriedtwiceby a shell.  Oh!  Ah!" 

The colonel had a few moments' conversation with Gregg, who came  over to where Barry was sitting and

said: 

"I say, Dunbar, watch this case.  You will see some fun." 

"Fun," echoed Barry, shaken and indignant.  "Not much fun for that  poor chap." 

"Stand up," said the colonel sharply. 

The man stood up without much apparent difficulty. 

"Ah!" said the colonel.  "Shell shock.  Bad case, too."  His voice  was kind and sympathetic.  He gripped the

man by the arm and ran  his  hand down his spine until he came to the small of his back. 

"Pain there, eh?" he said, giving the man a poke. 

"Yes, yes!  Ouw!  Doctor.  Awful." 

"Thought so," said the doctor.  "Bad case!  Poor chap!  A curious  feeling in the legs, eh?" 

The man nodded vigorously, still twitching violently and making  animal moanings. 

Still pursuing his investigations and continuing to sympathise with  his patient, the doctor enquired as to other

symptoms, to all of  which the patient promptly confessed.  When the examination was  completed, the doctor

gave his man a hearty slap on the back and  said: 

"You're all right, my boy.  Go treat yourself to a cup of cocoa,  and a good, thick slice of bread and raspberry

jamraspberry,  rememberand tomorrow you can report to your battalion medical  officer." 

"What!" exclaimed the man.  "Doctor, I can't go up again.  I'm not  fit to go up." 

"Oh, yes, you can, my boy.  You'll be in good fighting trim to  morrow.  You'll see!  You'll see!  Come back

here some day,  perhaps,  with a V. C." 

Thereupon the man began to swear violently. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 136



Top




Page No 139


"Here, none of that," said the doctor sharply, "or up you go to  night." 

A grin ran around the dressing station, in which none joined more  heartily than the first shellshock man,

waiting to be conveyed  down  the line. 

"They don't get by the old man often, nowadays," was Dr. Gregg's  comment. 

"You don't often get cases like this, though, do you?" enquired  Barry. 

"Not often.  We have passed through this dressing station some  thousands of cases, and we may have had

eight or ten malingerers.  But  this is not all sham.  There is a strong mixture of hysteria  and  suggestion with the

sham.  A chap with a highly organised  temperament  gets buried by a shell.  That is a terrific nerve  shock.  He

sees two  or three chaps blown to bits.  Another nerve  shock.  Now he has heard  about shell shock as a result of

a similar  experience.  Immediately  the suggestion begins to work and the man  discovers in himself the  well

known symptoms of genuine shell  shock, and, begad! I don't  wonder.  What we have just given him is  part of

the treatment for  hysteriaa little nerve tonic.  A good  sleep may put him all right by  tomorrow morning.

The chances are,  however, that the O. C. will send  him down for a few days' rest and  change.  If so, the chap

will be as  happy as a clam.  The boys will  rag him half to death down there, so  that he will be keen to get  back

again, and the chances are may get  his V. C.  Oh, we all get  scared stiff," laughed Gregg.  "We are none  of us

proud about here.  That hero stuff that you read about in the  home papers, we don't  know much about.  We just

'carry on'." 

"By Jove, Gregg!  That's all right, but to just 'carry on' in this  business, it seems to me, calls for some pretty

fine hero stuff." 

"Well, we don't call it so," said Gregg.  "Now I'll see about your  ambulance.  I believe there's one about ready

to go.  I think I can  find a place for you and your friend, and it will save you a long  walk." 

They came away from the old mill with mingled feelings.  Barry had  to a certain extent recovered from his

shock, and had himself  somewhat firmly in hand.  Cameron was still silent and obviously  shaken. 

It was grey dawn when they arrived at the camp, physically weary,  nervously exhausted, and sick at heart.

Barry wakened Hobbs, who  greeted them with the news that the battalion was under orders to  go  up that

night.  By his own state Barry was able to gauge that of  his  friend Cameron.  The experiences of the last ten

hours had been  like  nothing in his previous life.  The desolation wrought by war  upon the  face of the country,

upon the bodies of men, upon their  souls, had  sickened and unnerved him; and this he remembered was  an

experience of  only a brief ten hours.  He was conscious of a  profound selfdistrust  and humiliation, as he

thought of those  other men, those medical  officers, with their orderlies, the  ambulance drivers, those

wounded  soldiers.  How could they endure  this horror, day in and day out, for  weeks and for months?  In a  few

hours he would have to meet his fellow  officers and the men.  They could not fail to read in his face all this

that he carried in  his heart. 

By his grey, haggard face he knew that the same horror and fear had  gone deep into his friend's soul.  There

came to him the sudden  thought that Cameron, too, must meet his fellow officers, and must  endure their

searching chaff, and that he would reveal himself to  his  undoing; for no man can ever live down in his

battalion the  whisper  that he is a "quitter."  That very night Cameron would be  forced to  lead up his platoon

into the front line, and must lead  them step by  step over that same Vlammertinghe road, where the  transports

were  nightly shelled.  In the presence of any danger  soever, he must not  falter.  When the shells would begin to

fall,  he knew well how the  eyes of his men would turn to their leader and  search his very soul to  see of what

quality he was.  Far better a  man should die than falter.  He had not failed to notice the  startled look in

Cameron's eyes when  Hobbs blurted out his news.  Some way must be found for the bracing up  of the nerve,


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 137



Top




Page No 140


the  steadying of the courage of his friend. 

"Come in with me, Cameron," he said, standing at the door of his  hut.  "I'm dead beat and so are you.  We'll

have coffee and some  grub, and then sleep for a couple of hours until reveille." 

Cameron hesitated.  The thing he most longed for at that moment was  to be alone. 

"Come on!" insisted Barry.  "Hobbs will have a fire going, and hot  coffee in ten minutes.  Come on, old chap.  I

want you to." 

He threw his arm around Cameron's shoulder and dragged him in.  The  boy dropped onto Barry's cot, and, as

he was, boots and coat on,  was  asleep before the coffee was ready.  His boyish face, with its  haggard  look,

struck pity to Barry's heart, and recalled his  father's words,  "These boys need their mothers."  If ever a lad

needed his mother, it  was young Cameron, and just in that hour. 

He woke the boy up, gave him his coffee, had Hobbs remove his  boots, made him undress and covered him

up in his blankets.  Then,  taking his own coffee, he lay down on Hobbs' bed. 

"Harry," he said, "give us every minute of sleep you can.  Wake us  just onehalf hour before reveille with

coffee and everything else  good you can rustle, and, Harry, waken me before Mr. Cameron." 

When he lay down to sleep he made an amazing discoverythat his  own horror and fear and selfdistrust

had entirely passed away.  He  felt himself quite prepared to "carry on."  How had this thing come  to pass?  His

physical recuperation by means of coffee and food?  This  doubtless in part, but only in part.  In his concern for

his  friend he  had forgotten himself, and in forgetting himself he had  forgotten his  fear.  It was an amazing

discovery. 

"Thank the good God," he said.  "He never forgets a fellow, and I  won't forget that." 

He woke to find Hobbs at his side, with coffee, toast and bacon,  and on the floor beside his cot his tub

awaiting himthe tub being  a  rubber receptacle exactly eighteen inches in diameter. 

He hurried through his dressing, and his breakfast, all the while  Cameron lying like a dead man, and with

almost a dead man's face. 

Barry hated to waken him, but reveille was but a bare thirty  minutes off, and he had an experiment to work

upon his friend. 

"Bring the coffee, Harry.  Not the bacon, yet," he ordered. 

"Hello, Cameron, old boy!  Wake up." 

Cameron rolled over with a groan and opened his eyes, still dull  and heavy with sleep. 

"Here you are.  Pipe this down your tunnel and look lively, too.  You have got thirty minutestwentyfive,

reallyto reveille, and  you have your toilet to performshave, massage, manicure and all  the  restso go

to it.  Here's your tub.  You can't get into it,  but soap  yourself over, and Hobbs will sluice you with a pail or

two outside." 

"Why all this Spartan stuff?  It's awfully cold.  I think I'll  content myself with a nose rub this morning." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 138



Top




Page No 141


"Get out of bed, and be quick about it," commanded Barry, "unless  you'd rather take your tub where you are." 

So saying he jerked the clothes clear off the cot, threatening  Cameron with the tub.  Cameron sprang up,

stripped, soaped himself  over, groaning and shivering the while; then stood outside in the  open, while Hobbs

administered the order of the bath, and after a  vigorous rub, came in glowing. 

"By jingo!  That's bully!  It's a pity a fellow can't always feel  just how bully it is before he takes it." 

"Naaw then! a little snap!" ordered Barry, in attempted imitation  of the inimitable Sergeant Major Hackett.

"A little speed,  pleease!  That's better.  I've seen worsenot often!" 

And so he rattled on through Cameron's dressing and shaving  operations. 

"Now then, 'Obbs, a little Delmonico 'ere.  Shove this bacon  against your fice, Cameron." 

"What about yours, sir?" said Cameron, as he sat down to the  luxuries which somehow Hobbs had "rustled." 

"Had it, you slacker."  Then with a swift change of voice and  manner he added:  "Listen to me, Cameron.  I'm

going to have my  prayers.  You won't bother me any, and if you don't mind I'll do  them  out loud.  Don't you

stop eating, though.  Hobbs, stop your  wandering  around there and sit down and listen."  Barry took his  Bible. 

"Cameron," he said, "one comfort in reading the Bible to a chap  with a father like yours is that you know all

about the thing  alreadycontext, historical references and theological teaching  therefore, no need of

comment.  Also you have a good imagination to  see things.  Turn on the juice while I read.  Hobbs, you waken

up,  too." 

Then he began to read the vivid words which picture as in miniature  etchings the life stories of the heroes of

Faith who in their day  held their generation steady and pointed the way to duty and  victory.  As he read his

face became alight, his dark eyes glowed,  his voice  thrilled under the noble passion of the words he read.

Then he came to  this stately peroration: 

"And what shall I more say?  For the time would fail me to tell of  Gideon," and so on through the list of

heroes, "Who through faith  subdued kingdoms, wrought righteousness, obtained promises, stopped  the

mouths of lions, (of whom the world was not worthy).  Wherefore  seeing we also are compassed about with

so great a cloud of  witnesses, let us lay aside every weight, and the sin which doth so  easily beset us, and let

us run with patience the race that is set  before us, looking unto Jesus, the author and finisher of our  faith,

who, for the joy that was set before him, endured the cross,  despising  the shame, and is set down at the right

hand of the  throne of God." 

Both reader and hearers were swept along upon the tide of dramatic  passion.  They were themselves a part of

the great and eternal  conflict there pictured; they, too, were called upon to endure the  cross. 

Cameron had forgotten his breakfast, and with his kindling eyes  fastened upon the reader's face, was listening

to the noble music  of  the thrilling words. 

Barry closed his book and laid it down. 

"Great, eh!  Wonderful company!  All the finest and the best of the  war's heroes are in it.  Now, then,

prayer"  He dropped on his  knees, Cameron and Hobbs following his example. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 139



Top




Page No 142


It was a prayer chiefly of thanksgiving for those who in their day  and in the face of anguish and terror and

death had kept the faith;  of thanksgiving, too, for all who in this present day of sacrifice  in  the home land and

of sacrifice upon the field of battle were  keeping  that same faith for the Empire and for this same sacred

cause of  humanity.  The prayer closed with a simple petition that  they in the  battalion might be found worthy

of a humble place in  that great  company. 

As they were repeating together the prayer "Our Father," the notes  of the reveille sounded shrilly over the

camp. 

"Go out, Hobbs, for a minute," said Barry after they had risen from  their prayer.  He knew well that Cameron

would want a few minutes  with him alone. 

"Sir," said the boy, and his voice was quiet and steady, "I'm not  going to try to thank you, but I believe I can

'carry on' now." 

"You bet you can," said Barry, gripping his hand.  "You bet you  can!  It's the point of view after all, old man,

isn't it?  For  ourselves it doesn't matter, but we have got to think of the boys,  and we have got to stay with the

game." 

Eighteen hours later the relief was completed, and the battalion  was in its place in the line, all but the sentries

asleep in their  flimsy dugouts and behind their rotten parapets. 

An hour later, Barry, who was sleeping with the M. O. in the  regimental aid post, was wakened from a dead

sleep by the M. O. 

"There's something doing out there," he said.  "Listen!" 

There was a quick succession of sharp explosions. 

"Bombs!" said the M. O. 

The explosions were followed by the rattattattattattattat  tat of the machine guns.  Instantly they

were both on their feet  and  out in the trench. 

"I guess Fritzie is trying to put something over on us, being our  first night," said the M. O.  "I'll get my boys

out." 

He ran to the adjoining dugout, where his corporal and stretcher  bearers were sleeping, roused them and sent

them up the trench.  There  was the sound of subdued voices and of quick marching feet  along the

communication trench a few yards away.  They stood  together listening  for a few minutes. 

"I'm going," said Barry, hurrying off in the direction of the  sound.  "Come on." 

"Captain Dunbar," called the M. O. sharply, "my place is here, and  I think this is where you will be most

useful as well.  They will  bring the wounded to us right here." 

In a few minutes all was still again, except for the machine guns,  which still kept up their incessant tattoo. 

The M. O. was correct in his forecast.  In a few minutes down the  communication trench came a wounded

man walking, jubilant in spite  of  his wounds. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 140



Top




Page No 143


"Fritzie tried to put one over on us," he exclaimed, while the  doctor was dabbing with iodine and tying up his

wounded arm, "but I  think he's got another guess coming.  You ought to have seen our  officer," he added.

"The first one in the bunch to be 'at 'em.'  With  a bayonet, too, mind you.  Grabbed one from a private as he  ran

past,  and bombs bursting like hell all around.  Beg pardon,  sir," he added,  turning to Barry.  "He's some kid,

poor chap.  He's  got his, I guess." 

"Who is he?" asked the M. O. 

"Lieutenant Cameron, sir." 

"Cameron!" cried Barry.  "Where is he?" 

"They are carrying the stretcher cases right down to the dressing  station, I hear," said the man. 

"I'm going, doc," said Barry, and was off at a run. 

At the casualty clearing station there was no excitement, the  doctors and orderlies "carrying on" as usual,

receiving the  wounded,  dressing their wounds, sending them down with the  smoothness and  despatch

characteristic of their department. 

"Cameron?" said the doctor in answer to Barry's question.  "Why  certainly, I'll show you."  And he led him to

Cameron's cot. 

"Well, old chap," said the doctor cheerily, "we're going to send  you down in a minute or two.  Now don't

talk." 

Cameron's eyes welcomed Barry. 

"Dear old boy," said Barry, dropping on his knees beside him.  "I'm  awfully sorry." 

"It's all right," whispered Cameron.  "Theyneverknew.You'll  write dadand tell himI kept"

The voice trailed off into  silence.  The morphia was doing its merciful work. 

"Kept the faith," said Barry. 

"Yes," whispered Cameron with a smile, faint but exultant. 

"Good old boy," whispered Barry. 

"Yes, IkeptI kept" 

The bearers came to carry out the stretcher. 

"Will he recover?" whispered Barry to the doctor. 

"Recover?  Surest thing you know," said the doctor in a loud cheery  voice.  "We can't spare this kind of stuff,

you know." 

And again Barry leaned over the stretcher and said, patting Cameron  on the shoulder: 

"Good old boy.  You make us proud of you.  You kept the faith." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR 141



Top




Page No 144


CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS

"Three months in that hellhole of the salient have made their mark  on this battalion," said Transport

Sergeant Mackay. 

"Yes, there's quite a lot of these round the first line and back  about here," replied the pioneer sergeant, who

was putting the  finishing touches upon some crosses, that were to be sent up the  line  that night. 

"That's so, Fatty.  Whose is that cross you are finishing?" 

"That's Lieutenant Salford's, a fine young officer he was, too.  Always had a smile.  The deeper the mud the

more Sally smiled.  And  this here is Lieutenant Booth's.  There's a chap now that picked up  wonderful.  Two

months ago everybody thought he was a big soft  slob,  and those bombers say that he was all, right.  And

here's the  M. O.'s.  Poor old doc!  There was a man, now, if there ever was  one.  He  wasn't afraid of nothing.

He would go walking about with  a smile when  a bombardment was on, and in that last big show the  other

day, they  say him and the chaplainthere's another peach  they 'carried on'  wonderful.  I wasn't around

there at the time,  but the boys at the  dressing station told me that them two worked  back and forward getting

out the wounded, I think they had about  thirty injured up at that  time, as if it was a kind of er summer  shower

that was falling, let  alone H. E.'s and whizzbangs, and then  after they got the last man  out, the M. O. went in

with some  stretcher bearers, just lookin'  around before he left, and a shell  came and got 'em all, and they say

it was about the last shell that  was throwed.  And that's where poor  Harry Hobbs got his, too.  The  Pilot went

out just a minute before,  and when he came back that's  what he saw.  They say he was terrible  cut up over the

M. O.  Funny  thing, the M. O.'s face was just as quiet  as if he had gone to  sleep, but the rest of the boys, well

you could  hardly get 'em  together, and the Pilot walkin' up and down there  lookin' like a  lost man.  We buried

'em right there by Maple Copse.  I  want to  tell you, sergeant, that that's the hardest job I ever done in  this  war.

The Pilot, he broke right down in the middle of the  service.  It must have been hard for him.  I've been with

him now at  every  funeral and he stands up to his work like a man.  He takes it  kind  of cheery almost, but when

we was puttin' down the M. O. and poor  Harry, the Pilot just couldn't appear to stand it.  I cried like a  baby,

and you ought to have seen the crowd, the O. C. and the  adjutant and the pioneers, and they are all pretty

hardened up by  this time.  They have done enough plantin' anyhow.  They just all  went to pieces.  The shells

was goin' overhead among the trees,  something awful, but nobody minded more than if they had been pea

shooters.  First time I ever seen the Pilot break, and I have been  with him ever since the first one we buried,

and that was big Jim  Berry.  A sniper got him.  You don't remember?  I guess you don't  see  much or get much

of the news back here." 

"Back here!" exclaimed Sergeant Mackay.  "What do you mean, 'back  here'?  Don't I have to go up every night

with the transport, and  through that barridge, too.  This aint no 'safety first' job." 

"I know, sergeant.  I'm not sayin' you ain't at war.  Believe me,  I'd rather be up front than to go up round Hell

Fire Corner and  come  back by the Menin Gate every night like you fellows.  I ain't  sayin'  nothing about that,

but you don't see things that I see, and  you don't  get the news same as I do.  Now, about Jim Berry, you  know,

he was  goin' to do some snipin' in place of McCuaig, who went  to the machine  gun company." 

"McCuaig, in the machine gun company!  I never heard that." 

"Well, that's what I'm sayin'," said Sergeant Matthews, "you don't  get some of the chances to get news down

here, same as me.  You  see,  when we're sewin' up the boys and fixin' 'em up like, and when  we're  fixin' up the

graves and puttin' on the crosses, you get kind  of  thinkin' about things, and kind of lonesome, and so the boys

keep  telling the news to cheer themselves up, and that's how I  heard about  McCuaig.  You see, McCuaig was

snipin' the first tour,  and he's a  killer, you bet, and he had only cut three natches in  his rifle.  The  boys say he


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 142



Top




Page No 145


had got four of the Huns, but he had  only put down three  natches on his rifle to be sure, and after he  seen the

machine gun  work, stoppin' a raid, he comes to the  officer, and says he, givin'  him his rifle:  'Say, this is all

right for sport, but it ain't good  enough for killin' these devils.  I'd like to get on to your gang, if I  can,' and

they put him right  onto the machine gun.  Say, he's sleepin'  with that Lewis gun ever  since.  Just pets it like a

baby.  What was I  tellin' you?  Oh,  yes, about McCuaig and Jim Berry.  Well, he took  McCuaig's place  snipin'

and a good sniper he was too.  He used to  hunt, you know,  up in the mountains with Jim Knight every fall.

Well,  he started  out snipin' the day after McCuaig quit, and McCuaig gave  him his  rifle too, and took him up

to the 'hide.'  Well, big Jim was  always  a careless cuss, you know.  He gets his eye on the hole,  sightin'  his

rifle, and McCuaig was watchin' through one of them new  things" 

"Perry's scope." 

"Yes, that's it, Paris cope.  Them French is mighty smart fellows,  you bet.  When along walks a Hun.  'There he

comes!' sings out  McCuaig.  'Didn't see him until he got past,' says Jim, pretty mad,  because Jim hated to

show that he'd got 'buck fever,' or something,  and waited for the next.  'Here he comes!' says McCuaig, again.

'Bang!' goes Jim.  'I've got him,' he shouts, hoppin' up to get a  good look, when McCuaig grabs him and jerks

him down, swearin'  somethin' awful, and tellin' him he wasn't shootin' no mountain  goats.  'Oh shaw!' says

Jim.  'They can't get me.'  'You keep your  head down, Jim,' said McCuaig.  That's the very last words he said  to

him, just as he was leavin' him.  He wasn't down the next day  when  bang! goes Jim's rifle, and again up he

jumps to see what he'd  got,  when ping! goes a Boche bullet right through his head.  You  know  McCuaig was

real mad, and he stood quiet at that hole for  three hours.  Then he got Corporal Thom to shove up a hat on a

rifle, when ping!  comes the bullet and bang! goes Jim's rifle.  'Guess he won't shoot no  more, unless there's

shootin' in hell,'  says he, and makes another  natch.  Say, the boys all felt bad about  Jim and so did the Pilot.

Well, we had to plant him that night, as  we was goin' out next day.  It was out beyond the Loop.  You don't

know where that is, I guess." 

"Of course, I do," asserted Mackay indignantly.  "I've been all  around that front line.  What are you givin' us!" 

"Oh, you have, eh!  Well, I wouldn't unless I had to, you bet.  It's no place for a man with a waist line like

mine.  Well, as I  was  sayin', that cemetery was right out in the open, right under  observation, and exposed to

machine guns, snipers, whizbangs, all  the  hull bloody lot of 'em.  Wasn't no place for a cemetery anyway,  I

say.  I'm not after any bomb proof job but a cemetery should be" 

"Should be a quiet and retired spot," suggested one of the  transport boys. 

"Yes.  What's the use of getting livin' men shot up when they're  buryin' dead men, I want to know.  Not saying

anything about the  officers that's always round, and the chaplain.  I say a cemetery  should be somewhere out

of sight, like Maple Copse; now, there's a  good place, except that the roots make it hard diggin'.  Up against  a

railway bank like that down at Zillebeck, by the Railway Dugouts,  there's a lovely place." 

"How would the Ramparts do, sergeant?" enquired another transport  lad. 

"Ramparts?  You mean at Ypres?  Yes," said the sergeant, with a  grin, "but I'd hate to turn out the Brigade

Headquarters Staff." 

"Go on, sergeant." 

"Well, as I was sayin', that's no place for a cemetery up there  beyond the Loop, but I didn't know so much

about it then, you bet.  That's where we had to bury Jim.  It was a awful black night, and  of  course, just as we

got out to the trench to go 'overland' to the  cemetery, them flares started up something awful.  I don't know

what  they was lookin' for, but when they went up, I want to tell  you, I  felt about the size of a tree, and I wisht


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 143



Top




Page No 146


I was one.  Well,  Jim, you  know, was pretty heavy, an awful heavy carry he was for  the boys.  I  was tryin' to

hurry 'em along, but that Pilot, he  heads the  procession, and on he goes at a funeral march pace.  Now  I

believe in  doin' things right.  I've heard of some pioneers that  hurries their  job.  I don't believe in that, but when

you are going  across the open  on a dark night, with them flares going up, I say  between flares is a  good time

to get a move on, but, no, that there  Pilot, he just goes  that pace and no more.  I want to tell you the  boys was

nervous and  the officers too.  The O. C. and Major Bustead  was there.  I could see  the major fussin' to get on.

Well, we got  Jim down all right, and  just as the Pilot got started, darned if  they didn't open up the  biggest

kind of a machine gun chorus you  ever heard." 

"What did you do, sergeant?" 

"Me?  Well, I started huggin' mud and saying all the good words I  could think of.  Even the O. C. got down on

his knees, and the  major,  he near got into the grave, but that darned Pilot stood up  there  getting taller every

minute, and goin' on with his prayer,  and the  boys sayin' 'Amen!' that loud and emphatic that I thought  he'd

take  the hint and cut out somethin', but cut out nothin'!  Seemed as if his  memory was workin' over time, the

way he kept a  fetchin' up things  that he could a easily forgot, and when he comes  to the benediction,  the

whizbangs begin to come.  Up goes his hand,  the way they do.  I  thought to myself that that was a kind of

unnecessary display.  I  looks up and there he was, more like a tree  than ever.  In fact, I  says to myselfit's

queer how you think  things at times like  thatdarned if they won't think the darned  fool is a tree, for  nothin'

but a darned tree would stand up in the  flare light and look  so much like a tree anyhow.  I guess that's  what

saved him.  He never  moved until he was done, and then didn't  he stay with us pioneers  after the rest had gone

until we filled  up.  Say, he's all right." 

"You bet he's all right," said Sergeant Mackay, "and he's gettin'  in his work with the boys." 

"What do you mean, 'gettin' in his work'?" enquired the pioneer  sergeant. 

"Oh, well, you know," said Sergeant Mackay awkwardly, "he's makin'  'em think a lot different about things.  I

know he has 'em tied up  all right in their language."  And this was as near to a confession  of faith as the

sergeant cared to go. 

"Oh, I can see a difference myself up the line," said the pioneer  sergeant.  "The boys used to get out of his

way.  He used to jump  on  'em something fierce.  You remember?" 

"Huhuh!" 

"Well, they just love to have him drop in now and they tell him  things.  I saw Corporal Thom the other night

showin' him his girl's  picture, and the Pilot thought she was a fine girl too, and got her  address down, and said

he was going to write her and tell her what  a  fine chap the corporal was, and you ought to see Corporal Thom

swell  up until he 'most bust his tunic." 

"Oh, I know the corporal's dippy about the Pilot," said Sergeant  Mackay. 

"Yes, and the officers, too," said the pioneer sergeant.  "There's  Captain Duff.  Well, you know what a holy

terror he is." 

"He's all right," said Sergeant Mackay stoutly.  "He was my chief  for about a month here, and he was the first

one to get this  transport licked into shape, you bet." 

"I'm not saying anything against Captain Duff, but he was a  roughneck, you know well enough, and I guess

he hadn't much use for  the Pilot." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 144



Top




Page No 147


"Oh, I know all about that," said Sergeant Mackay.  "The Pilot used  to go up with us on the transport.  It was

awful hard on Captain  Duff, handlin' the column and the mules and all the rest, to hold  in  when the Pilot was

along.  The captain, he had to come round now  and  then to the rear.  There he would have a lovely time for a

few  minutes, with the Pilot safe up in front.  But the Pilot calmed him  down all right." 

"Yes, and there's that young Captain Fraser," said the pioneer  sergeant, with a note of enthusiasm in his

monotonous voice.  "There a  soldier.  He just loved fightin'.  I remember the night he  got his  wound.  It was on

a raid of course.  If there was a raid  on, Captain  Neil was sure to be there.  He just about got his arm  blown off,

but  they say he's goin' to be all right.  I was at the  regimental aid post  when they fetched him in.  Oh, he was a

dirty  mess, face all cut up,  and his arm hangin', and not a word out of  him until the Pilot comes  along.  Then

he begins to chirp up and  the Pilot starts jollyin' him  along one minute and sayin' Psalms  to him the next

minute, and little  prayers, and the boys around  listenin', sometimes grinnin' and  sometimes all choked up, but

I'm  awful glad Captain Neil is comin'  round all right." 

By this time the pioneer sergeant had his crosses finished. 

"Well," he said, as he set the crosses against the wall, "there's  three of the finest officers we ever had in this

battalion.  You  take  'em up tonight when you go, sergeant." 

"We're not going up tonight.  The boys are coming out this  evening," replied Sergeant Mackay. 

"No?  Is that so?  I never heard that.  Guess I'll have to go up  with some other outfit.  Comin' out this evening?

Well, it's time  they were.  They've had one hell all the time, I hear, this tour." 

"Yes," continued Sergeant Mackay, "and the highlanders are sending  up their band to meet them and play

them out.  I call that a mighty  fine thing to do.  You know our own band had to go up with water  and  rations

last night, and they can't get out until tonight.  So  the  Highlanders' band" 

"Pretty good band, too, isn't it?" 

"Best pipe band in the army," said Sergeant Mackay with enthusiasm. 

"Oh, a pipe band!" exclaimed the pioneer sergeant in a disappointed  tone. 

"Yes, a pipe band, what else?" enquired Sergeant Mackay  truculently. 

"Why don't they send up their real band, when they're doin' it,  anyway?" 

"What!" shouted Sergeant Mackay.  "I'll tell you.  For the same  reason that they don't make you O. C. in this

battalion, you damned  fat lobster!  There now, you've started me swearin' again, and I  was  quittin' it." 

Sergeant Mackay's wrath at the slur cast upon the pipe band, the  only band, in his opinion, worthy of any real

man's attention, was  intensified by his lapse into his habit of profanity, which, out of  deference to the Pilot,

he for some weeks had been earnestly  striving  to hold in check. 

"Oh well, Scotty, don't spoil your record for me.  I guess a pipe  band is all right for them that likes that kind of

music.  For me,  I  can't ever tell when they quit tunin' up and begin to play." 

Sergeant Mackay looked at him with darkening face, evidently  uncertain as to what course he should

adoptwhether to "turn  himself  loose" upon this benighted Englishman or to abandon him to  his  deserved

condition of fatuous ignorance.  He decided upon the  latter  course.  In portentous silence he turned his back


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 145



Top




Page No 148


upon Fatty  Matthews  and walked the whole length of the line to get a mule back  over the  rope.  It took him

some little time for the mule had his  own mind  about the manoeuvre and the sergeant was unwontedly

deliberate and  gentle with him.  Then, the manoeuver executed, he  walked slowly back  to the pioneer sergeant

and in restrained and  carefully chosen speech  addressed him. 

"Look here, Fatty, I'm askin' you, don't you ever say things like  that outside of these lines, for the sake of the

regiment, you  know.  I'd really hate the other battalions to know we had got  such"  He  halted himself

abruptly and then proceeded more  quietly, "A man as you  in this battalion.  My God, Fatty, they'd  think your

brains had run  down into your pants.  I know they  haven't, because I know you haven't  any."  He took a fresh

breath,  and continued his address in a tone of  patient remonstrance.  "Why,  man, don't you know that

wherever the  British Army has gone, its  Highland regiments have cleared the way;  and that when the pipes

get playin' the devil himself couldn't hold  them back?" 

"I don't wonder," said Fatty innocently.  "They make a man feel  like fightin' all right." 

Sergeant Mackay scanned his face narrowly, uncertain as to whether  he should credit the pioneer sergeant

with intelligence sufficient  to  produce a sarcasm. 

"What I mean is," exclaimed Fatty, seeking to appease the wrathful  transport sergeant, "when you hear them

pipes, you get so stirred  up,  you know, that you just feel like kullin' somebody." 

This apparently did not improve matters with Sergeant Mackay. 

"Oh, darn it, you know what I mean!" 

"No, Fatty," said the sergeant solemnly.  "I don't know what you  mean, but I'll suggest this to you, Fatty.  You

go down to that  Pete  mule, down there at the end of the line and talk to him.  I  guess  he'll understand you.  I'm

busy just now." 

"I don't see what you're so hot about," said the pioneer sergeant  in an aggravated voice, "but I'm going to see

the boys come in  anyway." 

When the distant sound of the pipes coming from the direction of  the front line was heard in camp, men of

the various transport  lines  and base units lined up to watch the battalion come in.  For  the  rumour had run that

they had had a bad go, that they had beaten  back  no less than three rather formidable raids of the enemy and

had been  badly cut up.  More than that, by reason of the lack of  reinforcements, they had had to do a double

tour, so that they were  returning from an experience of thirteen days, in what was indeed  the  veritable mouth

of hell. 

"I guess they are all pretty well all in," said Sergeant Matthews,  who, standing with his pioneers, had been

carefully avoided by his  friend Sergeant Mackay.  That enthusiastic Scot had for the time  being abandoned his

transport, and was fraternising with the  transport men of the Highlanders, with whom he was sure he would

feel  himself in more complete accord. 

"Here they come, boys," said a Scot, as the sound of the pipes grew  louder.  "There's a drummer for ye.  Listen

'til that double roll,  wull ye?" 

"Ay, Danny, the boys will be shovin' out their chests and hitchin'  their hips about something awful." 

"Ye may say that, Hec.  Will ye look at young Angus on the big  drum, man, but he has got the grrand style

on him." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 146



Top




Page No 149


"Ay, boys, they are the laads," said Sergeant Mackay, yielding to  the influence of his environment and

casually dropping into the  cadence of the Highlanders about him, which, during his ten years  in  the west, his

tongue had wellnigh lost.  "It's a very fine  thing,  your pipers are doing, playing our boys out in this way, and

we won't  be forgetting that in a hurry." 

"Why for no?" enquired Hec, in surprise.  "It's the Highlanders  themselves that love a bonny fighter." 

Down the road, between lines of silent men, came the pipers with  waving kilts and flying tartans, swinging

along in their long  swaying  stride, young Angus doing wonders on the big drum, with his  whirling  sticks, and

every piper blowing his loudest, and marching  his  proudest.  Behind them came the men of the battalion

marching  at  attention, their colonel at their head, grave of face and  steady.  Behind the colonel marched Major

Bayne, in place of the  senior major,  whom illness had prevented from accompanying the  battalion on this  last

tour, no longer rotund and cheery as was his  wont, but with face  grey, serious and deep lined.  After him at the

head of A Company  marched Captain Duff, his rugged, heavy face  looking thinner and  longer than its wont

but even fiercer than  ever.  With eyes that  looked straight before then, heedless of the  line of silent onlookers,

the men marched on, something in their  set, haggard faces forbidding  applause.  At the rear of the column

marched the chaplain alone, and  every one knew that he had left up  in the Salient behind him his  friend and

comrade, the M. O., whose  place in all other marching had  been at his right hand.  All knew  too how during

this last go, in the  face of death in its most  terrifying form, they had carried out their  wounded comrades one

by  one until all were brought to safety.  And all  knew too, how the  chaplain carried with him that day a sore

and lonely  heart for the  loss of one who was more to him than batman, and who had  become his  loyal and

devoted friend.  The chaplain's face was gaunt  and thin,  with hollow cheeks, but for all that, it wore a look of

serene  detachment. 

"Say, he looks awful tough," said a voice in Sergeant Mackay's ear. 

Sergeant Mackay turned sharply around upon Fatty Matthews. 

"Tough!  Tough!" he exclaimed, with a choke in his voice.  "You're  a damned liar, that's what you are.  He

looks fine.  He looks  fine,"  he added again furiously.  "He looks as if hell itself  couldn't scare  him." 

In the sergeant's eyes strange lights were glistening. 

"Yes, you're right, sergeant," said Fatty Matthews humbly.  "You're  right, and that's where he's been, too, I

guess." 

Bravely and gallantly, with the historic and immortal "Cock o' the  North" shrilling out on the evening air, the

pipers played them on  to  the battalion parade ground, where they halted, silent still and  with  that strange air

of detached indifference still upon them.  They had  been through hell.  Nothing else could surprise them.  All

else,  indeed, seemed paltry. 

Briefly, but with heartreaching words, the colonel thanked the  pipers for what he called "an act of fine and

brotherly courtesy."  Then turning to his men, he spoke a few words before dismissal. 

"Men, you have passed through a long and hard time of testing.  You  have not failed.  I am not going to praise

you, but I want you to  know that I am proud of you.  Proud to be your commanding officer.  I  know that

whatever is before us, you will show the same spirit of  endurance and courage. 

"We have lost this time twentynine men, eleven of them killed, and  with these three very brave and very

gallant officers, among them  our  medical officer, a very great loss to this battalion.  These  men did  their duty

to the last.  We loved them.  We shall miss  them, but  today we are proud of them.  Let us give three cheers  for


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 147



Top




Page No 150


our gallant  dead." 

With no joyous outburst, but with a note of fierce, strained  determination, came the cheers.  In spite of all he

could do, Barry  could not prevent a shudder as he heard the men about him cheering  for those whom he had

so recently seen lying, some of them sorely  mutilated, in their grey blankets. 

"Now, men," concluded the O. C., "we must 'carry on.'  You will  have a couple of hours in which to clean up

and have supper, and  then  we shall have tonight a cinema show, to which I hope you will  all  come, and

which I hope you will all greatly enjoy." 

The colonel's little speeches, as a rule, elicited appreciative  cheers, but this afternoon there was only a grave

silence.  After  dismissal, the men went to their huts and were soon busy giving  themselves a "high mark

scrub" preliminary to the hot bath and  "jungle hunt" in which they would indulge themselves tomorrow. 

As Barry was moving off the parade ground, the junior major caught  up to him, and took him by the arm and

said: 

"I have sent around my batman to your hut.  He will look after you  until I can pick out a man from the new

draft.  We all know how you  feel about Hobbs, old man." 

"Thank you, major," said Barry quietly.  "I appreciate that." 

"You will be around tonight," continued the major. 

"No, I think not.  I have a lot of things to do.  All those letters  to write."  Barry shuddered as he spoke.  For

nothing in all his  ministerial experience was to him a more exhausting and heartbreaking  task than the writing

of these letters to the relatives and friends  of his dead comrades. 

"I think you had better come," said the major earnestly.  "I know  the O. C. would like it, and the boys would

like it too." 

"Do you think so?" said Barry.  "Then I'll be there." 

"Good man," said Major Bayne, patting him on the shoulder.  "That's  the stuff we like in this battalion." 

Barry found his hut in order, his things out for airing, his tub  ready, and supper in preparation. 

"Thanks, Monroe," he said to Major Bayne's batman, as he passed  into his hut. 

As he entered his hut and closed the door, for the first time there  swept over his soul an appalling and

desolating sense of loneliness.  It was his first moment of quiet, his first leisure to think of  himself for almost

two weeks.  With the loss of his batman there had  been snapped the last link with that old home life of his,

now so  remote but all the dearer for that.  It came to him that while he  remained a soldier, this was to be his

continual experience.  Upon  his return from every tour new gaps would stare at him.  Up in the  lines they did

not so terribly obtrude themselves, but back here in  rest billets they thrust themselves upon him like hideous

mutilations  upon a well loved face.  He could hardly force himself to remove his  muddy, filthy clothes.  He

would gladly have laid himself down upon  his cot just as he was, and given himself up to the luxury of his

grief and loneliness, until sleep should come, but his life as a  soldier had taught him something.  These

months of discipline, and  especially these last months of companionship with his battalion  through the

terrible experiences of war, had wrought into the very  fibre of his life a sense of unity with and responsibility

for his  comrades.  His every emotion of loss, of grief, of heartsickness  carried with it the immediate


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 148



Top




Page No 151


suggestion and remembrance that his  comrades too were passing through a like experience, and this was  his

salvation. Weary, sick, desolate as he felt himself in this  hour, he  remembered that many of his comrades

were as he, weary,  and sick and  desolate.  He wondered how the major's batman felt. 

"Well, Monroe," he said with an attempt at a voice of cheer,  "pretty tough go this time." 

"Yes, sir, very tough," said Monroe.  "I lost my chum this time,"  he added after a few moments' silence. 

"Poor chap," said Barry.  "I'm awfully sorry for you.  It's hard to  leave a friend up there." 

"It is that, sir," replied Monroe, and then he added hurriedly but  with hesitation, "and if you will pardon me,

sir, we all know it's  awful tough for you.  The boys all feel for you, sir, believe me." 

The unexpected touch of sympathy was too much for Barry's self  control.  A rush of warm tears came to his

eyes and choked his  voice.  For some minutes he busied himself with his undressing, but  Monroe  continued

speaking. 

"Yes, sir, the Wapiti bunch is getting pretty small.  Corporal Thom  was with me" 

"Corporal Thom!" cried Barry.  "Was Corporal Thom your chum?" 

"Yes, sir, for six years we was on the Bar U. M. together.  We was  awful close friends.  He was a good chum." 

"Corporal Thom!" exclaimed Barry again; "he was your chum!  He was  a great friend of mine too.  You have

indeed suffered a great  loss." 

"He thought a lot of you, sir," said Monroe.  "He has often talked  to me about you." 

"But what a splendid death!" cried Barry.  "Perfectly glorious!" 

"I didn't hear, sir," said Monroe; "I came down three days ago, and  only heard that a bomb got him." 

"Oh, splendid," said Barry.  "Nothing finer in the war.  Let me  tell  you about it.  There was an enemy raid

coming up.  The corporal  had  got wind of it and called his men out.  They rushed into the front  line bay.  Just

as they got there, eight or ten of them, a live bomb  fell hissing among them.  They all rushed to one end of the

bay, but  the corporal kicked the bomb to the other end, and then threw  himself  on top of it.  He was blown to

pieces, but no one else was  hurt." 

During the recital of this tale, Monroe stood looking at Barry and  when he had finished his eyes were shining

with tears. 

"Ay, sir, he was a man, sir," he said at length. 

"Yes, you have said it, Monroe.  He was a man, just a common man,  but uncommonly like God, for He did

the same thing.  He gave  Himself  for us." 

Monroe turned away to his work in silence. 

"Monroe," said Barry, calling him back, "look here, lad, it would  not be right for us to grieve too much for

Corporal Thom.  We ought  to be thankful for him and proud of him, should we not?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 149



Top




Page No 152


"Yes, sir, I know, sir, but," he added while his lip trembled, "you  hate to lose your chum." 

Only under compulsion of his conscience did Barry go to the cinema  show that night, which in this camp was

run under the chaplain  service and by a chaplain.  He knew what the thing would be like.  His  whole soul

shrunk from the silly, melodramatic films which he  knew  would constitute the programme as from a

nauseating dose of  medicine.  The billboard announced a double header, a trite and,  especially to  Canadians, a

ridiculous representation of the  experiences of John Bull  and his wife and pretty daughter as  immigrants to

the Canadian  Northwest, which was to be followed by  the immortal Charlie Chaplin. 

The cinema hut was jammedthe whole battalion, now much reduced in  numbers, officers and men being

present, and with them the men of  the  base units and transports of other battalions.  It was in some  senses  an

unusual gathering.  There was an entire absence of the  wonted chaff  and uproarious horseplay; instead a grave

and almost  bored air rested  upon the men's faces.  The appalling experiences  of the past thirteen  days seemed

to dwarf all other things in  comparison.  They had been in  the presence of the Big Thing; all  else seemed

petty; they had been  looking into death's cold eyes;  after that other sights seemed  trivial.  Many of them

carried sore  hearts for their comrades with  whom they had at other times  foregathered in just such

circumstances  as these, but nevermore  again. 

It was the custom in the battalion, as the officers came into such  gatherings as this, to receive them with a

ripple of applause, but  tonight there was silence.  Barry arrived late.  When he appeared  there fell upon the

men a hush, and then as he moved toward the  front  seats reserved for the officers, the men began to rise until

the whole  battalion was standing silent and motionless, and so  remained until he  had found a seat.  It was

Major Bayne who called  his attention to this  unusual demonstration, which was reserved  only for great

occasions and  for nothing less than a battalion  commander. 

"They are saluting you, Pilot," said Major Bayne in a whisper,  himself standing with the other officers. 

Barry quickly lifted his eyes, saw the men standing, with all eyes  directed toward him, slowly looked over the

rows of faces, smiled a  bright but slightly wavering smile, turned and saluted the  Commanding  Officer, and

sat down all trembling and shaken by this  most touching  tribute of sympathy and affection. 

The show began with some pictures of great allied leaders which  excited a mild interest and drew some

perfunctory applause.  Then  came the tragic comedy of John Bull's experiences as an immigrant,  when just as

the interest began to deepen, the machine blew up, and  the pictures were off for the night. 

Ordinarily such a contretemps would have been by no means fatal to  the evening's enjoyment, for in the

battalion there was no lack of  musical and other talent, and an impromptu entertainment was easily  possible.

Ordinarily, too, in such an emergency there would at  once  have arisen a demand for the chaplain, who had

come to be  recognised  as a great standby in times of need such as this.  To  night, however,  everything

seemed changed.  The mild suggestion of  one of the men that  the chaplain should take the piano was promptly

discouraged by the  dissenting growls of the others present.  They  knew well how their  chaplain was feeling. 

"What shall we do?" asked Major Bayne of Barry. 

"Get Coleman to the piano.  He is a perfect wizard," suggested  Barry, indicating a young lieutenant who had

come to the battalion  with the recent draft, and who had done some accompaniments for  Barry's violin

playing. 

Lieutenant Coleman, on being called for, went to the piano, and  began to play.  He was indeed a wizard as

Barry had said, with a  genius for ragtime and popular music hall ditties, and possessed  also  of the further gift

of improvisation that made his services  invaluable  on just such an occasion as this. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 150



Top




Page No 153


From one popular air to another he wandered, each executed with  greater brilliance than the last, but he failed

to excite anything  more than a mild interest and approval.  The old songs which on  other  occasions had been

wont to let loose the song birds of the  battalion  seemed to have lost their power.  It was not gloom, but a

settled and  immovable apathy which apparently nothing could break. 

"This is going awfully slow," said Major Bayne to Barry.  "I wish  something could be done." 

"The boys are tired out," answered Barry, himself weary and sick of  the performance and longing more than

anything else for solitude  and  his cot. 

The Commanding Officer came over and sat beside them.  He was  obviously worried and uneasy. 

"I don't like this," he said to the major.  "Coleman is doing his  best, and is doing mighty well, but there is no

heart in the boys,  and it isn't entirely due to physical weakness.  I wish we could  start something that would

wake them up before they leave.  They  would sleep much better." 

"The Pilot here can do it," said Major Bayne in an undertone, "but  I rather hate to ask him for he is pretty

much all in." 

They sat a little while longer listening to the men's half hearted  drawling of "The Tulip and the Rose." 

"This won't do," said the O. C. abruptly.  "Get Dunbar over here." 

"Dunbar," said the O. C. when Barry had come to him.  "This thing  is as dull as ditchwater.  I want to get the

boys started up a bit.  They are hopelessly dull.  Look at their eyes.  Do you know what  they  are seeing?" 

"Yes, sir," said Barry, "they are seeing what they have been  looking at for the last thirteen days." 

"You are right, Dunbar, and that's what I want them to forget.  Now  I know you don't feel very fit, and I hate

to ask you, but I  believe  you can do something for the men with that violin of yours.  What do  you say?" 

"I have already sent a man for it," said Major Bayne.  "I knew he'd  do it, and his violin lies there under the

piano." 

Without announcement or preface Barry walked straight to the stage  where Coleman, having miserably failed

to strike fire with "The  Tulip  and the Rose," was grinding out, with great diligence and  conscientious energy,

"Irish Eyes."  Barry picked up his violin  from  the floor, mounted the stage, laid his violin on the piano,  then

he  took his place behind the pianist and, bending over him,  reached down,  caught him under the legs and

while still in full  tide of his  performance, lifted him squarely off the stool and  deposited him upon  a chair at

one side of the stage.  Then,  ignoring the amazed look upon  Coleman's face, he proceeded gravely  to tune his

violin to the piano.  The act itself, the cool neatness  with which it was performed, the  astonished face of the

outraged  pianist, all together created a  situation excessively funny.  The  effect upon the audience was first  one

of surprise, then of  unalloyed delight.  Immediately every man in  the hall was wide  awake, and as the humour

of the situation grew upon  them, they  began to cheer in quite a lively manner. 

When Barry put his violin to his chin they cheered again, for often  had he bewitched them with the magic of

his instrument. 

Before he began to play, he glanced over his shoulder at the  discomfited Coleman and remarked in an

undertone, perfectly audible  throughout the hall, "Now we'll have some music." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 151



Top




Page No 154


Again the audience went off in a perfect storm of delighted cheers,  which were renewed from time to time as

Barry would turn looking  with  a grave face upon the still amazed Coleman, not yet quite  recovered  from his

first astonishment. 

When quiet was finally restored, Barry began to play.  For his  opening number he made a daring choice.  It

was the intricate but  altogether tuneful Ballade and Polonaise by Vieuxtemps.  Throughout  the somewhat

lengthy number he held his audience fixed under the  mastery of his art.  It was a triumph immediate and

complete.  When  he had finished the last brilliant movement of the Polonaise, the  men  burst again into

enthusiastic cheering, moved not only by the  music  but more by the spirit of their chaplain, which they could

not fail to  understand and appreciate. 

He had already achieved what the O. C. had desired, but he was not  yet done with them.  Having finished his

classical selection, which  he was quite well aware Coleman could not touch, he turned to the  latter and

gravely motioned him to the piano stool.  Coleman  hesitated, not knowing quite what would be demanded of

him. 

"Come on, Coleman, be a sport," shouted a young officer, the  audience joining once more in encouraging

cheers. 

Still Coleman hesitated.  One never knew just what vagary the  chaplain might put on.  Failing to move him by

imploring gesture,  Barry finally approached him, and with elaborate, courteous  formality, offered him his

hand, and finally conducted him to the  piano stool.  Again the delighted audience went into a roar of  cheers. 

From that moment, and for a full hour, Barry had them at his will,  now listening spellbound to some simple

old heart song, now beating  hand and foot to a reel, now roaring to the limit of their lung  power  some old and

wellloved popular air. 

"Ain't he a bird?" said the major to the Commanding Officer. 

"He's fine," assented the Commanding Officer with a great sigh.  "I  can't tell you what a burden he has lifted

from me.  It's worth a  week's rest to the men, and, poor chaps, they need it."  Lowering  his  voice, he leaned

over to the major and said, "We may be going  up again  tomorrow night." 

"Tomorrow night, colonel!" exclaimed the major, aghast. 

"Not a word, but I have exceedingly grave news.  The front line is  driven in.  One of the battalions holding is

completely wiped out." 

"Wiped out?  Good God, and where are the enemy?" 

"As far as I can hear, although I haven't the particulars, they  have broken through from Hooge to Hill 60, are

through Sanctuary  Wood, and down to Maple Copse.  Two relief battalions have gone up  and are holding.  The

chances are we shall have to go to back them  up  tomorrow evening.  It's hard on the boys, for they have

come  through  a long and bitter experience, but not a word of this,  major, to any  one.  We shall let them have

their rest tonight.  That's why I was so  anxious about this entertainment.  That's why I  am particularly  grateful

to that Pilot of ours.  He is a wonder,  and by the look of  him he is about all in.  He is staying  magnificently

with the game.  And now, major, I am going to do  something that will please him  immensely.  At least I think

it  will." 

At a pause in the music, the O. C. arose and moved toward the  stage.  Barry at once stepped back to the rear.

Standing before  the  men, the O. C. spoke briefly: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 152



Top




Page No 155


"I wish to thank in your name, men, our chaplain, and his  assistant,  Mr. Coleman, for the very delightful

evening they have  given us.  I  know how you feel by the way I feel myself.  I need say  no more, and  now,

seeing that we have missed our parade service for  the last two  Sundays, and as I should not like the chaplain

to become  rusty in  his duty, I'm going to ask him to bring our very pleasant  evening to  a close with a little

service such as he himself would  suggest." 

Hardly were the words out of his mouth, when Barry took up his  violin and said: 

"Boys, did you have a good time tonight?" 

"Yes, sir; you bet we had, sir." 

"Well, then, if you had, sing this," and recited for them the first  verses of the old hymn, 

"Abide with me, fast falls the even tide." 

When they had sung the first verse, he said again: 

"Now sing these words," and once more he recited the stirring  verse: 

"I fear no foe, with Thee at hand to bless." 

When they had finished the verse, he said to them 

"Shall we have another?" 

"Go on, sir!" they said.  "Sure thing!"  "Finish it up!" 

"Then," said Barry, "sing these words": 

"I need Thy presence every passing hour,  What but Thy grace can  foil the tempter's power." 

Then when he had finished the verse, he dropped the violin and,  moving to the edge of the platform, said, in a

voice vibrant with  emotion: 

"Don't sing these words, but say them as I play them for you." 

He then recited the moving words with which the old hymn closes: 

"Hold Thou Thy cross before my closing eyes;  Shine through the  gloom and point me to the skies;  Heaven's

morning breaks, and earth's  vain shadows flee,  In life, in death, O Lord, abide with me." 

"I want every one of you to say the words to himself as I play  them." 

In longdrawn, tremulous notes he voiced the beautiful plea for aid  in the hour of man's supreme need, which

finds expression in the  first two lines.  Then, with his bow gripping the strings in a  great  sweeping crescendo,

he poured forth in full strong chords the  triumphant faith with which the hymn closes. 

He laid his violin on the piano, stood quite a few moments looking  upon them, then said: 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 153



Top




Page No 156


"Men, listen to these great words.  They might have been written  for us, and for these days;" and he recited to

them the words of  the  Hebrew psalm, eloquent of courage in the face of a crumbling  world: 

"God is our refuge and strength, a very present help in trouble. 

Therefore will not we fear, though the earth be removed, and though  the mountains be carried into the midst

of the sea. 

Though the waters thereof roar and be troubled, though the  mountains shake with the swelling thereof.  Selah. 

There is a river, the streams whereof shall make glad the city of  God, the holy place of the tabernacles of the

Most High. 

God is in the midst of her; she shall not be moved.  God shall help  her and that right early. 

The heathen raged, the kingdoms were moved; he uttered his voice,  the earth melted. 

The Lord of hosts is with us; the God of Jacob is our refuge.  Selah. 

Come, behold the words of the Lord, what desolations he hath made  in the earth. 

He maketh wars to cease unto the end of the earth; he breaketh the  bow, and cutteth the spear in sunder: he

burneth the chariot in the  fire. 

Be still and know that I am God; I will be exalted among the  heathen, I will be exalted in the earth. 

The Lord of hosts is with us; the God of Jacob is our refuge." 

Then they followed him in the General Confession, and the Lord's  prayer. 

"Captain Dunbar," said the O. C., offering him his hand, "you have  done for us tonight a greater thing than

you know just now.  You  will understand better tomorrow.  With all my heart I thank you on  the men's behalf

and on my own behalf, for I assure you I needed it  as much as they did.  I want to assure you, too, sir, that I

received  tonight the thing I needed." 

"Thank you, sir," said Barry simply, too weary to utter another  word, and staggered out, half dead with

exhaustion. 

Half an hour later, as he was leisurely undressing, and drinking  the cup of cocoa which Monroe had prepared

for him, a message  summoned him to the orderly room.  There he found Colonel Leighton  with Major Bayne

and the company commanders. 

"I have a communication here for you, Captain Dunbar," said the  O.  C., "from your D. A. C. S.," and he

passed him a little slip. 

It was the announcement of his "leave." 

"Well, what do you think of that?" said the O. C.  "How does that  suit you?" 

"Well, sir," said Barry, uncertainty and hesitation in his voice,  "I'd like the leave, all right, but can I

conveniently be spared  just  now?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS 154



Top




Page No 157


"Most certainly," said the O. C., "and, what's more, I want you to  go tonight.  Can you get ready?" 

"I suppose so, sir," said Barry, wearily. 

"By Jove! listen to him," said the O. C.  "He hates to leave us,  doesn't he?"  And they all laughed.  "Now,

Dunbar," he said, "no  more  posing.  You catch the leave train tonight at Poperinghe.  As  a  matter of fact, I

think it starts somewhere about twelve." 

"Thank you, sir," said Barry.  "I think I can catch it." 

"Then good luck!" said the O. C., rising from his chair.  "Every  one of us here would like to be in your place,

but since it isn't  himself, every man is glad that it should be you." 

Still Barry hesitated. 

"I really hate to leave you, sir, just now," he said.  "I mean  that," he added with a little nervous laugh. 

"Oh, come on, Dunbar," said the O. C. in a voice whose gruffness  might signify almost any emotion, but with

a touch upon his  shoulder  that Barry knew meant comradeship.  "Say goodbye to the  boys here,  and get out." 

They had just finished the plan for the campaign of the next night,  and every man in that little company knew

that for him this might  be  his last "Goodbye" to the chaplain.  It only added to the depth  of  their feeling that

they knew that of all this Barry was  unconscious.  But, whether it was that unconsciously he had  gathered

something of  the real significance of the situation, or  whether it was that he  himself had reached the limit of

emotional  control, as he passed from  man to man, shaking hands in farewell,  his lips refused to utter a  single

word, but in his eyes were  unshed tears that spoke for him. 

Major Bayne followed him to the door, and outside: 

"Take my horse and Monroe with you, and goodbye, old man.  All  sorts of good luck.  Remember that we all

feel tonight that you  are  really one of us, and that we are better men because we have  known  you.

Goodbye." 

Again Barry was conscious of that strange suggestion, almost of  impending calamity. 

"I hate to go, major," he said.  "I believe I'll wait." 

"Nonsense," said the major impatiently.  "Take your leave when you  get your chance, and have a good time.

You have earned it." 

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG

At Poperinghe the leave train was waiting in the station, and a  little company of officers and men were

having their papers  examined  preparatory to their securing transportation.  Some of  the officers  were from his

own brigade and were known to Barry. 

"A big push on at the front, I hear," said one of them to a friend. 

"Yes, major," said his friend.  "They have been having a perfect  hell of a time." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 155



Top




Page No 158


"By the way, your men are going in tomorrow, I understand," said  the major, turning to Barry. 

"I don't think so, major," replied Barry.  "We have just come out." 

"Oh, well, I had it from fairly good authority that they were going  in tomorrow night." 

Barry hunted up Monroe, whom he found talking to a signaller of the  battalion. 

"Did you boys hear anything about the battalion going up  tomorrow?" 

"Yes, sir," said the signaller promptly.  "We had it over the  wires.  They are going in, all right, tomorrow

night." 

Monroe kicked the signaller on the ankle. 

"Did you hear anything about it, Monroe?" enquired Barry. 

"No, sir.  I don't believe these rumours at all.  They are always  flying about." 

"But you say you got it over the wires?" said Barry to the  signaller. 

"Yes, sir.  That is, sir, of course, we get a lot of messages.  Perhaps I'm mixed up," said the signaller in very

evident confusion. 

"And you haven't heard anything, Monroe?" said Barry. 

"No, sir, not a thing, and I think I would have heard if there had  been any truth in it." 

Something in the childlike expression of innocence upon Monroe's  face wakened Barry's suspicion. 

"Look here, Monroe," he said, "don't lie to me.  Now, I'm talking  to you as your chaplain.  Tell me the truth.

Have you heard of the  battalion going in tomorrow?" 

Under Barry's eye Monroe began to squirm. 

"Well, sir, to tell you the truth, I did hear a rumour of that  kind." 

"And you?" said Barry, turning upon the signaller, "tell me the  truth." 

"Well, sir, it's just as I said.  We had it over the wires.  The  battalion is going in." 

"Very well, get my stuff, Monroe," said Barry, quietly.  "I'm going  back." 

"I beg your pardon, sir." 

"Do you hear me?  Get my stuff; I'm not going out tonight."  Barry's tone admitted no further talk, and

Monroe, swearing deeply  at  his friend the signaller and at his own stupidity, and  especially at  his own "lack

of nerve to see his lie through,"  hunted out Barry's  baggage and stood ready for his officer to  return. 

"Hello, Dunbar," said the major, as he saw Barry about to mount his  horse.  "What's up?  Forgotten

something?  You'll surely miss your  train." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 156



Top




Page No 159


"I'm not going," said Barry briefly, getting himself settled in his  saddle. 

"Not going!" exclaimed the major.  "What do you mean?  I thought  you were on leave." 

"Changed my mind," said Barry cheerfully. 

"I say, old man," said the major, "there may be nothing in what I  told you about the push.  Anyway, you know

we cannot postpone our  leave until all the fighting is over." 

"Oh, that's all right," replied Barry.  "There are lots of you  combatant chaps in a battalion, but there is only

one chaplain." 

"Oh, hang it all," cried the major, "take your leave.  Well,"  seeing that Barry paid no heed to his advice, "the

best of luck,  old  man," he said, offering his hand.  "I guess you're all right  after  all." 

The exhilaration that had sustained Barry during the evening  suddenly fled, leaving him flat in spirit and limp

in body.  What  he  wanted most of all was sleep, and morning was not so far away.  He rode  back to his hut,

and, bidding Monroe let him sleep all day,  he tumbled  into bed and knew nothing until late in the afternoon.

Monroe, too,  had slept in, and, after rising, had been busy about  the hut, so that  he had no further information

as to the battalion's  movements.  The  chaplain's hut was some distance from Headquarters  and from the

battalion camp.  Hence it came that while Barry was  writing hard at  his letters throughout the remainder of the

afternoon, he was quite  unaware of what was taking place. Monroe,  however, returned about six  o'clock to

say that the battalion had  been "standing to" all  afternoon, but that the general feeling was  that there would be

no  advance until late at night. 

Glad of the opportunity to catch up with his correspondence, Barry  paid little heed to the passing of time.  His

last letter was to  the  V. A. D., in which he poured out the bitterness of his  disappointment  that he was not

even now on his way to Boulogne and  to her, and  expressing the hope that after this "show" was over, he

would be  granted leave, upon which happy event he would with all  speed proceed  to her.  She had been

speaking of a trip to England.  Would it not be a  very wise and proper proceeding that she should  make her

leave to  synchronise with his?  Now he must be off, and so  with love to her,  and with the hope that they might

see London  together 

Just then Monroe came with the startling news that the battalion  had "moved up" hours ago. 

"Which road?" enquired Barry, springing to his feet. 

"Don't know, sir," replied Monroe, who had evidently his own  opinion about matters.  "But I met a padre," he

continued, "who  told  me that there was a stream of wounded passing through the  Brandhoek  Clearing Station.

He said they were very shorthanded  there, sir,"  and Monroe regarded his officer with anxious eyes. 

"I hate to take you up there, Monroe," said Barry with a smile. 

"Oh, that's all right, sir," said Monroe, hastily, "but I guess  we'll have to hurry." 

"I remember, Monroe, that your major and you would have sent me out  of this, but you know well enough

that there's only one place for  me  tonight, and the question is, where is the battalionYpres  Barracks,

Chateau Beige, Zillebeck, or where?" 

"I enquired at the transports, sir," said Monroe, "and no one  appeared to know.  They moved out quietly and

left no word behind." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 157



Top




Page No 160


"All right, we'll go up to Chateau Belge, and if they are not  there, we'll make a shot at Zillebeck," said Barry.

"We'll go  right  away.  We don't need a lot of truck this trip." 

It was a long and tiresome march, but Barry found himself  remarkably fit, and already under the exhilaration

of what was  before  him.  At the Chateau Belge they found no word of their  battalion, but  they were informed

that the shelling on the  Kruisstraat road had been  bad all afternoon, and was still going  on.  The Boches were

paying  particular attention indeed to the  crossroads. 

"All right," said Barry.  "We'll go up and have a look at it,  anyway." 

A hundred yards further up the road they were held up by a sudden  burst of H. E. shells, which fell in near

proximity to the  crossroads  before them. 

"Well, we'll just wait here a few minutes until we can time these  things," said Barry, sitting down by the

roadside. 

As they were waiting there, three soldiers passed them at quick  march. 

"Better wait, boys," called Barry; "they are dropping quite a few  shells at the crossroads." 

"We are runners, sir," said one of them.  "I guess we'll just take  a chance, thank you, sir." 

"All right, boys, if you think best," replied Barry.  "Good luck!" 

"Thank you, sir," they said, and set off at a smart pace. 

While Barry sat listening to the sound of their footsteps upon the  pavement, there came that terrific whine,

followed by an appalling  crash, as a H. E. shell landed full upon the road.  Barry sprang to  his feet.  Three

other shells followed in quick succession, then  there came the sound of hurrying feet and a man appeared,

bleeding  horribly and gasping. 

"Oh, my God!  My God!  They are gone!  They are gone!" 

"Sit down," said Barry.  "Now, where's your wound?" 

"My arm, sir," said the man. 

Barry cut off the bloodsoaked sleeve, ripped open his first aid  dressing, and bound the wound up tightly.

Then he put a tourniquet  upon the arm above the wound. 

"The other boys killed, you say?" he inquired. 

"Yes, sir, blown to pieces.  Oh, my God!" he groaned, shuddering.  "My chum's whole head was blown off,

and the other has his belly  all  torn up." 

"Now look here, old man," said Barry, "you lie down here where you  are, and keep perfectly still," for the

man was throwing himself  about, more from shock than from pain.  "We'll get you to the  dressing station in a

few minutes.  Monroe, run and get the  stretcher  bearers, and I'll go and see how things are up yonder." 

He threw his coat over the wounded man, and set off at a run toward  the crossroads.  He found matters as the

man had said, the two  bodies  lying in a dark patch of bloodsoaked dust, one with head  quite blown  off, and


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 158



Top




Page No 161


the other with abdomen horribly torn. 

He hurried back to the wounded man, who had recovered somewhat from  his shock and was now lying on his

side quietly moaning.  Barry got  from him the names and units of the men who had been killed. 

"I will drop a note to your mother, too, my boy," he said, "and  tell her about your wound." 

"Oh, sir," said the boy quicklyhe was only a boy after all  "don't tell herat least, tell her I'm all right.

I'll be all  right, won't I?" 

"Sure thing," said Barry, "don't you fear.  I won't alarm her, and  I'll tell her what good stuff you are, boy." 

"All right, sir.  Thank you, sir," said the boy quietly. 

"And I'll tell her, too, that you are not worrying a bit, and that  you know that you are in the keeping of your

Heavenly Father.  How  is  that?" 

"Yes, sir," said the boy in a low voice.  "I will be glad to have  you tell her that.  She taught me all that, sir.

Poor mother,  she'll  worry though, I know," he added with a little catch in his  throat. 

"Now you brace up," said Barry firmly.  "You have got off mighty  well.  You have got a nice little blighty

there, and you are going  to  be all right.  I'll give your mother the best report about you,  so  that she won't

worry." 

"Oh, thank you," said the boy, with fervent gratitude, "that will  be fine.  And you are right," he added, a note

of resolution coming  into his voice.  "I got off mighty well, and it's only my left arm,  thank goodness.  I'll

brace up, sir, never fear," he added between  his teeth, choking back a groan. 

Barry accompanied the stretcherbearer back to the chateau and gave  the man over into the care of the C. A.

M. C. 

"Can you put a squad on to digging a grave?" he inquired of the  officer in charge.  "If so, though I'm in an

awful hurry, I'll stay  to bury those poor chaps." 

"Sure thing, we can," said the officer.  "We'll do the very best we  can to hurry it." 

In about an hour and a half Barry was on his way again.  He dodged  the shelling at the crossroads, and

following a track across the  open  fields, arrived at the Zillebeck Bund without adventure. 

Here to his relief he found the battalion.  He made his way at once  to Headquarters, and walked in upon a

meeting of officers. 

"Well, I'm" exclaimed Colonel Leighton, checking himself hard,  "who have we here!  What in hell are you

doing here, Pilot?  I  thought you would be safely in old Blighty by this time," he added,  shaking him warmly

by the hand. 

"Oh, you couldn't work that game on me, colonel," said Barry  cheerily, going round the group of men, who

gave him an eager  welcome.  "You thought you had shipped me off, just as the fun was  starting, but I got on

to you." 

"Well, I'll be darned," said Major Bayne.  "How did you find out?" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 159



Top




Page No 162


Barry told him, adding, "You will have to train your man to lie  more cheerfully." 

"That's what comes of a man's environment," said the major,  disgustedly.  "I was always too truthful,

anyway." 

"Well, sir," said Barry, turning to the colonel.  "I'm awfully glad  to find you here.  I was afraid I'd lost you." 

"Well, gentlemen," said the colonel, "you have all got your orders.  Does any one want to ask a question?

Well, then, it's pretty  simple  after all.  Two companies advance as far as Maple Copse, and  gradually  work up

until they feel the enemy, then put in a block  and hold  against attack, at all costs.  The other two companies

are  to follow  up in support at Zillebeck Village.  Later on, when our  reserves come  up, and when our guns

returnI hear they are pushing  them up  rapidlywe are promised a go at those devils.  Meantime we  have

got  to hold on, but I expect the battalion will be pulled out  very  shortly." 

The flickering candles lit up the faces of the men crowding the  dugout.  They were elaborately careless and

jolly, but their eyes  belied their faces.  Under the careless air there was a tense and  stern look of expectation.

They were all sportsmen, and had all  experienced the anxious nervous thrill of the moments preceding a  big

contest.  Once the ball was off, their nervousness would go,  and they  would be cool and wary, playing the

game for all they had  in them. 

"Now, gentlemen," said the colonel, as they prepared to leave the  dugout, "before I let you go, there is one

thing I want to say.  It's  a tradition of the British army that any soldier or officer  who has  lost his unit marches

toward the sound of the guns.  I am  proud  tonight that we have an example of that old tradition here.  We left

our chaplain behind, and he didn't know where his battalion  had gone,  but he moved toward the sound of the

guns.  That is what  I would  expect from any of you, gentlemen, but it's none the less  gratifying  to find one's

expectations realised." 

Only his flaming face revealed Barry's emotion as the colonel was  speaking. 

"Now then, gentlemen, carry on, and the best of luck." 

"Sir," said Barry, "what about a little prayer?" 

"Fine," said the colonel heartily, while round the room there ran a  murmur of approval. 

Barry pulled out his little Bible and read, not one of the  "fighting psalms" but the tenderly exquisite words of

the  Shepherd's  song.  His voice was clear, steady and ringing with  cheery confidence.  His prayer was in the

spirit of the psalm,  breathing high courage and  calm trust, even in the presence of the  ultimate issue. 

In a single sentence he commended his comrades to the keeping of  the Eternal God of Truth and Justice and

Mercy, asking that they  might be found steadfast in their hour of testing and worthy of  their  country and their

cause. 

Together they joined in the Lord's prayer; then lifting over them  his hands, he closed the little service with

that ancient and  beautiful formula of blessing, which for two thousand years has  sent  men out from the Holy

Place of Meeting to face with hearts  resolved  whatever life might hold for them. 

One by one, as they passed out the officers shook hands with Barry,  thanking him for the service, and

expressing their delight that he  was with them again. 

"What are we going to do with you, Pilot?" inquired the colonel. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 160



Top




Page No 163


"I thought I'd stick around with the boys," said Barry. 

"Well," said the colonel, gravely, "of course, there's no use of  your going up to the attack.  You would only be

in the way.  You  would be an embarrassment to the officers.  That reminds me, there  was a call from Menin

Mill for you this afternoon.  They are having  an awful rush there.  Our own R. A. P. will be in Zillebeck

Village,  and our Headquarters will be there." 

"I'll go there, sir, if you agree," said Barry, and after some  discussion the matter was so arranged. 

In a ruined cellar in the village of Zillebeck, a mile and a half  further in, the R. A. P. was established and

there carried on  during  the desperate fighting of the next three days.  Through this  post a  continuous stream of

wounded passed, the stretcher cases all  night,  the walking cases all day and all night.  In spite of its  scenes of

horror and suffering the R. A. P. was a cheery spot.  The  new M. O.  was strange to his front line business, but

he was of the  right stuff,  cool, quick with his fingers, and undisturbed by the  crashing of  bursting shells.  The

stretcher bearers and even the  wounded  maintained an air of resolute cheeriness, that helped to  make bearable

what otherwise would have been a nightmare of  unspeakable horror.  Attached to the R. A. P. was an outer

building  wherein the wounded  men were laid after treatment.  Thither in a  pause of his work, Barry  would run

to administer drinks, ease the  strain of an awkward  position, speak a word of cheer, say a prayer,  or sing

snatches of a  hymn or psalm.  There was little leisure for  reflection, nor if there  had been would he have

indulged in  reflection, knowing well that only  thus could he maintain his self  control and "carry on." 

With each wounded man there came news of the progress of the  fighting.  The boys were holding splendidly,

indeed were gradually  eating into the enemy front.  They brought weird stories of his  comrades, incidents

pathetic, humorous, heroic, according to the  temperament of the narrator.  But from more than one source

came  tales of Knight's machine gun section to which McCuaig was  attached.  Knight himself had been killed

soon after entering the  line, and  about his men conflicting tales were told: they were  holding a strong  point,

they were blown up, they had shifted their  position, they were  wiped out, they were still "carrying on."

McCuaig was the hero of  every tale.  He was having the time of his  life.  He had gone quite  mad.  He was for

going "out and over"  alone. 

The first authentic account came with young Pickles, now a runner,  who made his way hobbling to

Headquarters with a message from A  Company, and who reported that he had fallen in with McCuaig by the

way, and by him had been commandeered to carry ammunition, under  threat of instant death. 

"Where did you see McCuaig first, Pickles?" Barry inquired, anxious  to learn the truth about his friend. 

"Way up Lover's Walk," said young Pickles, who was in high spirits,  "under a pile of brush and trees.  I

though it was a wildcat, or  something moving and snarlingthe light was kind of dimand when  I  went up

there was McCuaig.  He was alone.  Two or three men were  lying  near him, dead, I guess, and he was

swearing, and talking to  himself  something fierce.  I was scart stiff when he called me to  him.  I went  over, and

he says to me, 'Say, youngster,' just like  that, 'you know  where this walk used to drop down into the trench?

Well, there's a lot  of machine gun ammunition over there, all fixed  up and ready.  You go  and bring it up

here.'  I tried to get out of  it, sayin' I was  bringing a 'hurry up' message down, but he turns  his machine gun on

me, and says, 'Young man, it's only a couple of  hundred yards down  there, and fairly good cover.  They can't

see  you.  Go and bring that  stuff here.  If you don't I'll blow you to  hell just where you stand.'  You bet I

promised.  I got that  ammunition so quick.  Oh, of course,  he's crazy, all right," said  young Pickles, "but he is

fighting like  hell.  I beg pardon, sir." 

"Doctor, I'm going after him," said Barry.  "He will stay there  until he bleeds to death.  He is my oldest friend." 

"All right, padre, if you say so," said the M. O., "but it's a  nasty job.  I should not care for it." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 161



Top




Page No 164


Barry knew the area thoroughly.  He got from young Pickles an exact  description of the location of the spot

where McCuaig had last been  seen, and with the returning stretcher bearers set off for the  wood,  which was

about a thousand yards further on. 

The communication trench leading up to the wood, which had been  constructed with such care and of which

the Canadians were so  proud,  had been blown up from end to end by the systematic and  thorough

bombardment of the three days before.  The little party,  therefore,  were forced to make their way overland by

the light of  the star  shells. 

They reached the wood in safety.  Barry looked about him in utter  bewilderment.  Every familiar feature of the

landscape was utterly  blotted out.  The beautiful ambrosial wood itself, of heavy trees  and  thick tinderbrush,

was a mat of tangled trunks, above which  stood  splintered stubs.  Not a tree, not a branch, hardly a green  leaf

was  left.  Under that mat of fallen trunks were A and C  Companies,  somewhere, holding, blocking, feeling up

toward the Hun. 

The shells were whining overhead, going out and coming in, but  mostly coming in.  None, however, were

falling on the wood because  here friend and foe were lying almost within bayonet length of each  other.  Only

an occasional burst from a machine gun broke the  silence  that hung over this place of desolation and death. 

"That's the company Headquarters," said the stretcher bearer,  pointing to what looked like a bear den, under

some fallen trees.  Barry pushed aside the blanket and poking his head in, found Duff  and  a young lieutenant

working at a table by the light of a  guttering  candle. 

"For the love of God, Pilot," exclaimed Duff, springing up and  gripping Barry's hand, "it's good to see you,

but what are you  doing  here?" 

"I came up for McCuaig," said Barry, after a warm greeting to both. 

"Oh, say, that's good.  We have got him as far as the next dugout  here, the old bear.  I've been trying to get him

out for half a  day.  There's a soldier for you!  He's been potting Boches with his  blessed  machine gun, scouting

from one hole to another for the last  two days,  and he's got a nasty wound.  I'm awfully glad you have  come." 

"How are things going, Duff?" 

"We have got the s so that they can't move a foot, and we'll  hold them, unless they bring up a lot of

reserves." 

"By Jove!  Duff, you boys are wonderful." 

"I say," said Duff, brushing aside the compliment, "did young  Pickles get through?  That young devil is the

limit.  You'd have  thought he was hunting coyotes." 

"Yes, he got through.  Got a blighty though, I guess.  It was he  that told me about McCuaig." 

"Well, Pilot, old man," said Duff, taking him by the arm, "get out!  Get out!  Don't waste time.  There may be a

break any minute.  Get  out of here." 

Duff was evidently in a fever of anxiety.  "You had no right to  come up here anyway; though, by Jove, I'm

glad to see you." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 162



Top




Page No 165


"What's the fuss, Duff?" said Barry.  "Am I in any more danger than  you?  I say," he continued, with tense

enthusiasm, "do you realise,  Duff, that as long as Canada lasts they will talk of what you are  doing up here

these days?" 

"For Heaven's sake, Pilot, get out," said Duff crossly.  "You make  me nervous.  Besides, you have got to get

that wounded man out, you  know.  Come along." 

He hustled Barry out and over to the neighbouring dugout, where  they found McCuaig with his beloved

machine gun still at his side.  The wounded man was very pale, but extremely cheerful, smoking a  cigarette. 

"I'm glad to see you, sir," he said quietly, reaching out his hand. 

"Good old man," said Barry, gripping his hand hard, "but you are a  blamed old fool, you know." 

McCuaig made no reply, but there was a happy light on his face.  Under Duff's compelling urging they got the

wounded man on a  stretcher and started on their long and painful carry. 

"Now, boys," warned Duff, "you are all right up here, except for  machine guns, but don't take any chances

further out.  That's where  the danger is.  When the shells come, don't rush things.  Take your  time.  Now,

goodbye, Pilot, it's worth a lot to have seen you  anyway." 

"Goodbye, old man," said Barry, smiling at him.  "You're the  stuff.  Good luck, old man.  God keep you." 

Duff nodded, and waved him away.  The return trip was made in  comparative quiet. 

"What do you think, doctor?" said Barry, after the M. O. had  completed his examination. 

"Oh, we'll pull him through all right," said the M. O.  "When did  you get this, McCuaig?" he continued,

touching a small wound over  the  kidney. 

"Dunno, rightly.  Guess I got it when we was blown up, yesterday." 

"Then why didn't you come in at once?" inquired the M. O.  indignantly. 

McCuaig looked at him in mild surprise. 

"Why, they was all blown up, and there wasn't anybody to run the  gun." 

The M. O. examined the wound more closely and shook his head at  Barry. 

"We won't touch that now.  We'll just bandage it up.  Are you  feeling pretty comfortable?" 

"Fine," said McCuaig with cheerful satisfaction.  "We held them up,  I guess.  They thought they was going to

walk right over us.  They  was comin' with their packs on their backs.  But the boys changed  their minds for

them, I guess." 

A reminiscent smile lingered upon the long, eaglelike face. 

Half an hour later Barry found a minute to run into the adjoining  room where the wounded lay. 

"Anything you want, McCuaig?" he asked. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 163



Top




Page No 166


"A drink, if you ain't too busy, but I hate to take your time." 

"Oh, you go to thunder," said Barry.  "Take my time!  What am I  for?  Any pain, Mac?" 

"No, not much.  I'm a little sleepy." 

Barry turned the flashlight on his face.  He was startled to find  it grey and drawn.  He brought the M. O., who

examined the wounded  man's condition. 

"No pain, eh, Mac?" 

"No, sir," said McCuaig cheerfully. 

"All right, boy, just lie still," said the M. O., beckoning Barry  after him. 

"He is going out," he said when they reached the dressing room,  "and he's going fast.  That wound in the back

has been bleeding a  long time." 

"Oh, doctor, can't anything be done?  You know he's got a  remarkable constitution.  Can't something be done?" 

"There are times when a doctor wishes he had some other job," said  the M. O., "and this is one of them." 

"I say, doctor, will you get along without me for a while?" said  Barry. 

"Go on," said the M. O., nodding to him. 

Barry took a candle and went in beside his friend.  As he sat there  gazing upon the greying face, the wounded

man opened his eyes. 

"That you, Barry?" he asked with a quiet smile. 

Barry started.  Only in the very first weeks of their acquaintance  had McCuaig called him by his first name,

and never during the past  months had be used anything but his rank title.  Now all rank  distinctions were

obliterated.  They were as man to man. 

"Yes, Mac, it's me.  Do you know what I was thinking about?  I was  thinking of the first time I saw you

coming down that rapid in your  canoe." 

"I remember well, Barry.  I often think of it.  It's a long time  ago," said McCuaig in his soft, slow voice.  "I've

never been sorry  but once that I come, and that time it was my own fault, but I  didn't  understand the game." 

"You've made a great soldier, Mac.  We are all proud of you," said  Barry, putting his hand upon McCuaig's.

McCuaig's long thin  fingers  tightened upon Barry's hand. 

"I think I'm going out," he said, with his eyes on Barry's face.  "What do you think?" 

It was the time for truth telling. 

"Oh, Mac, old man," said Barry, putting his head down close to him  to hide from him the rush of tears that

came to his eyes, "I'm  afraid  you are, and I hate to have you go." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 164



Top




Page No 167


"Why, Barry, you crying for me?" asked McCuaig in a kind of wonder.  "Say, boy, I'm awful glad you feel

that way.  Somehow I don't feel  quite so lonely now." 

"Oh, Mac, you are my oldest, my best friend in the battalion, in  all the world," said Barry. 

"Oh, I just love to hear you say that, boy.  Do you know I wanted  to tell you how I felt about that time on the

boat, you remember?"  Barry nodded.  "Barry, tell me, honest Injun, did I make good as a  soldier?" 

"The best ever," said Barry.  "They all say so, officers and men.  I heard the colonel say so the other day." 

Again the smile came. 

"Barry, it was you that done that for me.  You showed me, and you  done it so nice.  I never forgot that, and I

always wanted to tell  you how I felt about it.  Barry, you done a lot for me." 

"Oh, Mac, don't talk like that," said Barry, trying to keep his  voice steady.  "I did so little and I wanted to do

so much." 

"Say, I like to hear you.  I'd like to stay a little longer just to  be with you, Barry.  I've watched you just like you

was my own boy,  and I've been awful proud of you, but I didn't like to say so." 

The uncovering of the great love of this simple, humble hearted man  broke down Barry's selfcontrol.  He

made no effort to check his  falling tears. 

"I'm gettingkind of weak, Barry," whispered McCuaig.  "I guess I  won't be long, mebbe." 

His words recalled Barry's nerve. 

"Mac, would you like me to say a prayer?" he asked.  "Just as you  feel about it, you know." 

"YesI wouldbut I ain'tyour religionyou knowthoughI  likeawful wellthe wayyou talk

aboutHim." 

"I know you are R. C., Mac, but after all you know we have just the  one Father in Heaven and the one

Saviour." 

"Yes,I know, Barry.  It's all the same." 

Barry had a sudden inspiration. 

"Wait, Mac, a minute," he said. 

He hurried out to the dressing room, seeking a crucifix, but could  find none there. 

"I'll run across to Headquarters," he said. 

"Say, there's a machine gun playing that street awful," said the  M. O.'s sergeant, "to say nothing of

whizzbangs." 

"Oh, that's all right," said Barry.  "I'll make a dash for it." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 165



Top




Page No 168


But at Headquarters he was no more successful.  He went out into  the garden in the rear of the R. A. P., and

returned with two small  twigs.  The M. O. bound them together in the form of a cross.  Barry  took it and

hastened to McCuaig's side. 

The hurried breathing and sunken cheeks of the wounded man showed  that the end was not far.  As Barry

knelt beside him, he opened his  eyes.  There was a look of distress upon his face, which Barry  understood.

God was near.  And God was terrible.  He wanted his  priest. 

"Barry," he whispered, "I've notbeen a good man.  I haven't  been  mean to anybody,but I usedto

swearand fight, and" 

"Mac, listen to me.  We're all the same," said Barry, in a quiet,  clear voice.  "Suppose I'd injured you." 

"You wouldn'tBarry." 

"But suppose I did some real mean thing to you, and then came and  said I was sorry, would you forgive me?" 

"Would II'd never thinkof anythingyou didto me, Barry." 

"Mac, that's the way your Father in Heaven feels to you.  We have  all done wrong, but He says, 'I will blot out

all your sins.'  You  needn't fear to trust Him, Mac." 

"I guessthat's so, BarryI guess that'sall right." 

"Yes, it's all right.  Now I'll say a prayer.  Look, Mac!" 

He held up the little wooden cross before his eyes.  A smile of joy  and surprise transfigured the dying face. 

"I see it!I seeit!" he whispered, and made a movement with his  lips.  Barry laid the cross upon them, and

with that symbol of the  Divine love and of the Divine sacrifice pressed to the dying lips,  he  prayed in words

such as a child might use. 

For some time after the prayer McCuaig lay with his eyes shut, then  with a sudden accession of strength, he

opened them and looking up  into Barry's eyes, said: 

"Barry, I'm all right now. . . .  You helped me again." 

The long thin hands, once of such iron strength, began to wander  weakly over the blanket, until touching

Barry's they closed upon  it,  and held it fast. 

"Iwon'tforgetyouever" he whispered.  The nerveless  fingers with difficulty lifted Barry's hand to

the cold lips.  "GoodbyeBarry" he said. 

"Goodbye, dear old comrade.  Goodbye, dear old friend," said  Barry in a clear quiet voice, gazing through

his falling tears  straight into the dying eyes. 

"Goodnight"  The whisper faded into silence.  A quiet smile lay  on the white face.  The eyes closed, there

was a little tired sigh,  and the brave tender spirit passed on to join that noble company of  immortals who

abide in the Presence of the Eternal God of Truth and  Love, and "go no more out forever," because they are

akin to Him. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG 166



Top




Page No 169


In the sorely tortured graveyard, beside the little shellwrecked  Zillebeck church, in a hole made by an

enemy shell, they laid  McCuaiga fitting resting place for one who had lived his days in  the free wild

spaces of the Canadian west, a fitting tomb for as  gallant a soldier as Canada ever sent forth to war to make

the  world  free. 

That night the battalion was relieved.  Worn, spent, but with  spirit unbroken, they crawled out from under that

matted mass of  tangled trunks, sending out their wounded before them, and leaving  their buried dead behind

them, to hold with other Canadian dead the  line which from St. Julien, by Hooge, Sanctuary Wood, and

Maple  Copse, and Mount Sorel, and Hill 60, and on to St. Eloi, guards the  way to Ypres and to the sea.  To

Canada every foot of her great  domain, from sea to sea, is dear, but while time shall last Canada  will hold

dear as her own that bloodsoaked sacred soil which her  dead  battalions hold for Honour, Faith and Freedom. 

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS

The leave train pulled into the Boulogne station exactly twentysix  hours late.  As Barry stepped off the train

he was met by the  R. T.  O., an old Imperial officer with a brisk and important  military  manner. 

"You are the O. C. train, sir?" he inquired. 

"I am, sir," replied Barry, saluting. 

"You have had a hard time, I understand," said the R. T. O.,  drawing  him off to one side and speaking in a

low tone. 

"Yes sir, we HAVE had a hard time," replied Barry, "at least the  men have.  This is my report, sir." 

The R. T. O. took the document, opened it, glanced hurriedly  through it. 

"Ah," he said, "ninetyseven casualties, thirteen fatal.  Very bad.  Six burned.  This is truly terrible." 

"There were only two soldiers burned, sir," replied Barry, "but it  IS terrible, especially when you think that

the men were going on  leave and were supposed to have got quit of the danger zone." 

"Very, very terrible," said the officer.  "You ran off the track, I  understand." 

"No, sir, it was a collision.  There must have been gross  carelessness, sir," said Barry.  "I trust there will be an

investigation.  I have taken the liberty to suggest that, sir, in  my  report." 

Barry's voice was stern. 

"You need have no apprehension on that score, sir," said the  R. T.  O., with his eyes still upon the report.

"This is very clear  and  concise.  I see you make no mention of your own services in  connection  with the affair,

but others have.  I have had a most  flattering  telegram from the officer commanding the R. A. M. C., as  also

from the  Divisional Commander, mentioning your initiative and  resourcefulness.  I assure you this will not be

forgotten.  I  understand you are a  padre?" 

"Yes, sir," replied Barry, who was getting rather weary of the  conversation. 

"All I have to say, then, sir, is that the Canadian army must be  rich in combatant officers for, if you will

pardon me, it strikes  me  that there is a damned good combatant officer lost in you." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 167



Top




Page No 170


"If I were a better padre," replied Barry, "I would be content." 

"I fancy you have little ground for complaint on that score," said  the R. T. O., for the first time smiling at

him. 

"May I ask, sir," replied Barry, "if my responsibility ends here?" 

"Yes, unless you want to take charge of the boat." 

"I'd rather not, sir, if you please.  How long before she sails?" 

"About three hours.  Have you anything to do?" 

"I should like to visit the R. A. M. C. hospital.  I should also  like to phone the American hospital at Etaples." 

"Very well, you can easily do both.  I will run you up in my car,  if you care to wait a few moments until I put

through some little  matters here.  Then if you will be good enough to join me at  breakfast, I can drive you up

afterwards to the hospital.  This is  my  car.  I think you had better step in and sit down; you look  rather  used

up." 

"Will you allow me to speak to some of the men first, sir?" 

"Oh, certainly.  Do anything you like.  There are your men." 

As Barry moved along the line of men drawn up on the platform, he  was followed by a rising murmur of

admiration, until, as he reached  a  group of officers at the end, a little Tommy, an English cockney,  lifting

high his rifle, sang out: 

"Naow then, lads, 'ere's to our O. D," adding after the cheers,  "'e's a bit ov ol raaght, 'e is!" 

"Men," said Barry, "I thank you for your cheers, but I thank you  more for your splendid behaviour night

before last.  It was beyond  praise.  You couldn't save all your comrades, but you would  willingly  have given

your lives to save them.  That's the true  spirit of the  Empire.  It's the spirit of Humanity.  It's the  spirit of God.  If

I  were a combatant officer" 

"You'd be a good 'un, sir," cried a voice. 

"If I were a combatant officer, I should like to lead men like you  into action." 

"We'd follow you to 'ell, sir," shouted the little cockney. 

"Oh, I hope not," replied Barry.  "I'm not going that way.  May I  say, in wishing you every good luck, that you

are a credit to your  country, and I can say nothing higher.  I wish to thank the  officers  who so splendidly did

their duty and gave such valuable  service.  Good  luck to you, boys, and give my love to all at home." 

Again the men broke into cheers, and Barry, shaking hands with the  officers, turned away toward the car.  As

he was entering the car,  Sergeant Matthews came over to him. 

"I want to thank you, sir, for getting me free of the R. A. M. C.  up there.  I feel rather bad, but since my wife

is waiting to meet  me  in London, I was anxious to get through." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 168



Top




Page No 171


"All right, sergeant," replied Barry.  "I'll get you to a hospital  in London, when we arrive.  You are not feeling

too badly, I hope." 

"A little shook up, sir," said the sergeant. 

At the R. A. M. C. hospital a bitter disappointment awaited him.  He found that the V. A. D. had departed for

England, but just where  no one seemed to know.  In her last letter to him, received before  the last tour in the

trenches, she had mentioned the possibility of  a  visit to London, and had promised him further information

before  her  departure, but no further word had he received. 

His inquiry at Etaples was equally unproductive of result.  Paula  and her father had also gone to England.

They had taken the  V. A. D.  with them, and their address was unknown.  The matron of  the hospital  believed

that they had planned a motor trip to  Scotland, for they had  carried Captain Neil Fraser off with them,  and

were planning a visit  to his home.  They expected to return in  about three weeks. 

By the bitterness of his disappointment, Barry realised how greatly  he had counted on this meeting with his

friends.  Were it not for  the  hope of being able to discover them in England, he would have  turned  back up the

line, there and then, and found among the only  friends he  had on this side of the ocean relief from the

intolerable weight of  loneliness that was bearing him down. 

He walked out to the cemetery, and stood beside his father's grave.  There for the first time it came over him

that henceforth he must  go  all the way of his life without the sight of that face, without  the  touch of that hand

on his shoulder, without the cheer of that  voice.  In floods his sense of loss swept his soul.  It took all  his

manhood  to refrain from throwing himself prone upon the little  mound and  yielding to the agony that flooded

his soul, and that  wrought in his  heart physical pain.  By a resolute act of will, he  held himself  erect.  While he

blamed and despised himself for his  weakness, he was  unable to shake it off.  He did not know that his  mental

and emotional  state was in large measure a physical reaction  from the prolonged  period of exhausting strain,

his treble tour in  the trenches, with its  unrelieved sense of impending destruction,  that its endless procession

of broken, torn bodies, with its nights  of sleepless activity, with  its eternal struggle against depression,

consequent upon the loss of  his comrades, its eternal striving after  cheeriness and more than all  the shock of

the train wreck, with its  scenes of horror; all this had  combined to reduce his physical  powers of resistance to

the point of  utter exhaustion. 

As he stood there in that cemetery with its rows of crosses,  silently eloquent of heroism and of sacrifice, the

spirit of the  place seemed to breathe into him new life.  As his eyes fell upon  the  cross bearing his father's

name, he seemed to see again that  erect and  gallant figure, instinct with life and courage.  There  came to him

the  memory of a scene he had never forgotten.  Again he  was with his  father in the little home cottage.  How

dear it had  been to him then!  How dear to him, today!  Once more he felt the  strong grip of his  father's hand

and heard his father's voice: 

"Good night, boy.  We don't know what is before us, defeat, loss,  suffering, that part is not in our hands

altogether, but the shame  of  the quitter never need and never shall be ours." 

Unconsciously as if he were in the presence of a superior officer,  he lifted his hand in salute, and with a sense

of renewal of his  vital energies he returned to the boat. 

During the crossing his mind was chiefly occupied with the problem  of discovering the whereabouts of the V.

A. D. or his American  friends.  He had never learned her London address, if indeed she  had  one.  He

remembered that she had told him that her home had  been  turned into a hospital.  He had some slight hope

that he might  be able  to trace her by the aid of her uncle. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 169



Top




Page No 172


Arrived in London, his first duty was to see Sergeant Matthews,  whose injuries in the wreck were apparently

more serious than at  first supposed, safely disposed in a hospital ambulance.  Thereupon  he proceeded to the

Hotel Cecil, and set himself seriously to the  solution of his problem.  He was too weary for clear thinking and

as  the result of long, confused and very vexing cogitation, he  resolved  upon a letter to Commander Howard

Vincent, R. N. R.  This,  after much  labour, he succeeded in accomplishing.  Thereafter, much  too weary for

food, he proceeded to his room, where he gave himself  up to the  unimaginable luxury of a bath in a clean tub,

and with an  unstinted  supply of clean towels, after which riotous indulgence,  he betook  himself to bed.  As he

lay stretched between the smooth  clean sheets,  he found it impossible to recall a state of existence  when clean

sheets had been a nightly experience.  The chief regret  of these  semiunconscious moments preceding

slumber was that sleep  would rob  him of this delicious sense of physical cleanness and  wellbeing. 

He was wakened by a knock at his door, followed by a hesitating  apology for intrusion.  Rejoicing in the

luxury of his surroundings,  and in the altogether satisfying discovery that he might sleep  again,  he turned

over and once more was lost in profound slumber.  A second  time he was aroused by a mild but somewhat

anxious inquiry  as to his  welfare. 

"I want nothing, only a little more sleep," and again luxuriating  for a few moments in his clean sheets and his

peaceful environment,  he resigned himself to sleep, to waken with a comfortable sense of  pleasant weariness,

which gradually passed into a somewhat acute  sense of hunger. 

He decided, after due consideration, that he would plumb the depths  of bliss, unmeasured and unknown, and

have breakfast in bed.  He  went  to the window and looked out upon the murky light of a London  day.  He

decided that it was still early morning, and rang for the  waiter.  He  was informed by that functionary that

breakfast was  impossible, but  that if he desired he could be supplied with an  early dinner. 

"Dinner!" exclaimed Barry. 

He looked at his watch, but found that he had neglected to wind it,  and that consequently it had stopped. 

"What time do you make it, waiter?" 

"Half after six, sir." 

He decided that he would rise for dinner, 'phoned for a paper and  his mail, and lay back between the sheets

once more, striving to  recapture that rapturous sense of welfare that had enwrapped him  the  night before.

Luxuriating in this delightsome exercise, he  glanced  lazily at the heading of his paper, and then cried, as the

paper boy  was leaving the room, 

"Hello! here, boy! what day is this?" 

"Friday, sir," said the boy, gazing at him in astonishment. 

"Friday?  Are you sure?" 

"Yes, sir, Friday, sir.  What does the paper say, sir?" 

"Oh, yes, of course.  All right." 

He had gone to bed on Wednesday night.  He knew that because he  remembered the date of his letter to

Commander Howard Vincent,  R. N.  R.  He made the astounding discovery that he had slept just  fortyfour

hours.  Then he made a second discovery and that was  that of his  precious eight days' leave, three were


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 170



Top




Page No 173


already gone. 

After he had dined he inquired at the desk for his mail, and  searched through the telegrams, but there was

nothing for him. 

Then he betook himself to the streets, aware that the spectre of  loneliness was hard on his trail, and swiftly

catching up with him.  London was roaring around him in the dark, like a jungle full of  wild  beasts, of whose

shapes he could catch now and then horrid  glimpses.  Among all the millions in the city, he knew of no living

soul to whom  he could go for companionship, nor was there anything  in form of  amusement that specially

invited him. 

There was Grand Opera, of course, but from its associations with  his father he knew that that would bring

him only acute misery.  Gladly would he have gone to the hospitals, but they would be shut  against him at this

hour.  He bought an evening paper, and under a  shaded lamp studied the amusement columns.  Some of the

Revues he  knew to be simply tiresome, others disgusting.  None of them  appealed  to him.  Aimlessly he

wandered along the streets, heedless  of his  direction, conscious now and then of an additional pang of

wretchedness as he caught a glimpse now and then at a theatre door  of  young officers passing in with sweet

faced girls on their arms, 

At length in desperation he followed one such pair, and found  himself listening to Cinderella.  Its light and

delicate fancy, its  sweet pathos, its gentle humour lured him temporarily from his  misery, but often there

came back upon him the bitter memory of  his  comrades in their horrid environment of filth, danger and

wretchedness. 

He found some compensation in the thought that these officers  beside him were like himself on leave, and

while he envied them, he  did not grudge them their delight in the play, and their obviously  greater delight in

their lovely companions beside them, but this  again was neutralised by the bitter recollection of his own hard

fate  which denied him a like joy. 

After the play he stood in the entrance hall, observing the crowd,  indulging his sense of illusage at the hands

of fate as he saw the  officers lingering with many unnecessary touches over the cloaking  of  their fair partners,

and as he caught the answering glances and  smiles  that rewarded their attentions. 

His eyes followed the manoeuvrings of the painted ladies as they  hovered about the doors, boldly busy with

their profession.  He  understood as never before the nature of their lure and the  overpowering subtlety of the

temptation cast by them over the  lonely  soldier in London. 

Close at his side he heard a voice: 

"How do you like it, boy?  Not bad, eh?" 

"Awfully jolly, dad.  It's perfectly fine of you." 

He turned and saw a greyhaired gentleman, with upright soldierly  figure, and walking with him, arm in arm,

a young officer,  evidently  his son.  He followed them slowly to the door, and eager  to share if  he might the joy

of their comradeship, he listened to  their talk.  Then as they disappeared into the darkness, sick at  heart, he

passed  out of the door, stood a moment to get his  bearings, and sauntered  beyond the radius of the subdued

light  about the entrance, into the  darkness further on. 

He had gone but a few paces, and was standing beneath a shaded  corner light, meditating the crossing of the

roaring street, when  he  heard behind him an eager voice crying, 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 171



Top




Page No 174


"Captain Dunbar!  Captain Dunbar!" 

Swiftly he turned, and saw in the dim light a dainty figure, opera  coat flowing away from gleaming arms and

shoulders, a face with its  halo of gold brown hair, with soft brown eyes ashine and eager  parted  lips, a vision

of fluttering, bewildering loveliness bearing  down upon  him with outstretched hands. 

"What," he gasped, "you!  Oh, you darling!" 

He reached for her, gathered her in his arms, drew her toward him,  and before either he or she was aware of

what he intended to do,  kissed her parting lips. 

"Oh, how dare you!" she cried, aghast, pushing him back from her,  her face in a red flame.  "Oh, I'm so glad.  I

was afraid I should  lose you." 

Barry, appalled at his own temerity, his eyes taking in the sweet  beauty of her lovely face, stood silent,

trembling. 

"Well, aren't you going to tell me you are glad to see me?" she  cried, smiling up at him saucily. 

"Phyllis," he murmured, moving toward her. 

"Stop," she said, putting her hands out before her, as if to hold  him off.  "Remember where you are.  I ought to

be very angry,  indeed." 

She drew him toward a dark wall. 

"But you aren't angry, Phyllis.  If you only knew how I have wanted  you in this awful place.  Oh, I have

wanted you." 

She saw that he was white and still trembling. 

"Have you, Barry?" she asked, gently.  "Oh, you poor boy.  I know  you have been through horrible things.  No,

Barry, don't.  You  awful  man," for his hands were moving toward her again.  "You must  remember  where you

are.  Look at all these people staring at us." 

"People," he said, as if in a daze.  "What difference do they make?  Oh, Phyllis, you are so wonderfully lovely.

I can't believe it's  you, but it is, it is!  I know your eyes.  Are you glad to see me?"  he asked shyly, his hungry

eyes upon her face. 

"Oh, Barry," she whispered, the warm flush rising again in her  cheeks, "can't you see?  Can't you see?  But

what am I thinking  about?  Come and see mamma, and there's another dear friend and  admirer of yours with

her." 

"Who?  Not Paula?" 

"No, not Paula," she said, with a subtle change in her voice.  "Come and see!" 

She took his arm and brought him back to a motor standing at the  theatre entrance. 

"Oh, mamma, I have had such a race," she cried excitedly, "and I  have captured him.  Barry, my mother." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 172



Top




Page No 175


Barry took the offered hand, and gazed earnestly into the sad brown  eyes that searched his in return. 

"And here's your friend," said Phyllis. 

"Hello, Pilot," said a voice from a dark corner of the car. 

"What, Neil!  Oh, you boy," he cried in an ecstasy, pushing both  hands at him.  "You dear old boy.  How is the

arm, eh? all right?" 

"Oh! doing awfully well," said Captain Neil.  "And you?" 

"Oh, never so well in all my life," cried Barry.  "Yet, to think of  it, ten minutes ago, or when was it, I was in

there a miserably  homesick creature, envious of all the happy people about me, and  now" 

While he was speaking, his eyes were on Mrs. Vincent's face, but  his hand was holding fast to her daughter's

arm.  "Now it's a  lovely  old town, and full of dear people." 

"Where are you putting up?" asked Mrs. Vincent. 

"The Cecil." 

"Let us drive you there then," she said. 

During the drive Barry sat silent for the most part, listening to  Phyllis talking excitedly and eagerly beside

him, answering at  random  the questions which came like rapid fire from them all, but  planning  meanwhile

how he should prolong these moments of bliss. 

"How about supper?" he cried, as they arrived in the courtyard of  the hotel.  "Come in.  I want you to; you see

I have so much to ask  and so much to tell Captain Fraser here, and three of my days are  gone already.

Besides, I want you to awfully." 

Mrs. Vincent looked at his face, which for all its brightness was  worn and deeplined, and her compassionate

motherly heart was  stirred. 

"Of course we'll come.  We want to see you and to hear about your  experiences." 

"Oh, bully!" cried Barry.  "I shall always remember how good you  are to me tonight." 

He was overflowing with excitement. 

"Oh, this is great, Neil.  It's like having a bit of the old  battalion here to see you again." 

While waiting for their orders to be filled at the supper table,  Captain Neil turned suddenly to Barry and said,

"What's all this  about a train wreck and the gallant O. C. train?" 

"Yes, and this rescuing of men from burning cars," exclaimed  Phyllis. 

"And knocking out insubordinates." 

"And being mentioned in despatches." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 173



Top




Page No 176


"And receiving cheers at the station." 

"Now where did you get all that stuff?" inquired Barry. 

"Why, all London is ringing with it," said Captain Neil. 

"Nonsense," said Barry; "who's been stuffing you?" 

"Well," said Phyllis, "we came across your sergeant today in the  hospital.  Such a funny man." 

"Who?  Fatty Matthews?" asked Barry, turning to Captain Neil. 

"Yes, it was Fatty," said Captain Neil, "and if you had your rights  by his account, you ought to be in

command at this moment of an  army  corps at the very least.  But you were O. C. leave train, were  you  not?" 

"Yes, to my dismay I was made O. C., but I met a chap, Captain  Courtney, a very decent fellow, my adjutant,

and made him carry  on." 

"My word, that was a stroke!" 

"We had a wreck, a ghastly affair it was, though it might have been  a lot worse.  The R. A. M. C. people did

magnificently, and the men  behaved awfully well, so that we managed to get through." 

"And what about the O. C.?" inquired Captain Neil. 

"Oh, nothing special.  He just saw that the others carried on.  Now  tell me about you people.  What have you

been doing and what are  you  going to do?" 

"Well, 'we're here, because we're here,'" chanted Captain Neil. 

"And why didn't you send me word as to your movements?" said Barry.  "What hours of agony you would

have spared me!" 

"But I did," replied Phyllis.  "I sent you our town address and  told you everything." 

"Now isn't that rotten!" exclaimed Barry.  "Never mind, I've found  you, and now what's the programme?" 

"Well," cried Captain Neil with great enthusiasm, "we are all off  to Edinburgh tomorrow, where we meet

the Howlands, and then for a  motor trip through the Highlands and to my ancestral home." 

Barry's face fell.  "Tomorrow?" he said blankly, with a quick look  at Phyllis.  "And you are all going?" 

"Not I," said Mrs. Vincent, "but why should you not join the party?  You need just such a change.  It would do

you good." 

"Sure thing he will," cried Captain Neil. 

During the supper they had firmly resolved to taboo the war.  They  talked on all manner of subjects, chiefly of

the proposed motor  trip,  but in spite of the ban their talk would hark back to the  trenches.  For Captain Neil

must know how his comrades were faring,  and how his  company was carrying on, and Barry must tell him of

their losses, and  all of the great achievements wrought by the men  of their battalion.  And Barry because his


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 174



Top




Page No 177


own heart was full of  all their splendid deeds  let himself go.  He told how Sally and  Booth had met their last

call,  of the M. O. and his splendid work  in rescuing the wounded. 

"No word in all of this of the Pilot, I observe," interjected  Captain Neil. 

"Oh, he just carried on!" 

Then he told how at last the M. O. went out, and how on his face  there was only peace.  He had to tell of

Corporal Thom, and how he  gave himself for his comrades and how Cameron kept the faith, a  long  list of

heroes he had to enumerate, of whom the world was not  worthy,  whose deeds are unknown to fame, but

whose names are  recorded in the  books of God.  And then reverently he told of  McCuaig. 

As Barry talked, his heart was far away from London.  He was seeing  again that line of mud bespattered men,

patiently plodding up the  communication trench.  He was looking upon them sleeping with worn  and weary

faces, in rain and mudsoaked boots and puttees, down in  their flimsy, dark dugouts.  He was hearing again the

heavy "crash"  of the trench mortar, the earth shaking "crumph" of the high  explosive, the swift rush of the

whizbang.  Before his eyes he saw  a  steady line of bayonets behind a crumbling wall, then a quick  rush to

meet the attack, bomb and rifle in hand.  He saw the  illumined face of  his dying friend. 

As he told his tale, his face was glowing, his eyes gleaming as  with an inner fire. 

"Oh, God's Mercy!" he cried, "they are men!  They are men!  Only  God could make such men." 

"Yes, only God," echoed Mrs. Vincent after a long pause.  "They are  God's men, and to God they go at last.

Truly they are God's own  men." 

While Barry was speaking, Phyllis, her hands tightly clasped, was  leaning forward listening with glistening

eyes and parted lips.  Suddenly she rose, and went hurriedly to the door. 

"Forgive me," said Barry, turning to Mrs. Vincent.  "I should not  have talked about these things.  It's Neil here

that drew me out.  It's his fault." 

In a few minutes Captain Neil arose and saying, "I'll see where  Phyllis has gone," went out at the same door. 

"They are very great friends," said Mrs. Vincent.  "We are very  fond of Captain Fraser.  Indeed, he is like one

of our family." 

"A fine, brave chap he is," said Barry warmly, but with a queer  chill at his heart. 

"Phyllis has made some very delightful friends in France.  Those  Americans at Etaples were very good to

her," and she continued to  chat in her soft, gentle voice, to which Barry gave a courteous  hearing but very

casual replies.  His heart and his ears were  attentive for the returning footsteps of those who had so abruptly

deserted them.  While Mrs. Vincent was talking, an ugly question  was  thrusting itself upon his attention,

demanding an answer.  He  could  seeany one with eyes could seethat there was between  Phyllis and  his

friend Captain Neil some understanding.  Just what  was between  them Barry longed to know.  It flashed upon

him that  upon the answer  to that question his whole future hung, for if this  girl was more than  friend to

Captain Neil, then the joy of life had  for him been  quenched.  No motor trip for him tomorrow.  He had  had

enough  heartwrenching to bear as it was without that.  No!  If  between these  two a closer relation than that of

mere friendship  existed, his way  was clear.  He would return to the trenches to  morrow. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 175



Top




Page No 178


"Oh, here you are, dear," said Mrs. Vincent, as Phyllis and Captain  Neil returned to the room.  "You found the

air too close, I fear." 

"No," said Phyllis with simple sincerity, "it was Barry.  I saw  those men, and I could not bear it.  I can't bear it

now."  Her  lips  were still trembling, and her eyes were filled with tears. 

"And yet," said Barry, "when you were over there in the midst of it  all, you never once weakened.  That's the

wonder of it.  You just  go  on, doing what you must do.  You haven't time to reflect, and  it's  God's mercy that it

is so.  Thank God we have our duty to do  no matter  what comes.  Without that life would be unbearable." 

"Now, what about tomorrow?" said Captain Neil briskly, as Mrs.  Vincent rose from the table.  "We must

settle that.  What about it,  Barry?" 

"I don't know.  Do you think I should go?  It's your party and it's  already made up." 

"Not quite," said Phyllis, looking shyly at him.  "You belong to  the party more than any of us, you know." 

"Then what about Paula?" said Barry.  "This is her party, is it  not?" 

Phyllis was silent. 

"I think, Captain Dunbar," said Mrs. Vincent, "if you would like  it, you ought to go.  You need something of

the kind, and you will  fit in admirably with the party, I am quite sure.  Today," she  added  with a little laugh,

"I was doubtful as to the propriety of  these  young people going off all the way to Edinburgh by  themselves,

but you  know in these war times we do extraordinary  things, but now if you  join them, my scruples will be

removed." 

"Some chaperon," whispered Captain Neil audibly to Phyllis.  Then  he added briskly, "Well, then, that's

settled.  Tomorrow at 8:37  we  meet at King's Cross, 8:37, remember." 

But for Barry the matter was far from settled. 

"I can't quite make up my mind tonight," he said.  "I shall be at  King's Cross, however, in the morning at any

rate." 

"But, Barry," began Phyllis, protesting, "you mustI want" 

She ceased speaking abruptly, her face flushing and then going  suddenly white. 

"Oh, rot, old man," said Captain Neil, impatiently, "you will come.  Of course he'll come," he added to

Phyllis. 

They moved together out of the room, Mrs. Vincent and Captain Neil  leading the way. 

"Oh, Barry, aren't you going?" said Phyllis in a low voice. 

"How can I answer that?" he replied, almost in anger.  "Do YOU ask  me to go?  Do YOU want me to go?" 

"Of course, we all want you to go," said the girl. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 176



Top




Page No 179


"Is that your answer?"  His voice was tense; his face strained.  "If that is all, Phyllis, I must say 'Goodbye'

tonight.  Why  should  I go with you?  Why should I stay here in London?  There's  nothing for  me here.  The

war is the only place" 

"Oh, Barry," she said, her eyes bright with tears, "how unkindly,  how terribly you talk."  Then with a swift

change of mood she  turned  upon him.  "What right have you to talk like that?" she  cried in  sudden wrath.

"What have I donewhat have we done to  you?" 

"Wait, Phyllis," he cried desperately.  "Oh, let them go on," he  added impatiently.  "For Heaven's sake, is there

no place about  here  where I can talk to you?"  They were both pale and trembling.  "I must  talk to you

tonightnowat once."  He stood between her  and the  door.  "Can't you see I love you?  I love you, do you

hear?  If you  don't love me, why should I live?" 

"Oh, Barry," said the girl, in a hurried voice.  "You must not talk  like this.  Come this way.  I know this place."

She hurried out by  a  side door, down a corridor, and into a small parlour, with cosy  corners, where they were

alone. 

"Now, Phyllis," said Barry, facing her, with a settled fierceness  in his voice and manner.  "I am quite mad, I

know, to love you, but  I  do.  I can't help it any more than breathing.  I have no right to  tell  you this, perhaps.  I

am nobody, and I have nothing to offer  any girl.  I see that now.  Oh, I see that clearly now, but I never  thought

of  that part of it before.  I only loved you.  How could I  help it?  I  hardly knew myself until tonight.  But I know

now," he  added in a  voice of triumph, the gloom lifting from his face, and  the fierce  light fading from his

eyes.  "Yes, I know now, Phyllis.  I love you.  I  shall always love you.  I love you and I am glad to  love you.

Nothing  can take that from me." 

All this time she was standing before him, her face white, her lips  parted, a look of wonder, almost of fear, in

the brown eyes, so  bravely holding his, her hands pressed hard upon her bosom, as if  to  stay its tumult. 

"I have no right to say this to you," said Barry again.  "You  belong to a great family.  Perhaps you are rich.

Great Heavens!"  he  groaned.  "I never thought of that.  You are beautiful.  Many  men will  love you, great men

and rich men will love you.  You are  so wonderful.  Why, there's Captain Neil, he" 

"Captain Neil," echoed Phyllis, with infinite scorn in her voice. 

"Well, many men." 

"Many men," she repeated, her lips beginning to tremble.  "Oh,  Barry, can't you see?  You blind boy.  There's

only one man for me,  Barry, and that's you, just you."  She came near to him, laid her  hands upon his breast,

her eyes looking into his. 

"Phyllis," he said, putting his arms round her, a great wonder in  his voice.  "It can't be true!  Oh, it can't be

true!  Yet your  eyes,  your dear eyes say so.  Phyllis, I do believe you love me." 

The little hands slid up around his neck; he drew her close. 

"Phyllis, my dear, dear, love," he whispered. 

He felt her body suddenly relax, and as she leaned backwards in his  arms, still clinging to him, he bent over

her and his lips met hers  in a long kiss. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS 177



Top




Page No 180


CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY

"Just a moment, if you please, Paula.  I should like to get down a  few notes of this bit.  Oh, what a view!  Lake,

moor, hills,  mountains, village!" 

Mr. Howland sprang from the car, sketchbook in hand, and ran  forward to a jutting rock that commanded the

wide valley, flanked  by  hills, in whose bosom lay a loch, shimmering in the morning  light.  The car drew up

on the brow of a long and gently sloping  incline,  which the road followed until it disappeared in a turn at  the

village  at the loch's end. 

"Get the little church tower in, father, and a bit of the castle.  I can see it from here," said Paula, standing upon

the motor seat. 

"I shall try this further rock," said her father.  "Ah, here it is.  Do come, all of you, and get this.  Oh, what a

perfectly glorious  view!" 

The little group gathered about him in silence, upon a little  headland that overlooked the valley, and feasted

upon the beauty  that  spread itself out before them, the undulating slope and  shimmering  loch, the wide moors

and softly rounded hills, the dark  green masses  of ragged firs, and the great white Bens in the far  distance,

and  below them, in the midst the human touch, in a  nestling village with  its Heavenpointing spire. 

"Hark!" said Paula. 

From across the loch there floated up to them, soft and mellow as  an angel's song, the sound of a bell. 

Mr. Rowland dropped his sketchbook, took off his hat, and stood as  if in worship.  The other men followed

his example. 

"Father," said Paula, "let's go to church." 

"Hush," said her father, putting up his hand, and so stood for some  moments. 

"Oh, Scotland, Scotland!" he cried, lifting his arms high above his  head, "no wonder your children in exile

weep for their native  land." 

"And your men fight and die for you," added Paula, glancing at  Captain Neil. 

"Thank you," said Captain Neil, turning quickly away. 

"Yes," said Paula, "we shall go to church here, father." 

The church stood against a cluster of ancient firs, in the midst of  its quiet graves, yew shaded here and there.

Beside it stood the  manse, within its sweet old garden, protected by a moss covered  stone  wall. 

At its gate the minister stood, a dark man with silvering hair, of  some sixty years, but still erect and with a

noble, intellectual  face. 

"Let us speak to him," said Paula, as they left their car. 

With characteristic reserve, Barry and Neil shrank from greeting a  stranger, but with fine and easy courtesy


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 178



Top




Page No 181


Mr. Howland bared his  head,  and went up to the minister. 

"We heard your bell's invitation, sir," he said, "and we came to  worship with you." 

A grave smile touched the dark face. 

"You rightly interpreted its message," he said.  "Let me repeat its  welcome." 

"We are Americans, at least my daughter and I are," said Mr.  Howland, presenting Paula, a frank smile upon

her beautiful face,  "and this is her young friend from London, Miss Vincent, and these  young officers are of

the Canadian army." 

"Canadians!" exclaimed the minister, meeting them with both hands.  "Oh, you are indeed welcome." 

"We are all in the war, sir, I would have you know," added Mr.  Howland. 

The minister looked puzzled. 

"Let me explain," said Barry.  "Mr. Rowland and his daughter are on  leave from their own hospital which they

have set up in France.  Miss  Vincent is from the base hospital in Boulogne." 

Like the sun breaking upon the loch in a dull day, a smile broke  over the dark face.  He threw the gate wide

open. 

"In the name of my country, in this its dark hour, let me give you  welcome," and once more he shook them

each by the hand.  "We have  still half an hour before worship," he continued.  "Pray do me the  honour of

entering my manse." 

They followed him up the shrubberyflanked gravel walk to the door. 

"Enter," he said, going before them into the manse.  "Jean!  Jean!"  he called. 

"Yes, dear," came a voice like the sound of a silver bell, and from  another room issued a lady with a face of

rare and delicate  loveliness.  Her soft, clinging black gown, with a touch of white  at  her throat, served to

emphasise the sweet purity of her face,  but cast  over it a shade of sadness at once poignant and tender. 

"My dear, this is Mrs. Robertson," he said simply; "these friends,  Americans and Canadians, are from the

war." 

At that word she came to greet them, her face illumined by a smile  inexpressibly sweet, but inexpressibly sad.

"You are welcome, oh,  very welcome," she said, in a soft Scotch voice.  "Come in and rest  for a few

moments." 

"Our young friend here, Captain Dunbar, is chaplain of a  distinguished Canadian regiment." 

"They are all distinguished," said the lady. 

"A chaplain?" said the minister.  "My dear sir, we should be  grateful for a message for our people from the

front" 

"Oh, yes, if you would," added his wife. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 179



Top




Page No 182


"But," protested.  Barry, "I want to hear some one else preach.  One gets very tired of one's own preaching, and

besides I'm a very  poor preacher." 

"I'll take that risk, but I will not press you," said the minister  courteously. 

"Do, Barry," said Paula in a low voice, but he shook his head. 

"I see you have some soldier friends at the front," said Mr.  Rowland, pointing to a photograph on the mantel

of a young officer  in  Highland dress. 

"Our son, sir," said the minister quietly. 

"Our only son," added his wife quietly.  "He was in the Black  Watch."  Her voice, with its peculiar belllike

quality, was full  of  pride and tenderness. 

"Oh," said Phyllis, turning to her with quick tears in her eyes and  holding out her hand. 

"Ah," said the lady, "you too?  Your brother?" 

"My two brothers." 

"My dear child!  My dear child!" said the minister's wife, kissing  her.  "Your mother was greatly privileged,"

she added gently. 

It was a deeply moving scene. 

"Madam," said Mr. Howland, wiping his eyes, "forgive me, but you  mothers are the wonder of the war." 

"There are many of us in this glen, sir," she replied.  "We cannot  give our lives, sir.  We can only give what is

dearer than our  lives,  our dear, dear sons, and, believe me, we don't grudge them." 

"Madam," said Mr. Howland, "the whole world honours you and wonders  at you." 

"Sir," said Barry, obeying a quick impulse, "I cannot preach, but  may I tell your people something about their

boys and how splendid  they are?" 

"Thank you," said the minister. 

"Oh, would you?" cried his wife.  "There are many there who feel  only the loss and the sorrow.  You can tell

them something of its  splendour." 

By this time in the eyes of all the visitors there were tears, but  on the faces of the minister and his wife there

was only the serene  peace of those who within the sacred shrine of sacrifice have got a  vision of its eternal

glory. 

"Barry," said Paula, drawing him aside, "I love you for this, but  do talk about something, or I shall surely cry.

These people break  my heart." 

"Oh, no," said Barry, looking at them, "there are no tears there.  They have been all the way through." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 180



Top




Page No 183


"Like people, like priest!"  The folk that gathered in the little  church that morning were simple people of the

glen, shepherds and  cotters from the countryside, humble villagers.  They were women  for  the most part, with

old men and children.  The girls were away  at the  munition plants, the young men at the war, fighting or lying

under  their little crosses or in their unknown and unmarked graves,  on one  of Britain's five battle fronts, or

under the tossing waters  of the  Seven Seas where Britain's navy rides, guarding the world's  freedom.  Simple

peasant folk they were, but with that look of  grave and  thoughtful steadfastness with which Scotland knows

how to  stamp her  people. 

The devotions were conducted by the minister with simple sincerity,  and with a prophet's mystic touch and a

prophet's vision of things  invisible. 

Barry made no attempt at a sermon.  He yielded himself to the  spirit of the place, the spirit of the manse and

its people, whose  serene fortitude under the burden of their sorrow had stirred him  to  his soul's depths.  Their

spirit recalled the spirit of his own  father  and the spirit of the men he had known in the trenches.  He  made a

slight reference to the horrors of the war.  He touched  lightly upon  the soldiers' trials but he told them tales of

their  endurance, their  patience, their tenderness to the wounded, their  comradeship, their  readiness to

sacrifice.  Before he closed, he  lifted them up to see  the worth and splendour of it all and gave  them a vision

of the  world's regeneration through the eternal  mystery of the cross. 

They listened with uplifted face, on which rested a quiet wonder,  touched with that light that only falls where

sacrifice and  sacrament  are joined.  There were tears on many faces, but they  fell quietly,  without bitterness,

without passion, without despair. 

A woman with a grief worn face waited for him at the foot of the  pulpit stairs, the minister's wife and Phyllis

beside her. 

"Mrs. Finlayson wishes to speak to you," she said. 

"Ay, ay!  I jist want to say that you had the word for me the day.  I see it better the noo.  A'm mair content that

ma mon sud be  sleepin' oot yonder."  She held Barry's hand while she spoke, her  tears falling on it, then kissed

it and turned away. 

"And this," said the minister's wife, "is Mrs. Murray, who has  given three sons, and who has just sent her last

son away this  week." 

"Three sons," echoed Barry, gazing at the strong face, beaten and  brown with the winds and suns of fifty

years, "and you sent away  your  last.  Oh, I wonder at you.  How could you?" 

"A cudna haud him back wi' his three brithers lyin' oot there,  and," she added, with a proud lift of her head,

"and wudna." 

It took some minutes for Barry to make his way through to the door.  He wanted to greet them all.  He had a

feeling that he was there  not  in his own person but as a representative standing between two  noble  companies

of martyrs, those who had gone forth to die, and  those who  had sent them. 

"You have done us a great service today, sir," said the minister  in bidding Barry goodbye. 

"It was a privilege to do it," said Barry as he shook hands with  the minister and his wife.  "I shall tell the men

about you and  your  people." 

"My dear, my dear, is he your man?" asked the minister's wife as  she held Phyllis' hand. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 181



Top




Page No 184


"He is," said Phyllis, glancing at Barry with shy pride. 

"And he leaves you soon?" 

"In two days," replied the girl, with a quick breath. 

"Don't let him away till you give yourself wholly to him.  Why not  tomorrow?  It's a mother's word." 

"That's what I say," cried Paula impulsively, seeking to cover the  girl's blushing confusion.  "Neil," she added,

turning to him, "I  should love to be married in just such a dear little church as  this." 

"All right," said Neil.  "I know another just like it, and I shall  show it to you next week." 

They wandered down by the loch's side.  Passing a boatrenting  establishment, Paula suddenly exclaimed, 

"My Land of Liberty, look there, Barry!" 

"What?" 

"A canoe," she cried, running toward it.  "A Canadian canoe!" 

"A genuine Peterboro," he cried, following her.  "Where did you get  this?" he inquired, turning to the

boatman. 

"My boy brought it with him from Canada, sir.  He is an engineer.  I have his whole outfit in the housetent,

camp things and all.  He  is at the war himself." 

"Oh, Barry, look at the dear thing.  What does it make you think  of?"  She glanced at Barry's face and added

quickly, "Oh, I know.  Forgive me.  I'm a fool!" 

"Come along, Phyllis," said Barry, drawing her away with him.  "I  want to talk to you." 

"We shall take lunch in half an hour, Barry," called Mr. Howland  after him.  "We're due at Pitlochry, you

know, for dinner." 

"All right, sir," said Barry.  "We'll be on hand." 

"I wonder if she's got the nerve," said Paula to Captain Neil as  they stood looking after them. 

"I wonder," said Captain Neil, looking at her.  "Would you?" 

"Would I," said Paula, with sudden shyness.  "Ibut you are not  going away in two days." 

"No, thank the good Lord," said Captain Neil, fervently, "but,  Paula, I'll not forget." 

At Pitlochry they found their mail awaiting them. 

"A telegram for you, Barry," said Paula, who had assumed the duty  of postman. 

They all paused in examining their mail to watch Barry open his  wire. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 182



Top




Page No 185


"Guess," he shouted, holding his telegram high. 

"Oh, glory, I know!" exclaimed Paula.  "Extended leave.  How much?" 

"'Oh, excellent young maid, how much elder art thou than thy  looks!'" 

"Oh, Barry!" exclaimed Phyllis.  "How much?" 

"Five days, five whole days." 

"Humph!  It's the least they could do.  They might have made it  ten," grumbled Paula. 

"Mr. Howland, may I speak to you a moment?"  Barry's look and voice  were eloquent of resolve. 

"Certainly, Barry.  Immediately?" 

"If you please, sir." 

They retired to a corner, where Barry could be seen with ardent  look and vehement gesture putting his

proposition to Mr. Howland,  whose face showed mingled pleasure and perplexity.  The others  waited  patiently

for the conference to end. 

"Oh, pshaw!" said Paula, "Barry ought to know by this time that the  pater simply can't make up his mind

without me.  I know what they  are  at." 

She moved over to them. 

"Now, father, of course you will do as Barry wishes," she declared.  "Oh, I know what he wants.  Now listen to

me.  Just wire Mrs.  Vincent  that everything is perfectly all right, that you can  guarantee Barry,  and that it's the

sensible thing, the only thing  to do under the  circumstances.  Oh, we'll have it in that dear  little church.

Splendid.  Perfectly ripping!  Eh, Phyllis?  Come  over here at once.  Now, father, get busy on the wire.  Why

waste a  perfectly good hour  in just talking about it?  What do you say,  folks?  How many say  'Ay'?" 

Up went Barry's two hands, and with them Neil's and Paula's. 

"What about you, miss?" asked Paula, turning wrathfully toward  Phyllis. 

Phyllis walked quietly to Barry's side. 

"Barry," she said, giving him her hand, "I have decided to be  married tomorrow.  I shall wire mamma." 

Barry answered her only with his eyes. 

"By Jove!" said Paula, "you Britishers are the limit, for stolid,  unemotional people.  Here am I shouting my

head off like a baseball  fan, to get this thing put through, and you quietly walk up and  announce that

everything's fixed but the band." 

The wires to London that afternoon were kept busy, a message going  to Mrs. Vincent from each member of

the party, but it was felt that  that from Phyllis to her mother was really all that was necessary. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 183



Top




Page No 186


"Dearest MammaBarry and I are to be married tomorrow.  English  law makes London impossible, as Barry

has only five days.  I am  very  happy, feeling sure you approve.  Our dearest, dearest love. 

"Phyllis." 

A long wire also went from Barry to Mr. Robertson, the minister of  the little church, where they had spent

such a delightful hour that  morning, but this wire Barry showed to no one. 

The bride's bouquet was from the manse garden, a shower of white  roses, no purer and no sweeter than the

bride herself.  At the  church  door, the party stood shrinking from the moment of parting.  At length  Paula took

matters in hand. 

"As usual," she said, "the heavy work falls to me.  Dear Mrs.  Robertson"to the minister's wife"goodbye.

I shall always love  you and your dear little church." 

She put her arms around the minister's wife and kissed her. 

"Oh, we're going to see them off," said that lady.  "Lead the way,  Captain Dunbar, please," she added, with a

bright smile, giving him  a  little push. 

"Come, Phyllis," said Barry offering his wife his arm, and they  started off down the street toward the lake. 

"Will you permit me?" said the minister, offering his arm to Paula,  who in mystified silence took it without a

word. 

"May I have the pleasure?" said Mr. Howland, offering his arm to  Mrs. Robertson. 

"Come, Captain Fraser," she said gaily, offering him the other arm. 

"Just what is happening to me, I don't pretend to know," said  Paula, "but whatever it is, America is in this

thing to the  finish." 

Barry stopped at the boathouse landing.  There, tied to the dock,  floated the Canadian canoe, laden with tent

and camp outfit, and  with  extra baskets provided from the manse. 

"Oh, Barry, how wonderful!  How perfectly wonderful!" cried Paula  in an ecstasy of delight. 

In that farewell there were tears and smiles, but more smiles than  tears.  The last to touch their hands was

Paula.  She managed to  draw  them apart from the others, with her eyes glistening with  unaccustomed  tears.

"You deserve each other.  Phyllis," she  whispered, alternately  shaking and kissing her, "there was a day  when

I would have fought you  for him, until Neil came.  Barry, you  dear boy, you may kiss me  goodbye, and oh,

may you both live  forever." 

"Goodbye, dear Paula," cried Phyllis.  "You have been so lovely to  me from the very first.  I shall never, never

forget you." 

"Goodbye, Paula," said Barry, "dearest of all dear friends." 

She stooped to steady the canoe, while Phyllis stepped to her place  in the bow. 

"Goodbye to all of you.  God love you and keep you all," said  Barry. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY 184



Top




Page No 187


He took his paddle and stepped into the canoe, Paula still stooping  over it to keep it steady. 

"Dear, dear Barry," she whispered, and for the first time her tears  fell.  "Goodbye!  Goodbye!" 

Together the little company stood watching them away, Phyllis in  the bow, not paddling, sat with her face

toward them, Barry  swinging  his paddle with graceful, powerful strokes, until just at  a curve of  the shore,

where some birches overhung the water, he  swung the canoe  half round, and with paddle held Voyageur

fashion  in salute, they  passed out of sight. 

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT

The little Canadian army was done with The Salient.  The British  tradition established in the third month of

the war, in that first  terrific twentytwo days' fight by Ypres, that that deadly convex  should be no

thoroughfare to Calais for the Hun, was passed on with  The Salient into Canadian hands in the early months

of 1915.  How  the  little Canadian army preserved the tradition and barred "the  roadhog  of Europe" from the

channel coast for seventeen months,  let history  tell, and at what cost let the dead declare who lie in  unmarked

graves  which, following the curving line of trenches from  Langemarck through  Hooge and Sanctuary Wood

over Observation Ridge  to St. Eloi, and the  dead under those little crosses that crowd the  cemeteries of The

Salient and of the clearing stations in the rear,  and the living as  well, who through life will carry the burden of

enfeebled and  mutilated bodies. 

For seventeen months the Canadians in shallow dugouts and behind  flimsy trenches endured the maddening

pounding of the Huns' guns,  big  and little, without the satisfaction of reprisal, except in  raid or

counterattack, suffering the loss of twothirds of their  entire  force, but still holding.  Now at length came the

welcome  release.  They were ordered to the Somme.  Welcome not simply  because of escape  from an

experience the most trying to which an  army could be  subjected, but welcome chiefly because there was a

chance of fighting  back. 

They had no illusions about that great battle area of the south,  echoes of whose titanic struggle had reached

them, but they longed  for a chance to get back at their foe.  Besides, the Somme  challenged  their fighting

spirit.  That glorious assault of the  first of July of  the allied armies which flung them upon the  scientifically

prepared,  embattled and entrenched "German  Frontier," with its fortified  villages, its gun stuffed woods, its

massed parks of artillery, and  defended by highly disciplined and  superbly organised soldiery,  stirred them

like a bugle call.  For  two years the master warmakers  of the world had employed  scientific knowledge,

ingenuity and  unlimited resources upon the  construction of a system of defence by  means of which they

hoped to  defy the world, and upon which when  completed they displayed the  vaunting challenge, "We are

ready for  you; come on!" 

In that great conflict there was no element of surprise.  It was a  deliberate testing out of strength, physical and

moral.  For the  first time in the war the British army stood upon something like  even  terms in manpower and

in weight of metal, with, however, the  immense  handicap still resting upon it that it was the attacking  force.

The  result settled forever the question of the fighting  quality of the  races.  When the first day's fight was done,

on a  battle front of  twenty miles the British armies had smashed a hole  seven miles wide,  while their gallant

allies, fighting on an eight  mile front, had  captured the whole line.  In two weeks' time, the  sevenmile hole

was  widened to ten.  Fortified villages, entrenched  redoubts, woods  stuffed with guns, great and small, had

gone down  before that steady,  relentless, crushing advance.  The full  significance of the Somme had  not

dawned as yet upon the world.  The magnitude of the achievement was  not yet estimated, but already  names

hitherto unknown were flung up  flaming into the world's sky  in letters of eternal fire, Ovillers,  Mametz

Wood, Trones Wood,  Langueval, Mouquet Farm, Deville Wood for  the British, with twenty  one thousand

prisoners, and Hardecourt,  Dompierre, BecquinCourt,  Bussu and Fay for the French allies, with  thirtyone


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 185



Top




Page No 188


thousand  prisoners. 

On that line of carefully chosen and elaborately fortified  defences, the proudest of Germany's supermen of

war had been beaten  at their own game by the civilian soldiers of "effete and luxury  loving Britain," and the

republican armies of "decadent France,"  and  still the Homeric fight was raging.  Foot by foot, yard by  yard,

the  Hun was fighting to hold the line which should make good  his insolent  claim to the hegemony of the

world.  Step by step,  yard by yard, that  line was being torn from his bloody fingers.  Into that sea of fire and

blood, the Canadians were to plunge.  They remembered Langemarck and  Sanctuary Wood and St. Eloi, and

were not unwilling to make the  plunge.  They thought of those long  months in The Salient, when the  ruthless

Hun from his vantage  ground of overwhelming superiority had  poured his deadly hail from  right flank, left

flank, front and rear,  upon them, holding,  suffering, dying, day by day, month by month, and  they were

grimly  jubilant over the chance which the Somme offered them  of evening  somewhat the score. 

"We have something to hand Fritzie," young Pickles was heard to  remark when he had learned of the quality

of the Somme fighting,  "and  I hope he'll like it, for he's got to take it." 

The battalion ranks, both officers and men, had once more been  filled up.  They had a brief fortnight's training

in the new open  fighting under barrage and then set off cheerfully for the "Big  Game."  Ten days they

marched and countermarched in the back  country,  keeping clear of those two mighty streams "up" and

"down,"  that flowed  between ditches and hedges along the road that led to  the great arena,  and catching

glimpses and echoes as they marched  until, hard, fit,  keen, they joined the "upstream" flowing toward  Albert.

That stream  was made up of those various and multifarious  elements that go to  constitute, equip and maintain

a modern army. 

There were marching battalions, with their mounted officers,  bearing names and insignia famous in the

world's wars for two  hundred  years, and with them battalions who a few brief months ago  were  peaceful

citizens, knowing nothing of war.  There were  transport  columns, ammunition columns, artillery columns,

with  mounted escorts.  There were big guns, on huge caterpillar trucks,  shouldering the  lighter traffic to the

ditches, and little guns  slipping meekly in  their rear.  There were motor lorries, honking  and thundering their

insistent way through dodging, escaping,  cursing infantry, fortysix  miles of them to a single army corps.

There were strings of mules and  horses with weirdly shaped burdens  on their pack saddles.  There were  motor

cars bearing "Brass Hats,"  gentle looking individuals,  excessively polite, yet somehow getting  men to jump

when they spoke,  and everywhere ambulances, silent and  swift moving, before whose  approach the stream

parted in recognition  of the right of way of these  messengers of mercy over all the  enginery of war. 

The "down stream" was much the same, with here and there  differences.  That stream flowed more swiftly.

The battalions marched  with more  buoyant tread.  They had done their part and without shame.  They  had met

their foes and seen their backs.  The trucks, transport  and  ammunition wagons were empty and coming with a

rush.  Only the  ambulances moved more slowly.  Carefully, with watchful avoidance of  ruts and holes, which,

in spite of the army of roadmending Huns,  broke up the surface of the pavements these ambulances made

their  way.  They must get through no matter what was held up. 

And as they flowed these streams ever and anon broke their banks  and flooded over in little eddies into

villages and fields, there  to  tarry for a day and a night, only to be caught up again in  either one  of those

resistless inevitable currents of war. 

"Look before you, major," said Barry, who was riding with the  Headquarters Company at the head of the

column, as often now at the  invitation of the O. C. 

The column was slowly climbing a long gentle sloping hill that  reached its apex some two or three miles

away.  On either side,  spread out over the fields, as far as the eye could reach, were  military encampments, in


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 186



Top




Page No 189


tents, in huts and in the open.  Infantry  units, horse lines, motor truck parks, repair camps for motors and  for

guns, ammunition dumps with shells piled high, supply sheds  bulging with their canvascovered contents,

Red Cross huts and  marquees, and Y. M. C. A. tents with their cues of waiting  soldiers,  getting "eats" and

drinks, and comforts of various kinds.  The whole  countryside was one mighty encampment packed with

munitions and  supplies and thronging with horses, mules and men. 

"This is war on the 'grand scale,'" said the O. C. dropping back  beside them.  "From the top of this hill we can

see Albert and a  part  of the most famous battlefield of all time.  We camp just  outside of  Albert on what is

known as the 'brick field,' and in a  couple of days  more we shall be in it.  Well," he continued, with a  glance

over the  column following, "the boys never were more fit." 

"And never more keen," said the major.  "They are right on their  toes." 

"Major, I expect to meet the divisional commander down here, and I  want you to be there.  Captain Dunbar,

you know him, I believe.  He  has asked especially that you should be there as well." 

"Yes, sir, I have met the General.  To my mind he is an ideal  soldier." 

"Yes, and an ideal officer," said the O. C.  "He knows his job and  he is always fit and keen." 

At the top of the hill, a traffic officer, a young lieutenant from  the Imperial forces, diverted the column from

the road into a  field. 

"Why is this?" inquired the O. C. 

"There's the answer, sir," said the officer coolly. 

There was a long drawn whine which rapidly grew into a shriek and  an H. E. shell dropped fair in the road, a

short distance in front. 

"Oh, I see, you have some of these birds down in this country,  too." 

"Yes, sir, this is their breeding ground," said the young  lieutenant. 

Once more came the long whining shriek and the terrific blast of  the H. E., this time closer. 

"I would not delay, sir, if I were you," said the young chap  coolly, pulling out his cigarette case.  "They get

rather ugly at  times." 

"What about you?" inquired the O. C. moving off. 

"Part of my job, sir," replied the youth, saluting. 

"Well, good luck, boy," said the O. C., trotting to the head of the  column. 

"Thank you, sir," said the youth, turning to his job again. 

They rode a hundred yards, when another shell came, there was a  terrific explosion, apparently just at the spot

where the young  officer had been standing. 

"By Jove!  I'm afraid that's got him," said the O. C. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 187



Top




Page No 190


"I'll go and see, sir," said Barry, spurring his horse back to the  spot. 

"Come back here, Barry," called the major.  "Darn him for a fool!  What's the use of that?  That isn't his job,"

he added angrily. 

"He thinks it is, probably," said the O. C. 

Barry found a great hole in the road with the officer's horse lying  disembowelled beside it, kicking in his

death agony.  There was no  sign of his rider anywhere.  Fortunately there was a gap in the  column, so that no

one else was near enough to be injured. 

As Barry stood gazing about, a voice hailed him from the ditch,  which was several feet deep. 

"I say, sir," said the voice, "I wouldn't just stay there.  They  generally send over four of 'em.  That's only the

third.  I find  this  ditch very convenient, though somewhat mucky." 

Barry looked at him in astonishment.  He was white and shaken,  covered with mud, but trying to get his

cigarette case open. 

"I'd get off, sir, if I were you," he said, "until the next one  comes.  Quick, sir, I hear it now." 

Barry needed no second invitation.  He flung himself headlong into  the ditch beside the young fellow, but the

shell dropped into the  field beyond. 

"That's as near as I like 'em," said the young officer, scraping  the mud off his clothes.  "My poor, old geegee

got it though."  He  drew his revolver and shot the wounded animal.  "It's hard on the  horses.  You see, they

can't dodge," he added. 

"I say, my boy," said Barry, for the lieutenant was only a boy,  "that was a near thing for you.  What are you

going to do now?" 

"Oh, just carry on," said the boy.  "The relief will be along in  a  few hours.  Beastly mess, eh?" he continued,

but whether he  referred  to the disembowelled horse or the state of his own  uniform, Barry  could not say. 

"You are sure you are all right?" said Barry, as he shook hands  with him.  "I'm awfully glad you weren't hurt." 

"So am I," said the boy heartily.  "Awfully rotten to be potted out  here playing a bally policeman, eh?  What?

Well, good luck, sir,"  and Barry rode off to join his column with a deep admiration in his  heart for the

English school boy who, when war began, was probably  a  fifth form lad, in whose life the most dangerous

episode would be  a  ball taken full off bat at point, or a low tackle on the Rugby  field. 

At Divisional Headquarters, they met the general, who after a  conversation with the O. C. greeted Barry

warmly. 

"So you have gone and done it, young man.  Well, I admire your  nerve, and I congratulate you.  I happen to

know the family very  well.  As a matter of fact there is some remote connection, I  believe.  By the way, I have

a communication from London for you,"  he  added, drawing Barry to one side, and giving him a little slip.  "I

happen to know about it," he continued, while Barry was reading  his  telegram, "and say, if I can be of any

assistance, I shall be  very  glad.  It's a step up, you see.  I have no doubt it can be put  through  quite easily and

quickly, and I believe the step is coming  to you." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 188



Top




Page No 191


Barry stood with his eyes upon the dispatch.  It was an offer of a  hospital appointment at the base, and carried

with it his majority. 

"I have no doubt the missus will be pleased, eh?" said the general  with a grin. 

Barry pulled out a letter from his pocket, opened it and handed it  to the general, pointing to a paragraph.  The

general took it and  read, 

"And Barry, dear, remember that though you have a wife now, your  duty to your country is still your first

duty.  I would hate that  any  thought of me should make it harder for you to carry on." 

The general folded up the letter, put it slowly into its envelope,  and handed it back to Barry. 

"I know her," he said simply.  "I should expect nothing else from  her.  You are a lucky dog, but, of course," he

added, with a swift  glance at Barry's face, "some one must take that job." 

"I fancy, sir, there are many for it, who are hardly fit for this  work up here," replied Barry quietly.  "I think,

sir, I'll just  carry  on where I am." 

"You are quite sure?" inquired the general.  "Don't you want a day  or two to think it over?" 

"I am quite sure, sir," said Barry, "I am quite sure that my wife  would approve." 

"Very well, then," said the general, "let me handle this for you,  and let me say, sir, that I am proud to have

you in my division." 

So saying, he gripped Barry's hand hard, and turned abruptly away  to the others. 

They rode to their camp in almost complete silence, except for a  grunt or two from the O. C. who seemed in a

grumpy mood. 

When they arrived at Headquarters, the O. C. drew up his horse and  turning to the major, said, 

"I don't know just what to do with this Pilot of ours.  He is a  fool in some ways." 

"A darned fool, sir," said the major emphatically. 

"And," continued the major, "I am selfish enough to say that I am  damned gladI won't apologise,

Pilotthat he decided to stay with  us.  It would have been just a little harder to carry on if he had  left us." 

"Yes," growled the major, "but, oh, well, we have got to stick it I  guess.  The Pilot is a soldier all right." 

There was nothing further said about the matter, but next day as  Barry walked about the camp, among the

men, their eyes followed him  as he passed, and every officer in the mess seemed to discover an  errand that

took him to Barry's tent. 

Two days later the Canadians moved up into the line and took over  from the Australians.  They followed the

Bapaume Road toward  Pozieres, passing through a country which had seen the heaviest  fighting in the war. 

"This," said the O. C., drawing aside from the road, and riding to  a slightly rising ground, "is La Boiselle, or

at least where it  was,  and that I fancy is the famous mine crater.  Sixty thousand  pounds of  gun cotton blew up


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 189



Top




Page No 192


that hole." 

There was absolutely no sign of the village, the very foundations  of the houses, and the cellars having the

appearance of a ploughed  field. 

"That was a desperate fight," continued the O. C.  "It was here  that the Middlesex men made their great

charge.  Fifty men reported  from the battalion when it was over.  In that village they had a  whole division

fighting before they were through, Middlesex men,  Royal Scots and Irish, for three days and three nights." 

As they rode along, the guns on either side began their evening  chorus and from the far rear came the roaring

rush of the H. E.'s  like invisible express trains hurtling through the air.  It was  music  to their ears, and they

rode forward with a new feeling in  their  hearts, for there appeared to be almost no reply from the  enemy

guns. 

The battalion took to the trenches at the crossing of the Pozieres  Road, and so effective was the

counterbattery work that they were  able to settle down into their battle positions without casualties.  The R.

A. P. was in a deep German dugout thirty feet below the  surface, with double entrances and heavily

timbered.  It had been  most elaborately prepared, planked on sides and floor, and fitted  with electric lights.

There were two main rooms, with a connecting  corridor, leading to each entrance.  They found an Australian

medical  officer in charge. 

"These chaps were regular settlers, weren't they?" said Barry,  after they had exchanged greetings. 

"Yes, sir, they intended to sty, apparently," said the Australian,  in his slow drawl.  "We found some letters on

a wounded officer  indicating their intention to remyn for the durytion, but we wanted  the plycecouldn't

carry on without it in fact.  It's quite a good  plyce, too," he added with a cheerful grin. 

"Why, it's just bully," said the M. O.  "I am only sorry that we  can't promise you as good in The Salient." 

"I hear it is rather rotten, eh, sir?" said the Australian. 

"Not as bad as Gallipoli, though," said Barry.  "By Jove!  You  Australian chaps did magnificently down there.

Must have been a  perfect hell." 

"Oh, yes, quite hot for a while, but I fancy you Canydians didn't  have any afternoon tea party in The Sylient,

eh?  My word, there  was  some fighting there.  Oh, there it comes," he added. 

As he spoke a muffled explosion was heard, and the dugout rocked,  and the candles flickered. 

"Can they get you down here?" inquired the M. O. 

"I fancy a direct hit from a really big H. E. would disturb our  little home, but nothing else would.  Of course, a

shell in the  door  wye would be a bit awkward, you knaow," replied the  Australian. 

The night, however, passed quietly, and except for a few slightly  wounded walking cases, there was little

work to do.  The Canadians  decided that in coming to the Somme, they had made a most happy  exchange. 

A quiet day followed the night, but the whole battalion was keyed  up with intense expectation for the attack

which they knew was  fixed  for the night following.  With expectation mingled curiosity.  They  knew all about

raiding; that was their own specialty, but they  were  curious as to the new style of fighting which they knew to

be  awaiting  them, the capturing, holding and consolidating of a line  of enemy  trenches. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 190



Top




Page No 193


Nightfall brought the opportunity to gratify their curiosity.  For  two hours before the attack, their guns put

down the barrage to  cover  the front line of enemy trenches, and to dispose of his wire. 

The M. O. and Barry, with the Australian and their whole staff,  made their way to a ridge a few yards distant

to see the show. 

"Great Heaven, what is that?" inquired the M. O., pointing to what  seemed to be a line of flickering watch

fires upon the crest of a  neighbouring rising ground. 

"Guns!  Ours," said the Australian, surprised at the M. O.'s  excitement. 

"Guns!  My Lord, guns, Barry," shouted the M. O. 

"Guns?  And in the open!  And on a hill!  And wheel to wheel!"  cried Barry.  "Thank the good Lord I have lived

to see this day.  Look  at the boys," he added in a low tone, to the Australian beside  him. 

They glanced over their shoulders and saw two of the orderlies  executing a foxtrot in the heavy

shellploughed soil. 

"What's the row?" inquired the Australian. 

"Why, my dear chap," replied the M. O., "don't you know we have  never seen a gun in action in the open that

way.  Our guns operated  only from holes and corners, from hedges and cellars.  Otherwise  they'd be spotted

and knocked out in an hour." 

"Ow!" said the Australian, "our bird men attended to that the first  dye of the fight.  They sye there was a

double line of observation  balloons along the lines, ours and theirs up to the 30th of June.  The  next morning

not a Boche balloon was to be seen.  Our plynes  put their  eye out in a single afternoon.  Since that time, we

hold  over them in  the air.  Ah!  There are the heavies coming up now.  The full chorus  will be on in half a

minute." 

A few seconds later, the truth of the Australian's prophecy was  demonstrated.  The full chorus was on.  For

two hours the barrage  raged, and the din was such that they had to shout in each other's  ears to be heard.  The

hilltops were ringed with darting tongues of  red flame as though belched out by a thousand fabled dragons.  It

was  as if the air above was filled with millions of invisible  demons,  whining, moaning, barking, shrieking in

a fury of venomous  hate, while  at regular intervals came the express train roar of the  twelve,  fifteen and

sixteen inch guns. 

"It's almost worth while to have lived through those months in The  Salient," said Barry, "to get the full

enjoyment of this experience.  Well do I remember the day when our O. C. asked for 'retaliation,'  and was told

he could have six rounds, I think it was, or eight.  Meanwhile our trenches and dugcuts were going up in

bloody mud." 

"I think we might as well go below," said the Australian.  "They  will be coming in presently." 

But Barry and the M. O. remained long after the first coming in  shells began to drop around.  That barrage so

long waited for, and  so  ardently desired, was worth some risk. 

Soon the wounded began to arrive, and throughout the whole night,  the M. O. and his staff were busy at their

work.  On the arrival of  the zero hour, the barrage lifted. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 191



Top




Page No 194


"Well, good luck go with the boys," said the Australian, fervently.  "They are out and over now.  We'll get

some of them presently." 

Throughout the night, a stream of walking wounded kept flowing in.  Jubilant, exultant in spite of their pain,

they bore with them the  joyful report that they had shifted the Hun from his trenches and  his  deep dugouts,

and were still advancing.  Singing at the top of  their  voices, they came limping in, bloody and muddy, but

wild with  exultation and joy.  The day long looked for by the Canadians had  arrived.  They were getting

something of their own back. 

The next day revealed the full extent of the achievement.  The  whole Canadian line had swept forward for

over a thousand yards,  had  captured strong points, a fortified sunken road, the famous  "sugar  refinery" and,

overrunning their objective, had captured the  village  of Courcelette, as well.  It was a gallant little fight,  and

quite a  notable achievement. 

After two days the battalion was pulled out, having suffered  comparatively slight losses, and more than ready

to return when the  opportunity should come. 

The next three weeks were spent in minor operations, consolidating  positions, repelling counterattacks, and

preparing for the real  "big  go," in which the Canadians were to take their part in the  advance of  the whole

allied line, after which the battalion was  sent into reserve  for a few days' respite. 

The Canadian line was gradually wearing thin, but the spirit of  those who survived was the spirit of the whole

allied line,the  spirit that claimed victory and was not to be denied.  As to the  nature of the task awaiting

them, however, they well knew that it  was  to be a fight in which the last ounce of resolution and only  the last

ounce would carry them through to their objective. 

The experiences of the allies during the past months had wrought in  them a settled conviction that victory

was awaiting them, and a  settled resolution that that victory they would secure at all cost  soever. 

At length the day arrived, a dull October day, overhung with rain  clouds and thick with chill mist.  On the

parade ground the  battalion  was drawn up for the service which always preceded an  attack. 

The operations of the past month had reduced the battalion to about  half its fighting strength.  Only some five

hundred men, with  officers barely sufficient to direct their movements, looked back  at  Barry through the mist

as he faced them for the service. 

"Truly my soul waiteth upon God: from him cometh my salvation," he  read.  The psalm might have been

written for the occasion. 

"He only is my rock and my salvation; he is my defence: I shall not  be moved. 

"My soul, wait thou only upon God: for my expectation is from him. 

"He only is my rock and my salvation: he is my defence: I shall not  be moved. 

"In God is my salvation, and my glory: the rock of my strength, and  my refuge is in God. 

"Trust in him at all times; ye people, pour out your heart before  him.  God is a refuge for us." 

Barry made only a single comment upon the psalm, "Men, nothing can  move God, and nothing can move

those whose trust is in God.  Remember  God is to be trusted." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 192



Top




Page No 195


The reading was followed by the General Confession, the Absolution  and a brief extemporary prayer,

concluding with the Lord's Prayer.  As  Barry was mounting his horse a runner brought him an order from  his

divisional chief, directing him to report at the casualty  clearing  station in Albert for immediate duty.  He

carried the  order to the O.  C. 

"Look at this!" he stormed. 

"Too bad!  Too bad!" said the O. C.  "Rotten luck for you." 

"Look here, sir," said Barry, "I have always gone up with the  battalion, and I think" 

"I fancy they are getting on to you, Dunbar.  You know you have  rather shirked the C. C. S. duty," said the O.

C. with a smile. 

"Isn't there some way out of this?  If I got a substitute" 

"A soldier obeys orders, Captain Dunbar," said the O. C. gravely. 

"Yes, sir, I know, but" 

"And he doesn't say 'but'," continued the O. C.  "No, Barry," he  added in a kindly voice, "I have no

responsibility or authority in  this.  I'd be glad to have you come up with us.  We are going into  the 'big thing'

this time, I know, but perhaps it's just as well.  You  go your way and we'll go ours.  I'd like to say this to you,

however,  my boy, you have been a great help to me with the men." 

His tone was grave but kind, and it sent to Barry's heart a chill  of foreboding.  "Goodbye, Barry," he added,

shaking hands with  him. 

"Goodbye, sir.  Good luck, sir.  May I say, sir," said Barry,  "that you have helped me immensely with my

duty." 

"Do you say so, Barry?" said the O. C., a note of surprise in his  voice.  "I'm delighted to know that." 

"God keep you, sir," said Barry earnestly. 

"Thank you, sir.  We are in His keeping, aren't we?" and turning in  his saddle, he gave the order to advance. 

Barry rode with the column to the very mouth of the communication  trench running to Pozieres, dropping

into step with each company  commander for a time, and leaving each with a cheery word of  farewell.  At the

mouth of the trench, he stood watching the men as  they stepped down and out of his sight, giving them a

word of good  cheer and good luck as they passed, and receiving in return  answering  smiles and greetings.

Then with eyes unseeing, he rode  back to camp,  heavy of heart, for he knew well that many of these  faces he

would see  no more. 

The zero hour was fixed for five a. m. the following morning.  As  the hour drew near, Barry at his work in the

C. C. S., found in his  heart the words of the psalm, "My soul wait thou only upon God . . .  I shall not be

moved."  That wounds and death were awaiting many  of  them he well knew, and his prayer was that they

might meet the  fate  appointed them with unshaken faith and courage. 

By seven o'clock the wounded began to arrive and an hour later the  C. A. M. C. marquee was filled to

overflowing with a cue of wounded  men forming outside in the falling rain.  The suffering in their  pale  and


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 193



Top




Page No 196


patient faces stirred in him a poignant sympathy.  There  was the  chaplain service tent adjoining.  He ran to find

the  chaplain in  charge. 

"Tell me," he said, "may we use your marquee for wounded men?" 

"Sure thing.  It will never be used for a better purpose." 

Barry returned to the O. C. of the C. C. S. 

"Why not direct that a part of this stream be sent to the adjoining  tent for registration, and for antitetanus

hypodermics?  These  poor  chaps are standing out in the rain, chilled to the bone and  ready to  drop." 

"For Heaven's sake do it," said the O. C.  "We are really up  against it here.  Can you take that off my hands?" 

"I'll try," said Barry. 

In a few minutes the congestion at the door of the marquee was  relieved and the wounded men, to their own

vast comfort, were  bestowed upon the benches and chairs in the chaplain service tent.  But something further

was necessary to their comfort. 

"Draper," said Barry to the chaplain in charge of the tent, "you  see these men?  They have had nothing to eat

since last night.  They  have fought a battle, been wounded, and walked out some five  miles or  so, since then.

It's eight o'clock now.  What about it?" 

"What about it?" exclaimed the chaplain.  "You watch me!" 

He ran to the Y. M. C. A. tent, enlisted the secretary's aid and  in twenty minutes they together had transported

to the chaplain  service tent coffee and cocoa urns, and with an organised band of  assistants were supplying

the wounded with warming and comforting  nourishment.  Never had those splendid services more quickly and

effectively justified their place in the army. 

With the wounded came rumours, more or less fantastic, of disaster.  Something terrible had befallen the

whole Canadian line.  It was  difficult to get at the truth.  As with all rumours, they  contradicted each other and

left the mind in a chaos of perplexity.  The battalion had run into wire, where the machine guns had found  it,

the battalion was practically wiped out, it had found cover in  a  trench and was still holding on, the O. C. was

wounded, the O. C.  was  killed, and with him every company commander. 

Again and again, Barry sent men to the signals to learn the truth,  but it was found impossible to get a message

through.  That an  overwhelming disaster had befallen his battalion was abundantly  evident from the numbers

of wounded.  With his heart growing numb  with pain he struggled with his work.  Gradually, he was forced to

accept as true that a large proportion of the battalion were  casualties, that the O. C. was wounded, possibly

dying, that many  of  the officers had fallen and that the remainder were still  holding a  precarious position, and

fighting for their lives. 

"I shall not be moved," he had read to them last night.  The  promise was being fulfilled in the men of his

battalion.  They  could  die at the wire or in the trench, but they could not be  moved.  While  mechanically

carrying on his work, his mind was with  the fighting,  dying remnant of his comrades.  The O. C. of the  C. C.

S. passing on  his rounds found Barry carrying on with tears  blinding his eyes so  that he could hardly see the

figures he was  entering in his record. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 194



Top




Page No 197


"Your men are having a hell of a time, I hear," said the O. C.  "I  say, boy," he added, glancing at Barry's

haggard face, "let up for  a  while." 

"I'm all right, sir," said Barry, through his teeth.  "Excuse me,  really I'm all right.  It is a bit difficult to carry on

when you  know that your friends are being cut to pieces, but I'm all right,  sir." 

"All right, my boy," said the O. C., "we're up against it today.  I'll come for you in a few minutes, and we'll

have a bit to eat." 

Barry shook his head.  He was too sick to eat, but the O. C. knew  better than he just what he wanted.  In a few

minutes he returned  with an assistant who took Barry's place. 

"Come along, boy," said the O. C. cheerfully.  "We have got to feed  the living that we may care for the

wounded and dying." 

"You are quite right, sir," said Barry.  "I am ashamed of myself.  I'll be fit in a few minutes." 

"Don't apologise for one moment," said the colonel, "if you felt  any less deeply than you do, you'd be

something less than a man.  We'll get into touch with the Divisional Headquarters, and try to  get  the facts." 

He had no sooner reached his private room than his signaller  informed him that Divisional Headquarters had

just been trying to  get  him.  It took some time, however, to get the message through.  Meantime, the Colonel

was handling Barry with a wise and skillful  touch.  He made him eat and eat heartily, seeking to divert his

mind  in the meantime from the disaster that had befallen the  battalion to  the big issues at stake, and pointing

out with  resolute cheerfulness  that the calamity that had befallen the  battalion was only a temporary  setback. 

"We're winning, my boy, and we're paying the price," he said. 

At length signals got the D. H. Q. and called the colonel to the  phone.  After a few minutes' conversation, the

O. C. called Barry. 

"The general wants to speak to you, padre," and Barry with an  apprehensive heart went to the phone. 

"Oh, that you, Captain Dunbar?"  It was the general's voice and  somehow it carried with it an atmosphere of

calm and cheerful  confidence.  "How are you getting on?" 

"Oh, sir, very well.  We are terribly anxious, of course." 

"That's natural," said the general quietly.  "We have had rather a  serious reverse.  Your whole brigade met with

wire, and I fear they  suffered heavily.  The men behaved with great steadiness and are  still splendidly holding.

We are, of course, making every effort  to  relieve them, and with good hope of success." 

"Have you heard of my O. C.?" inquired Barry. 

"I fear rather bad news, Dunbar.  Indeed, I fear he is seriously  wounded.  We have sent him straight on to

Contay.  Your officers  have  suffered quite severely." 

"Have you heard what the casualties are, sir?" 

"Not exactly," replied the General.  "We shall not know until  evening, but we must be prepared for a heavy

loss.  By the way, can  you be spared from the casualty clearing station?  I hear you are  doing fine work there.


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 195



Top




Page No 198


If you can run up, I can send my car for  you." 

"I'm afraid not, sir, just now.  Perhaps later on in the  afternoon." 

"Let me speak to Colonel James," said the general. 

The O. C. came to the phone. 

"Yes, sir," he said."Well, we are short handed just now.He is  really necessary at the present

moment.Yes, later on we'll send  him  up.Very well, sir.We are doing our best." 

The calm and confident bearing of his superior officer, made Barry  ashamed of the unnerving emotion from

which he had been suffering  all  morning.  He returned to his work resolved to put aside all  personal

considerations.  The thing in which they were engaged was  vastly more  important than the fate of any

individual or of any  battalion.  Victory was necessary, was guaranteed, and was  demanding its price.  That

price was being paid, and to that price  every man must make his  contribution. 

Toward night the stream of wounded gradually grew less, and the  O.  C. sent Barry, in a returning ambulance,

up to the Divisional  Headquarters.  The serenity with which the general received him did  much to restore

Barry's poise, which had been severely shaken by  the  strain of the night and day with the wounded in the

casualty  clearing  station and by the heartracking agony he had suffered over  the loss of  his comrades. 

"Come in, Dunbar," said the general kindly.  "Take a seat for a few  minutes.  Have a cigar.  These you will find

are good, I think." 

"Thank you, sir.  I will take a cigarette, if I may," said Barry,  helping himself from a box on the table. 

He had not been many minutes in the dugout until he began to catch  the reactions of the place.  The spirit

was one of controlled but  concentrated energy.  It was the spirit of the divisional commander,  and it passed

from him to the humblest orderly in the room.  There  was swiftness of action, alertness of mind, and with

these a  complete  absence of hurry or confusion.  Runners were continually  arriving with  urgent messages,

phones insisting upon immediate  answer, officers  coming in with business of vast importance, but  with no

sign of  flurry, the work of the Divisional Headquarters went  swiftly and  smoothly on. 

At length there was a pause in the rush of calls upon the general's  attention. 

"Come in this way," he said to Barry, and led him to a smaller room  at the back of the dugout. 

"Very comfortable quarters these.  They seem to have done  themselves  quite well, haven't they?  It is most

convenient, for we  certainly  should not have taken pains to construct such elaborate  dugouts as  these we

have fallen heir to.  Find a seat, Dunbar.  I  have got the  latest reports."  His voice was very gentle and very

kindly.  "Yes,"  he continued, "we have had a bad night's work.  Uncut  wire and an  enfilade from a redoubt

which should have been blown up.  The  casualties are very heavy." 

"What are they?" Barry asked. 

"Quite heavy, Dunbar, I'm afraid.  Only some fifty have reported so  far." 

"Fifty!" cried Barry.  "Out of five hundred!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 196



Top




Page No 199


"There will doubtless some more drop in," added the general, "but  we must be prepared for a heavy loss, far

heavier, both in officers  and men, than we can afford.  The Battalion Headquarters was  terribly  wrecked by a

succession of direct hits.  Only a few of the  staff  escaped unhurt.  Colonel Leighton was a fine officer.  I had  a

great  admiration, indeed, affection, for him.  I know how you  felt towards  him, and he to you." 

The steadiness in his voice brought quiet, but the kindness in it  brought strength, and comfort.  Barry became

suddenly aware of the  crushing load of responsibility upon this gentlevoiced man.  He  was  eager to help. 

"I wish I could help you, sir," he said.  "I am sure we are all  ready to do our best." 

"I know that, Dunbar, and all are needed.  Major Duff has gone out  badly injured.  The only officers remaining

unhurt in the front line  are Major Bayne and Captain Fraser, both of whom are splendidly  carrying on.  And

you, too, have given great help today.  Colonel  James assures me that your initiative and resourcefulness

were of  the  greatest service to him.  Oh, by the way, a message came through  in a  letter the other day, that I

should have sent you, but other  things  put it out of my mind, I am sorry to say."  He touched a  bell.  "You  see I

had to tell your wife, Dunbar, of your  determination to stay by  us," he added with a smile.  "Get me my

private postbag, please," he  said to the orderly.  He selected a  letter from a packet, opened it,  and pointed to

a page.  Barry  recognised the handwriting as his  wife's.  He read: 

"I need not assure you it was none of my family's doing to get that  appointment for Barry.  I was not surprised

that he declined it,  but  then you see I know Barry.  He is at the place where I would  want him  to be." 

Barry kept his eyes steadily upon the words until he should be sure  of his voice.  His heart was thrilling with

pride in the girl who  had  given herself to him.  As the moments passed, he there and then  vowed  that by God's

grace, he would not shame her nor belie her  trust in  him. 

"Thank you, sir," he said quietly, handing the letter back. 

"Helps a bit, eh, what?" said the general.  "We can't let our women  down, can we?" 

"No, sir," said Barry.  "Is there nothing I can do?"  His voice was  as steady and quiet as the general's. 

"Oh, thank you, just the C. C. S., I fancy, at present." 

At that point the door opened, and the corps commander came in,  wearing a very tired and anxious face. 

"Bad business, general," he said, with a single word of greeting  and ignoring Barry. 

"Yes, a very bad business, sir," said the divisional commander,  and Barry fancied he caught a new note in his

voice, a note of  sternness, almost of challenge. 

"Seems that we missed that wire, eh, along here?" said the corps  commander, putting his finger upon a map

which lay on the table. 

"We must have that patrolled very carefully, you know."  There was  a note of criticism in his voice. 

"Yes, sir," replied the corps commander courteously.  "I wasn't at  all sure that the wire was cut, and so

reported." 

"Ah!" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 197



Top




Page No 200


"This strong point should have been removed," continued the  divisional commander, putting his finger upon a

point of junction.  "That I asked to be done, but McDowell seems to have missed it." 

"Ah!" 

"The enfilade got us from that point, of course."  There was no  mistaking the implication in the general's

words. 

"Ah!  You reported that, eh?" 

"You will find it in my report, sir.  My division has suffered very  heavily from that strong point." 

The corps commander turned, and apparently observing Barry for the  first time started and said, 

"You are" 

"My friend, Captain Dunbar," said the general. 

"Ah, Captain Dunbar," said the corps commander, obviously annoyed  at his presence at the interview.  "I trust

Captain Dunbar is  quite" 

"Captain Dunbar's reticence," said the general with quiet courtesy,  "can be entirely trusted.  He has just been

doing some fine work at  the C. C. S." 

"Ah, yes.  You are a padre, Dunbar?  Oh, I remember to have heard  about you.  Very glad, indeed, to meet you,

sir.  Well, I must be  off.  We'll see to that strong point at once, general.  Goodnight  goodnight, Dunbar." 

The general returned from seeing his visitor out.  "Of course, we  keep these things to ourselves." 

"Of course," answered Barry. 

"And now," said the general with a kindly smile, "I have kept the  good news to the last.  Your majority is

coming through, and here  is  a letter which came in my care.  Now, if you will excuse me,  I'll  leave you to take

a bit of a rest.  There's a cot, if you want  to lie  down.  Then we'll have a bite to eat later." 

"Oh, thank you very much," said Barry eagerly, taking the letter.  "This is good news, indeed.  My letters have

been going astray  somehow.  I have not had one for a week." 

"As long as that," said the general with uplifted brows. 

One sentence in his letter made music in Barry's heart. 

"And oh, my heart's beloved, God has been good to me and to you,  for when the war is over, I hope there will

be two of us to welcome  daddy back."  To which sentence Barry in his letter, written in  immediate reply, said, 

"Yes, dear, dear heart, God has been good to us, in that he has  given us to each other, and to us both this

wonderful new life to  carry on when we are done." 

When the general returned, he found Barry with his face on his arms  and dead asleep. 

"Poor chap," he said to his batman, "he is done up.  Let him rest a  bit." 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 198



Top




Page No 201


They gave him an hour, after which they had their bite together. 

"Now, general," said Barry, "I should like to run up to Battalion  Headquarters.  I might be of use there." 

"That's quite all right," said the general.  "You will be glad to  know that that strong point has already been

attended to.  You  didn't  hear the row, did you?" 

"No, sir." 

"Well the relief is going in and your men will soon be out." 

When Barry entered the Battalion Headquarters, he found only Major  Bayne and Captain Neil, with a

signaller and a couple of runners,  completing the arrangements for the relief. 

"You!  Pilot!" exclaimed the major, as he gripped his hand.  "Now  what the devil brought you here?" 

"Couldn't help it, major.  Simply had to come.  I have been trying  to get you all day," said Barry. 

"Awfully glad to see you, old chap," said Captain Neil, for the  major was finding difficulty with his speech. 

"How many left, major?" said Barry. 

"Five officers and seventy men," said the major in a husky voice.  "My God, how those boys stuck." 

"I shall not be moved," quoted Barry. 

"That's it!  That's it!" said the major.  "Not the devil himself,  let alone the Huns, could move them back from

that wire.  What is  it,  Sergeant Matthews?" he inquired of the sergeant who came in at  that  moment.  "Have

you completed your work?" 

Sergeant Matthews was pale, panting and exhausted.  "Yes, sir," he  said, "I think so.  I didn'tI didn'tgo

quite the full length of  the trench.  The boys said there was no one up there." 

"But, Sergeant Matthews," thundered the major, "your orders were to  go to the very end of the trench.  You

know this battalion never  goes  out leaving its wounded behind." 

"We had a full load, sir," said the sergeant, leaning against the  wall. 

"Well, you will have to go back," said the major, "and complete the  job.  Can you carry on?" 

"Yes, sir, I think so, sir." 

As he spoke Sergeant Matthews swayed along the wall and collapsed  onto a bench. 

"Give him a shot of rum," said the major curtly to a runner. 

"Let me go, major.  I'll take the party," said Barry eagerly.  "The  sergeant is all in.  I've had an hour's sleep and

a feed and I feel  quite fit." 

"Oh, nonsense, the sergeant will be all right soon," said the major  impatiently. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 199



Top




Page No 202


"But, major, I should like to go.  The sergeant is played out and I  am perfectly fit.  We can't take the risk of

leaving wounded men up  there in that trench.  Besides, there's little danger now.  The  strong point is blown up,

so the general told me before I left." 

"No, Barry, I won't allow it.  I won't take the chance," said the  major.  "My God, man! there are only five

officers left.  I have  lost  every friend I have got in the battalion, except Neil here and  you.  I'm damned if I'm

going to let you go out over No Man's  Land." 

"Steady, now, major," said Barry.  "I'm going to take a walk to the  end of that trench, just in case one of the

boys should be there.  Don't say no.  It must be done and done carefully." 

"All right, Barry," said the major, suddenly yielding.  "Better  take the sergeant with you.  He knows the way,

and I guess he's all  right now." 

The major and Captain Neil followed the party up the stairs and out  into the trench.  It was a beautiful starry

night, and all was  quiet  now along the front. 

"I don't like it," said the major, as he and Captain Neil stood  together watching the party away.  "I feel queer

about it, Neil.  I  tell you I wish I hadn't let him go, but he is so darned stubborn  about what he thinks is his

duty." 

"By Jove!  Major, he always bucks me up somehow," said Captain  Neil. 

"Bucks us all up," said the major, and he turned to take up again  the heavy burden of responsibility so

suddenly and so terribly laid  upon him.  The relief had been completed, and the last N. C. O. had  just reported

"all clear."  The Headquarters Company, now reduced  to  a poor half dozen, were standing ready to move,

when the  telephone  rang. 

"Yes, doctor," said the major, answering it.  "Oh, my God!  My God!  Not that, doctor!  Oh, God help us all!  I'll

be right down.  It's  the Pilot, Neil," he said, turning to his friend.  "Just take  charge,  will you please.  I must

run." 

Breathless he arrived at the R. A. P. 

"Any chance, doctor?" he asked of the M. O. who was standing  awaiting him at the door. 

"Not the very least, major, and he only has a few minutes.  He  wants you." 

"Now, may God help me," said the major standing quite still a  moment or two.  "How did he get it?" he asked

of a stretcher  bearer.  "Do you know?" 

"Yes, sir, we had just picked up the last man.  Sergeant Matthews  got a wound in the leg, and we had to carry

him.  Just as we  started,  they got to shelling pretty bad and we dropped into a  hole.  I looked  over my shoulder

and there was the Pilot, the  chaplain, sir, I mean,  with his body spread over Sergeant Matthews,  to keep off

the shrapnel.  It was there he got it." 

"Damn Sergeant Matthews," exclaimed the major, and passed on. 

Barry was lying on a stretcher, very white and very still, but the  smile with which he welcomed the major

was very bright. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT 200



Top




Page No 203


"Awfully sorryfor you,old chap," he whispered.  "Couldn't  reallyhelpityou

knowwegotthem allI'mawfullyglad  to see youjust a minutebeforebefore" 

The major, by this time, was weeping quietly. 

"You havebeena good friendto memajor.  Wehave hada  goodtimetogether.

Saygoodbyetothe boysformeand  totoNeil." 

"Oh, Barry, boy," said the major, brokenly.  "It's hard to have you  go.  You have helped us all." 

Barry fumbled with weak fingers at his breast.  The major opened  his tunic thinking that he needed air. 

"Mymyletter" he whispered. 

The major took the letter from his breast pocket, and put it in his  hand.  Barry held it a moment, then carried it

to his lips. 

"Nowthat'sallmajor," he whispered.  "TellherIthank

Godforherandfortheother.  Majortellthe boysthat  Godis good.  Neverto

beafraidbut tocarry on" 

It was his last word, and there could be no better.  "God is good.  Never be afraid but carry on." 

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON"

The next day but one they carried the Pilot to his grave in the  little plot outside the walled cemetery on the

outskirts of the  city  of Albert.  It had been arranged that only a small guard  should follow  to the grave.  But

this plan was changed.  Sergeant  Mackay, who was  the only sergeant left after consulting "the boys,"  came to

Major  Bayne. 

"The boys feel bad, sir," he said, "that they can't go with the  Pilot, excuse me, sir, the chaplain." 

"Do they?" said the major.  "We want to avoid congestion in the  streets, and besides we don't want to expose

the men.  They are  still  shelling the city, you know." 

"I know, sir," replied the sergeant.  "The boys have heard the  shells before, sir.  And there's not so many of

them that they will  crowd the streets much." 

"Let them go, sergeant," said the major, and Sergeant Mackay went  back with the word to the men.  "And I

want you to look like  soldiers," said the sergeant, "for remember we are following a  soldier to his grave." 

And look like soldiers they did with every button and bayonet  shining, as they had never shone for battalion

inspection. 

They had passed through an experience which had left them dazed;  they had marched deliberately into the

mouth of hell and had come  back stunned by what they had seen and heard, incapable of emotion.  So they

thought, till they learned that the Pilot had been killed.  Then they knew that grief was still possible to them.

With their  grief mingled a kind of inexplicable wrath at the manner of his  death. 

"If it had been the O. C. now, or any one else but Fatty Matthews,"  said Sergeant Mackay in disgust,


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON" 201



Top




Page No 204


expressing the general opinion.  "It  is an awful waste." 

Under the figure of the Virgin and Child, leaning out in pity and  appeal over the shattered city, through

marching battalions "going  in" and "coming out," the little pitiful remnant made its way, the  band leading, the

Brigade and Divisional Headquarters Staffs  bringing  up in the rear.  The service was brief and simple, a

brother chaplain  reading at the major's suggestion the Psalm which  Barry had read at  his last Parade Service

with the battalion. 

At the conclusion of the service, the divisional commander stepped  forward and said, 

"May I offer the officers and men of this battalion my respectful  sympathy with them in the loss of their

chaplain?  During these  last  weeks, I had come to know him well.  Captain Dunbar was a  chaplain in  his

brigade.  He was more.  He was a gallant officer,  a brave soldier,  a loyalhearted Canadian.  The morale of this

division is higher  today because he has been with us.  He did his  duty to his country,  to his comrades, to his

God.  What more can we  ask than this, for  ourselves and for our comrades?" 

Then there was a little pause and Major Bayne began to speak.  At  first his voice was husky and tremulous,

but as he went on, it  gathered strength and clearness.  He reminded them how, when the  chaplain came to

them first, they did not understand him, nor treat  him quite fairly, but how in these last months, he had carried

the  confidence, and the love, of every officer and man in the battalion. 

"Were the Commanding Officer here today, he would tell, as I have  often heard him tell, how greatly the

chaplain had contributed to  the  discipline and to the morale of this battalion.  He helped us  all to  be better

soldiers and better men.  He never shrank from  danger.  He  never faltered in duty.  He lived to help his

comrades  and to save a  comrade he gave his life at last." 

The major paused, looked round upon the gallant remnant of a once  splendid battalion, his lips quivering, his

eyes running over with  tears.  But he pulled himself together, and continued with steady  voice to the end. 

"But not to say these things am I speaking to you today.  I wish  only to give you this last message from our

Sky Pilot.  This is the  Pilot's last message:  'Tell the boys that God is good, and when  they  are afraid, to trust

Him, and "carry on."'  And for myself,  men, I  want to say that he was the only man that showed me what God

is like." 

In that company of men who had looked steadfastly into the face of  death, there were no eyes without tears,

many of them were openly  weeping. 

When the major had finished, the officers present, beginning with  the divisional commander, came and stood

at the head of the open  grave for a single moment, then silently saluted and turned away.  It  was the duty of

Bugler Pat McCann to sound "The Last Post," but  poor  Pat was too overcome with his sobbing at once to

perform this  last  duty.  Whereupon the runner Pickles, standing with rigid,  stony face  beside his chum, took

the bugle from his hands and there  sounded forth  that most beautiful and most poignant of all musical  sounds

known to  British soldiers the world over, "The Last Post,"  ending with that  last, high, longdrawn,

heartpiercing note of  farewell. 

Then, because the war was yet to be won, they "carried on," the  battalion marching away to a merry tune. 

Beside Barry's grave there still lingered three men, the divisional  commander, Major Bayne, and Captain

Neil. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON" 202



Top




Page No 205


"I am thinking of that little girl in London," said the divisional  commander, and for the first time his voice

broke.  The others  waited, looking at him.  "We will hold back this news for a couple  of  days, and I think,

major, you ought to go and" 

"No, general!My God, no!  Don't ask me!"  The major was  profoundly  agitated.  "Send Neil, here.  He knows

her well, and his  wife is  her great friend." 

"Very well, major, I think that will be better," said the general  in his courteous, gentle voice.  "You know her,

Captain Fraser, and  you can be better spared." 

And so it was arranged.  Captain Neil telegraphed Paula to meet him  at Boulogne, and together they made the

journey to London, carrying  with them sad and fearful hearts. 

They found Phyllis in a little flat which her mother had taken.  When she saw them her face went white, and

her hands flew to her  bosom.  Speechless, and with a great fear in her wideopen brown  eyes, she stood

looking from one to the other, waiting for their  message.  Paula went to her and without a word put her arms

round  her, and held her close. 

"I know, Paula," she said, putting her gently away from her.  "I  know what you have to tell me.  Barry is dead.

My dear love is  dead!"  Her voice was tender, soft and low.  "Don't fear to tell  me,  Neil," she said.  "See, I am

quite steady."  She put out her  hand that  he might see that there was no tremour in it. 

"Sit down, darling," besought Paula, again winding her arms about  her. 

"No, no, let me stand, Paula dear.  See, I am quite strong.  Now  tell me about it, Neilall about it.  You were

his dear friend,  you  know." 

Her voice, so sweet, so soft, so perfectly controlled, helped  Captain Neil with his task.  It seemed an offence

that he should  intrude any exhibition of grief or emotion upon the serene calm of  this young girl, standing so

straight, so proud, and regarding him  with such brave eyes. 

Then Captain Neil told his tale.  He began with the last service  upon the Parade Ground before the battalion

moved into action.  He  told of Barry's bitter disappointment, and of their relief that he  was not allowed to

accompany them to the front line.  He told of  Barry's long day at the casualty clearing station, and of his

service  to the wounded, and of how good the divisional commander  had been to  him that night. 

"It was there he got your letter, Phyllis." 

"Oh, he got my letter.  I'm so glad," whispered the girl, with a  quick breath and a sudden flushing of her pale

cheeks.  "He knew!  He  knew!" 

"I have his letter in reply here," said Captain Neil, handing it to  her. 

She took it in both her hands, kissed it tenderly, as if caressing  a child, and put it in her bosom. 

"Please go on," she said, and Captain Neil took up his tale again.  He told how the major tried to persuade him

not to go out after the  wounded that night. 

"But, of course, he would go," the girl said with a proud little  smile, at which Captain Neil's selfcontrol

quite gave way, and he  could only look at her piteously through his tears. 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON" 203



Top




Page No 206


"Oh, I'm so sorry," she said gently.  "Can't you go on?  I want to  hear so much every bit, but if you can't" 

At which, Captain Neil gripped himself hard and went on, "and so he  went out, and they searched the trench

from end to end.  They found  one poor chap, whose leg was badly smashed" 

"Oh, I'm so glad they found him," whispered Phyllis. 

"Then Sergeant Matthews got his wound, and the shells began to  fall.  They took refuge in a shell hole, and

there, while covering  Fatty Matthews from the breaking shrapnel, Barry got his wound." 

Captain Neil was forced to pause again in the recital of his story.  After a few minutes, he told of how they

carried him to his grave,  and laid him in the cemetery outside the city of Albert. 

"The boys were all there.  There were not many of them left," he  said. 

"How many?" she asked. 

"Seventy only, out of five hundred and four who went over the  parapet two nights before." 

"Ah, poor, gallant boys!  I love them, I love them all!" said the  girl, clasping her hands together. 

"They were all terribly broken up as they stood about the grave,  and no wonder!  No wonder!  Then the

divisional commander made a  little speech, and then our own major gave them Barry's last  message." 

"Tell me," said the girl gently, as Captain Neil paused. 

"It was this," said Captain Neil.  "'Tell the boys that God is  good, and when they are afraid, to trust Him, and

"carry on."'" 

"That was like him," she said.  "That was like Barry!  Oh, Paula,"  she cried, turning to her friend.  "I'm so

happy!  It was a  beautiful  closing to a beautiful life.  He was a beautiful boy,  Paula, wasn't  he?  His body was

beautiful, his soul was beautiful,  his life was  beautiful, and the ending, oh, was beautiful.  Oh,  Paula, God is

good.  I am so glad he gave Barry to me, and gave me  to him.  Oh, I'm  sohappysohappy."  Her voice

sank into a  whisper.  Then after a  few moments of silence, with a little  piteous cry, she suddenly broke  forth,

"But Paula! Paula! he is  gone.  I shall never see him again." 

Paula held her arms tightly about her, sobbing as if her own heart  were broken, but Phyllis recovered herself

quickly. 

"No, no," she said softly, as if counselling her own heart.  "I  must remember.  'God is good,' he said, and so,

Paula, I must not  be  afraid.  God was good to him.  He will be good to me.  He will  be good  to his child."  Her

voice sank again into a whisper.  She  stood silent  with eyes looking into the far distance.  Then, in a  clear, firm

voice, she said, "I will not be afraid!  God is good!  I will 'carry  on.'" 


The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land

CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON" 204



Top





Bookmarks



1. Table of Contents, page = 3

2. The Sky Pilot in No Man's Land, page = 4

   3. Ralph Connor, page = 4

   4. CHAPTER I. ONLY A MISSIONARY, page = 4

   5. CHAPTER II. ON THE RED PINE TRAIL, page = 16

   6. CHAPTER III. A QUESTION OF CONSCIENCE, page = 22

   7. CHAPTER IV. REJECTED, page = 32

   8. CHAPTER V. THE WAR DRUM CALLS, page = 41

   9. CHAPTER VI. THE MEN OF THE NORTH, page = 51

   10. CHAPTER VII. BARRICADES AND BAYONETS, page = 58

   11. CHAPTER VIII. A QUESTION OF NERVE, page = 70

   12. CHAPTER IX. SUBMARINES, BULLPUPS, AND OTHER THINGS, page = 81

   13. CHAPTER X. FRANCE, page = 92

   14. CHAPTER XI. THE NEW MESSAGE, page = 102

   15. CHAPTER XII. A MAN OF GOD, page = 114

   16. CHAPTER XIII. INTENSIVE TRAINING, page = 125

   17. CHAPTER XIV. A TOUCH OF WAR, page = 131

   18. CHAPTER XV. THINNING RANKS, page = 145

   19. CHAPTER XVI. THE PASSING OF McCUAIG, page = 158

   20. CHAPTER XVII. LONDON LEAVE AND PHYLLIS, page = 170

   21. CHAPTER XVIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY, page = 181

   22. CHAPTER XIX. THE PILOT'S LAST PORT, page = 188

   23. CHAPTER XX. "CARRY ON", page = 204